DwarkaMai - Sai Baba Forum

Indian Spirituality => Stories from Ancient India => Topic started by: SS91 on April 09, 2007, 06:39:12 AM

Title: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on April 09, 2007, 06:39:12 AM
SUNDERKAND


The SunderKand which is a chapter in the 'Ram-Charit-Maanas', penned by Goswami Tulsidas is considered to be as auspicious to read, as it is to recite the 'Hanuman Chaalisa'.

In the Sunder-kand, Hanumanji is reminded by Jambavan about the fact that Hanumanji has great powers that the latter has no memory of. In this case Hanumanji is made to remember about the fact that he is capable of flying.

Jambavan exhorted Hanuman to undertake the crossing of the Mighty Ocean. Hanumanji's flight was necessary to search for Seeta who had been abducted by Raavan.

Seeta is symbolic of Bhakti or devotion. To reach her one has to don the wings of prayer and love.

Hanumanji is now all ready to take the leap. Let us take the flight with him in search of Love incarnate.

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on April 09, 2007, 06:40:25 AM
SUNDERKAND

Page 1



Peaceful, without any sins, one who gives liberation, Brahma & Shambu have served you greatest of all the devatas, one who is seen in the human form by Maya, one who washes all our sins, full of pity, best among the Raghuvanshi and the Greatest of all Kings Shree Rama, I salute you. Give all your divine blessings so that we can free our minds from the desires of life & sins.

“ Oh! Treasure of great strength, your body is like “Sumeru” the golden mountain, good qualities are present in you, King of all the monkeys, dearest devotee of Shree Rama, I salute you, oh son of Vayu the wind god.”

Hearing these beautiful words said by Jambuvan, Hanuman told his brothers to eat the fruits & flowers of the forest & faithfully await his return from Lanka after meeting Sita. He also tells them that he had a very happy feeling in his heart & thus was sure that he would be successful in his journey. Saying this, he took leave & leapt towards Lanka.

On the shore he saw a beautiful mountain & playfully leapt on it & prayed to Shree Rama. Then with great force, he resumed his journey to Lanka. The mountain immediately sank to the bed of the ocean once Hanumanji leapt from it. The Ocean thought Hanumanji to be a messenger & therefore he told “Mainak” Mountain to give him shelter so that he could rest & then resume his journey. But Hanumanji just touched him & then with folded hands told him that he would rest only after he had completed his job

 The Devatas saw Hanumanji & wanted to test him so they sent “sursa” the mother of snakes to speak to him. She told him that the Devatas had sent her food but Hanumanji told her that only after he accomplished his job of meeting Sita, he would rest & on returning, she could devour him. But Sursa was not willing so Hanumanji told her that she could eat him. He made himself twice as big. Sursa made her mouth 16 times bigger & immediately Hanumanji became 32 times bigger.

In this manner he became double her size each time & then eventually became so small in size that he entered her open mouth & flew out. He then folded his hands & asked for leave. Sursa was very pleased & blessed him. She told him that he was an Ocean of Strength & Wisdom & that he would accomplish Lord Ram’s work.

A demoness used to stay in the ocean, who used to see the shadow of birds in the water & catch them by Maya. Thus they would be unable to fly & fall in the water. She did the same thing for Hanumanji, but he immediately recognised her. He killed her & then flew across to a mountain from which he could see many trees with beautiful flowers & fruits. Then he sat on it & could see the fortress of Lanka. He saw that the city was surrounded by water. There were houses of gold & studded with jewels & gems. He could also see the markets, beautiful roads & well-maintained lanes. Elephants, horses & donkeys were moving around in groups. There were Rakshasas of many kinds who looked very powerful & their strength could not be described. Lanka was full of gardens, lakes, wells, humans, Devatas; Nagas & Gandharva girls who were so beautiful that they could even win the minds of Rishis & Munis. At places there wee huge mountains like people who were roaring with energy. They would challenge each other & practice wrestling in the Akharas (schools of learning the art of wrestling.).Strong fighters & warriors were posted at various corners of the city to protect it from enemies.

Tulsidas has mentioned about the people living in Lanka because they were destined to die with the arrows of Shree Ram. Seeing all the scenes, Hanumanji decided that he would have to take the form of a very small insect to get into the city. Thus he took the form of a small fly & with the name of Shree Ram in his heart he flew towards Lanka.

Lankini, a demoness, used to stay near the gate to guard the city. She told Hanumanji that robbers were her food & no one could enter Lanka before taking her permission. Hearing this, Hanumanji gave her one blow, with which she fell down & vomited out blood. She then carefully got up & with folded hands, said that when Ravan received a boon from Brahma, he had told her about the end of the Rakshasa clan. He also told her that when she would get beaten by a monkey, she should realise that the end was near. Putting together all her strength, she then told Hanumanji that she was very happy that she met her end under the hands of Shri Ram’s messenger & that she could meet him. She also told him that all the comforts of heaven are nothing when compared to the teachings & Gyan received in the last minutes of one's life.

Lankini then advises Hanumanji to keep Shri Ram in his heart & do all his duties, by doing thus all foes will turn to friends, the ocean will turn peaceful & even the Sumeru mountain would seem nothing to that person towards whom Shri Ram would look.

Hanumanji searched each & every palace in Lanka & then he entered Ravana’s palace, but even there he could not find Sita.

 Further, he spotted a beautiful temple, which was surrounded by many tulsi plants & inside was the carving of the bow & arrow of Shri Ram. Seeing this, Kapiraj Hanuman was very happy, but thought to himself that in Lanka, where only demons lived, who could have made Shri Ram’s temple. Whilst contemplating, he saw Vibhishan coming in. He immediately decided to speak to him because speaking to a sadhu would never be harmful.

Hanuman then took the form of a Brahmin & spoke to Vibhishan. Vibhishan was so happy that he asked if he was a bhakt of Shri Ram or was he Shri Ram himself & had come to give him darshan in his house as he felt immense pleasure in his heart when he saw him. Hearing this, Hanumanji told him Shri Ram’s story & then Vibhishan asked Hanumanji if Shri Ram would accept him because he was very unhappy living in Lanka. But now he was sure that he had the blessings of Shri Ram as he had the good fortune of meeting a saint like him

Bin satsang vivek na hoi, Ram kripa bin sulabh na hoi.

Hanuman then tells Vibhishan that it is Shri Ram’s nature to always love his bhaktas. He gives him his own example by saying that he is a monkey who is considered to be low in caste & any person who took their name early morning, would not get food the whole day. Besides all this, Shri Ram has bestowed his blessings on us & saying this there were tears in Hanumanji’s eyes. Anybody who does not realise this & runs after the worldly pleasures will always be unhappy. He then told Vibhishan that he wanted to meet Sita Mata. After Vibhishan told Hanumanji about Ashok vatika, he resumed his search in the form of a fly.

 Hanuman saw Sita sitting under a tree in the vatika. She looked frail & tired; he observed that she spent the whole night sitting in meditation of Shri Ram.

At that moment Ravan entered the vatika with many Rakshasis. He threatened Sita & told her that she would be very happy if she would marry him. Hearing this, Sita picked up a blade of grass as a shield & told Ravan that he had no idea about the speed & strength of her Lord’s arrows & that he would meet his end soon because he had got her in Lanka by deceit. Ravan, in his anger, removed his sword & told Sita that she had insulted him & he could even sever her head from her body if she did not listen to him.

 Sita replied to him that she preferred to die by his sword than listen to him. She also told him that Shri Ram’s arms were as gentle as a lotus garland but at the same time as strong as an elephant trunk.

 Sita then looks at the sword, which was cold & sharp  & thinks whether it can lessen her pain, which she is going through on being separated from Shri Ram. Ravan moves towards Sita, but is stopped by Mandodari, who tells him it is against the valour of a man to raise his hand on a woman.

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on April 09, 2007, 06:41:23 AM
SUNDERKAND

Page 2

Ravan then goes home but gives Sita an ultimatum to agree within one month or he will kill her.

Amongst Ravan’s Rakshasis there was one” Trijata” who was a bhakt of Shri Ram & was also a Gyani. She explained to the others that they must improve their lives by serving Sita. She also told them of a dream she had seen in which a monkey had entered Lanka & burnt it, killing many Rakshasas. She also saw Ravan sitting on a donkey; naked with his head shaven & all his 20 hands had been cut. She then saw him going towards Yamnagar & Vibhishan ruling over Lanka. She was sure her dream would come true four days later. Hearing this, all the Rakshasis got scared & fell at Sita’s feet. Later when Sita was alone with Trijata, she asked her for a solution to her problem, as she no longer could bear being away from Shri Ram. She tells her to bring wood so that she could give up her body, as hearing Ravan’s cruel words day after day was a torture to her. Hearing this, Trijata explained & reminded her of Ram’s strength & valour & that he would rescue her soon. When Sita was alone she prayed to the Ashoka tree to help her by relieving her of her pain.

Seeing this, Hanuman took out Ram’s ring & kept it in front of Sita, the whole tree lit up by its light & Sita picked it up with a sudden happiness. She immediately recognised it as her Lord’s but was a little puzzled as to how it had appeared there. She thought to herself that nobody could defeat her Lord & even through Maya one couldn’t make such a ring with so much brightness. Thus with many confused thoughts in her mind, she suddenly heard a voice singing the praise of her Lord. Hearing these words, her pain just disappeared & she sat down to listen to these words with great attention.

Hanumanji then came in front of Sita & told her that he was her Lord’s messenger & that Ramchandraji had sent the ring for her. Sita was very puzzled as to how her Lord had taken help from a monkey, but Hanumanji cleared all her doubts & explained to her their full story in detail. Hearing his words, Sita felt a certain peace flow in her heart & she soon understood as to why her Lord had sent Hanumanji. Her eyes were filled with tears & her body became cold as she heard the praises of Shri Ram. She asked him about Lakshman & Shri Ram. She told him that her Lord was an Ocean of Love & Peace then why had he been so harsh towards her. Did he ever remember her & would her eyes ever see him again. Unable to speak & tell Hanumanji anything further, she tells him that her Lord had completely forsaken her. Seeing her pain Hanumanji in a very soft & gentle tone tells her that Ram & Lakshman are fine by way of health but they too have a lot of sorrow in their hearts. He then tells her Shri Ram’s message in his very own words

“Oh Sita, your departure has left me very unhappy. Everything seems so useless. New leaves on trees look like fire. Nights look like dark nights. The moon looks only a small star; the rain feels like oil instead of cold water. Winds feel hot & poisonous. Things that used to give pleasure now give immense pain. I do not even have anyone to share my sorrow with. No one knows the depth of our love, only my mind knows that, & that mind is with you.”

Hearing Shri Ram’s message, Sita was  filled  with love & happiness . Hanuman then tells her that she should keep Shri Ram in her mind & meditate on him because he is the one who blesses all his sevaks & devotees. Shri Ram’s arrows are like fire compared to those of the Rakshasas, therefore there was nothing to fear. Ram could destroy Lanka with his one arrow but he wanted to come himself & take her. Thus he tells her to keep faith & have courage for few more days. Hearing this, Sita gets worried as to how a monkey could fight the powerful Rakshasas. To clear her doubts Hanumanji shows her his actual form as big & as strong as “Sumeru” the golden mountain, & then again transformed himself into his tiny form. Seeing this, Sita feels at peace.

He then tells her that a monkey may not have strength but when he has the blessings of Shri Ram even a small snake can kill an eagle. Sita then gave Hanumanji her blessings, saying that he is a treasure of strength; qualities  & may he always have the love & blessings of Shri Ram.

Hearing her words, Hanumanji bows to her feet & with folded hands, takes her permission to eat the fruits from the trees in Ashok Vatika. Hanumanji then creates havoc by breaking all the flowers, uprooting trees & even killing a few of Ravan’s soldiers. The news soon reached Ravan about the disturbance caused by a very heavy monkey in Ashok Vatika & all the loss that he had caused. Ravan immediately sent a few of his strong fighters to kill Hanumanji but they were all sent back wounded & hurt as they were no match for him Akshaykumar was then sent to match the skills of Hanumanji. Seeing him arrive, Hanumanji uprooted a huge tree & threw it at him. The army was crushed & a few soldiers went running back to Ravan telling him that the monkey was very brave. Hearing about the death of his son Akshaykumar, Ravan sent his son Meghnath & told him not to kill Hanuman but to make him a prisoner, as he wanted to see him.

Meghnath was a very brave warrior. Seeing him arrive, Hanumanji uprooted a big tree & crushed Meghnath’s chariot. The rest of the army was so frightened that they started running from one end to the other. When Meghnath & Hanuman were fighting each other it looked as though two elephants were at war. Eventually Meghnath tried the Brahmastra & seeing this Hanuman thought it would be disrespect towards Brahma if he would fight it back. Thus when it came towards him he fell down from the branch off the tree he was sitting on, killing many rakshasas under him. He was thus made a prisoner & taken to Ravan. Seeing this Shivji told Parvati that it was not correct to make Hanumanji a prisoner as he was the messenger of Shri Ram, whose name itself had so much strength that it can free mankind from the cycle of life & death. Therefore Hanumanji on purpose got himself trapped for the accomplishment of his Lord’s task. Hanuman also wanted to meet Ravan. When he reached Ravan’s court he was surprised to see all his courtmen standing in such fear because Ravan was very angry with Hanuman since he had destroyed Ashok Vatika & he also wanted to know why he had come to Lanka’

Hanuman replied to Ravan that he had been sent by Shri Ram who created the universe, the one by whose strength Brahma, Vishnu & Mahesh look after the world, the one who takes birth in the human form to protect the Devatas, the Great One who killed Bali, Khar, Dushan & trishira who were all great warriors & he was the messenger of that Shri Ram whose wife had been carried away by deceit. He told Ravan that he had destroyed Ashok Vatika because he was a monkey by nature & therefore liked to create havoc. He ate the fruits since he was hungry & killed his soldiers because they attacked him.

 Hanuman then joined his hands & told Ravan to leave Sita Mata as he came from a very pious family. Shri Ram would forgive as he is an ocean of pity & never refuses his devotees or those who take refuge in him.. He also tells him that Shiv, Vishnu & Brahma will not help him if he goes against Shri Ram. He asks him to give up his ego & gives him a lot of examples about Bhakti, knowledge & Vairagya to which Ravan replies in a conceited tone that he has found a Gyani monkey. But when Hanumanji tells him that his death was very near under the hands of Shri Ram, Ravana’s anger knows no bounds. He immediately told his soldiers to kill him, but his courtmen then explained to him that it was unjust to kill a messenger & they should punish him in some other way. Ravan then tells them to put his tail on fire & let him go because only then he can tell his Swami Ramji about Lanka. Hearing this, Hanumanji began to smile, as he understood why Saraswati Goddess had given him such thoughts. Hanumanji’s tail was tied up with cloth dipped in ghee but so much was consumed that all the cloth in Lanka was consumed as Hanumanji went on increasing the length of his tail. All the people of Lanka collected to watch the sight. As Hanumanji’s tail was set alight he took a very small form & started jumping from one palace on to the other, setting Lanka ablaze. People frantically started running from one place to the other & there was a lot of loss & destruction except for Vibhishan’s house which stood quiet & peaceful watching all the other houses go down in flames. Hanumanji did not get hurt by the fire because he was a messenger of Shri Ram the one who himself made fire. Thus after finishing Lanka he plunged into the ocean.

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on April 09, 2007, 06:42:05 AM
SUNDERKAND


Page 3

He then resumed a small form to meet Sita Mata. He folded his hands & told her that she should give him some remembrance to give Shri Ram. Sita took out one of her bangles & gave it to Hanumanji for Ram. She then tells Hanumanji to tell Shri Ram that since he is the one who is always at peace, does not have any desire, he is the one who blesses the poor & removes all their obstacles, if he did not rescue her within 1 month then he would never see her. Sita is also very sad because Hanumanji is going back but he tells her that their army would soon come to rescue her.

  When Hanumanji reached back home all the monkeys were very happy. They kept asking him many different questions & then went to Ramji. Shri Ram & Lakshman were extremely happy to see all the Vanars with Hanuman & Jambvan. Jambvan tells Shri Ram that his devotees will always be happy & that his victory will be known in the 3 worlds. All the Vanars were happy that their mission had been completed. Shri Ram embraced Hanuman & then asked him about Sita.

 Hanuman gives him a detailed picture of Sita & her message. He tells Ram that he is the Lord of the 3 worlds then why was he taking so long to rescue his wife. How every second was like a 100 years for her. Hearing his words Ram has tears in his eyes & he tells Hanuman that Sita is his by mind body & speech & no harm can come to her even in her dreams.

Hanuman then narrates his journey to Lanka, how he destroyed Ashok Vatika, frightened all the rakshasas & burnt Lanka.

 Shri Ram then tells Sugreev that they should make preparations to march towards Lanka, as there was no reason to delay. He then spoke to the Vanar army & with divine eyes spoke to them of victory. Hearing his words each monkey was filled with so much of energy that they looked like mountains with wings.

Devtas, Munis, Gandharvas & Nags were pleased because they knew that Ravan’s end was near.

 Once the Vanar army reached the shores of Lanka they started plucking the flowers & eating all the fruits. The people of Lanka were frightened after Hanuman had set fire in Lanka. They used to lock up their homes & wonder who would protect them in troubled times because if the messenger was so powerful & mighty how strong would the Lord itself be. Meanwhile Ravan’s wife Mandodari pleaded with him to stop the war & send back Sita, as this would please Shiv & Brahma. She then compares Ram’s arrows to poisonous snakes & those of the Rakshasas to frogs & toads. Even harsh words had no effect on Ravan & he just laughed it off, saying that by nature women had a soft heart & even in happy times they got upset. He told her that he had defeated Devtas & Rakshasas so humans & Vanars should be no problem.

Vibhishan also came to Ravan & fell at his feet. He told him that if a person wanted fame & fortune in life, he should not even look at another person’s wife. Kam & Krodh always brought about destruction; therefore they should leave everything & take Ram’s name since he was the King of all Kings, & would give riches, fame, knowledge & vairagya, destroy enemies & preserve dharma.

Malyawan was a learned mantri in Ravan’s court. He also told Ravan that Vibhishan’s words were true & felt very peaceful after hearing him, but this angers Ravan because they are in praise of his enemy. Vibhishan also tells Ravan about good & bad thoughts as Subudhi & Kubudhi, where Subudhi will always bring peace, goodwill & happiness but Kubudhi will bring about destruction & unhappiness. He also gives him many examples from the Vedas & Puranas but these only angers Ravan further. Ravan tells him that he was being traitor & taking the enemy’s side although he was his brother. Nobody had ever defeated him so he had nothing to fear. Vibhishan then talks to the people of Lanka & warns them that they were in the clutches of Kaal & it was his duty to warn them.

 Vibhishan was very anxious to touch Shri Ram’s feet, which gave immense pleasure to devotees & bhaktas, whose touch gave freedom to Ahilya, whose feet Sita ever worshipped & were even present in the heart of Shivji. Thus he feels good fortune coming to him as even Bharat kept Shri Ram’s padukas & worshipped them for 14 years.

 When the Vanars saw Vibhishan coming towards them they thought he was a spy sent by Ravan. Sugreev asked Ram what had to be done because he knew that the Rakshasas           were Mayavi, they could take any noble form & deceive them. Shri Ram tells Sugreev that he cannot refuse him or anybody who came to him for help even if there is deceit & lies no harm will come to them as Lakshman can kill all the Rakshasas in a split second. When Vibhishan was brought in front of Ram he kept staring at him without even blinking his eyes. He kept admiring his posture in his mind, his huge & powerful arms, beautiful lotus-like eyes, broad chest, strong shoulders, & tears literally came to his eyes. Vibhishan then told Shri Ram that since he was Ravan’s brother he had a tamsik body, which loved sin; therefore he had come to Ram for help & shelter.

Hearing his noble words, Ram embraced him & told him that though he lived amidst sin & cruelty, he was disciplined & truth was by his side. Vibhishan then told Ram that even God would never help sinners & now that he had got a chance to touch Shri Ram’s feet he wanted no more. Hearing this Ram tells Vibhishan that any human being who is a sinner in the world but leaves everything & comes to him for shelter, he is always saved & can even become a sanyasi if he has given up the relations of mother, father, brother, wife, child & house. One who has no desires & considers fear, happiness & pain all equal, such a man is always dear to him. Vibhishan had all these qualities & therefore he was dear to him.

Vibhishan is overwhelmed by his love & asks Ram to give him everlasting Shakti. Ram crowns Vibhishan “King of Lanka” & all the devtas shower flowers & blessings on them. Shri Ram then asks Sugreev & Vibhishan as to how they will cross the mighty ocean, which is full of snakes, fishes & crocodiles. Vibhishan replies to Ram that his one arrow can dry up millions of oceans, but it would be more respectable to take permission from the ocean & ask for a solution. To this Lakshman replied that only a coward would ask for permission & it would be a wastage of time if they would wait further. Ram pacifies Lakshman & then with folded hands sits in deep meditation in front of the ocean.

When Vibhishan left Lanka, Ravan sent two of his soldiers in disguise behind him, but these soldiers were so impressed by Shri Ram’s love & acceptance that they came into their original rakshasa form & started singing Shri Ram’s praises. Sugreev’s vanars caught them & took them as prisoners to Lakshman but he set them free & sent a letter with them for Ravan. Lakshman warns Ravan in his letter that even Vishnu & Brahma cannot save him & he has brought about the destruction of his clan. He asks him to take refuge in his brother Shri Ram’s feet or otherwise face his fiery arrows. This immediately brought fear in Ravan, but he put it aside, saying that Lakshman was behaving like a child who wanted to catch the sky while sleeping. Ravan’s messengers also plead with him & told him about Ram’s mighty vanar sena. They ask him to give up his pride & save the kingdom by returning Sita gracefully.

Shri Ram had been sitting on the bank of the ocean for 5 days but it did not give way, so he asks Lakshman to give him his bow & arrow because it was no use pleading with someone who was stuck in Mamta or giving Gyan to a greedy man. At that instance the Ocean God took the form of a Brahmin & asked for forgiveness, because the sky, wind, water, fire, earth were all made by the same creator. Only by his grace & permission they can do anything not otherwise. It was against Nature for him to dry up but since it was the wish & command of his Lord, he would make way for the army. The Ocean then tells them about the boon received by Nal & Neel & any stone or rock thrown in by them in the water, will always float & never sink. Saying this, he goes back to his abode.

(The Ocean God tells Shri Ram that "even a stone will float in water if the name of Shri Ram is written over it", Since Nal and Neel are great Engineers, they would be able to construct the bridge very easily)

The Sunderkand helps human beings in Kalyug to overcome problems. It has been sung by Tulsidas & anyone who says it, can go through life without pain & difficulty, as Shri Ram is an Ocean of Peace & happiness.

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 07:54:52 AM
INTRODUCTION TO SUNDARA KANDA P.R.Ramachander

Sundara Kandam is the fifth section of Ramayana (the story of Lord Rama) written by Sage Valmiki and comprises of 2885 verses spread in 68 chapters. “Sundara” as we all know in the literary sense means 'beautiful' and 'Kandam' means 'section'. The sage has called this section a “beautiful section” of Ramayana possibly because: - I. This part of Ramayana contains poetic descriptions of several beautiful objects, places and people. Whether the poet describes, Sri Lanka, Pushpaka Vimana, The Asoka forest, The Madhu Vana, Hanuman, Sita, Rama, Ravana, or the moonrise, he goes in to poetic rapture. For example describing the moon in the 5th chapter he writes:- Then the intelligent Hanuman saw the moon, which was in the center of the sky, which was with rays and which was spreading the sheet of moon light, like an enthusiastic bull wandering in its stable. 1
Then he saw the moon, which destroys the sorrows of the world, which increased the levels of the great sea and which traveled by giving light to all beings. 2
That Goddess Lakshmi who shined normally on the Mandhara Mountain of earth, in the sea during dusk and on the lotus in the ponds, at that time shined sitting on the moon. 3
The moon in the sky was similar to the swan in the sliver cage, lion in the caves of Mandhara Mountain and the heroic soldier sitting on proud elephant. 4
The moon, which was full of all its crescents, resembled the bullock with its sharpened horns, the silver mountain with its peaks, and the elephant whose tusks were deorated 5
That moon who did not loose the luster due to dense dew drops, who had borrowed light from the sun by which he drove away darkness, who was serving the luminous Lakshmi in his crystal clear mien and who had the rabbit mark, shined in the sky. 6
The moon shone with great light like the lion climbing on the stone clusters, like the great elephant reaching the war and like the king getting his kingdom. 7
II. This section is about the exploits of Hanuman who was an extremely beautiful person as the poet describes him as “a shining handsome person made of Gold”. Hanuman also has a name –“Sundara” III. It is in this section that a full comprehensive description of Sri Rama, possibly the most handsome person ever born is given (chapter 35) and so the sage must have thought that this deserves that name. The reason why it is called Sundara Kanda is possibly best given by one of the greatest commentators of Sundara Kanda viz. Tilaka. He says
Sundare Sundari Lanka, Sundare Sundari Katha, Sundare sundari Sita, Sundare kim na Sundaram? Beautiful among the most beautiful is Sri Lanka, Beautiful among the most beautiful is the Story, Beautiful among the most beautiful is Sita, What is there in it, which is not beautiful? According to the belief of Hindus, Sundara Kandam is a mine where we can draw powers to support one self in all worldly situations. People believe that reading or hearing the story is a panacea and final solution for all ills and all problems.
The story narrated in Sundara Kanda in brief is as follows: Hanuman at the suggestion and encouragement given by Jambhavan decided to cross the ocean and reach Sri Lanka. He promised his friends that he would search and find out Sita in Sri Lanka. The God of the sea to help Hanuman asked his friend the Mainaka Mountain to rise above the sea and help Hanuman to relax and take rest. Hanuman however refused the offer and went ahead. The assembled Devas wanted to test the efficiency of Hanuman and sent, Devi Surasa to test him. She took the form of a Rakshasi and informed him that he should enter her mouth and become her food; Hanuman increased his size to a very mega form. Surasa also made her mouth sufficiently big to swallow Hanuman. At that time Hanuman reduced his body to a thumb size jumped in and out of Surasas’s mouth. Surasa blessed him and the devas were very sure that Hanuman can do the job assigned to him. After this a Rakshasi called Simhika caught hold of his shadow and started dragging him to her mouth so that she can eat him. Hanuman again increased the size of the body and killed Simhika. After this Hanuman reached the city of Sri Lanka. There he took a small midget form before entering the city, to avoid detection. However Lanka Devatha stopped him and challenged him. He hit her with his clenched fist and she fell down. She realised that the end of the city of Sri Lanka was nearing and blessed Hanuman in his endeavour. Hanuman then searched all over the city including Ravana’s harem. Though on seeing Mandodhari he thought that he has seen Sita, he concluded immediately that she who was living a life of luxury could not be Sita. Later he located Sita in the Asoka forest which was attached to the harem of Ravana. She was sleeping on the floor, had not taken bath nor changed her dresses. She also had removed all non-essential ornaments and hung them on a tree. While he was watching Ravana paid a visit to Sita and requested her to be his wife. She refused and told him that the only way for him to continue to live was to give her back to Rama. Becoming furious he set a period of two months for her to live and instructed the Rakshasis to terrorise her and make her agree for his proposal. While the Rakshasis were trying their best, Trijata, the daughter of Vibhishana told the Rakshasis about her dream in which she clearly foresaw the defeat and death of Ravana and the victory of Rama. The Rakshasis were scared because of this. However Sita dejected by her situation decided to commit suicide by hanging by her own hair. Hanuman hiding in the tree related the story of Rama up to that point and hearing this Sita became enthused. Hanuman appeared before her, after all Rakshasis were asleep and related to her the adventures of Rama and also gave her signet Ring of Rama as the identification. He also requested her to ride on his back and reach Rama. Sita refused this offer saying that this would be an insult to Rama’s valour and also she, as a virtuous woman would not touch another male willingly. She also gave him her pearl hair brooch as identification.This brooch was given to her by her father. She also told him story of the crow, which attacked her and how Rama put a Tilak on her forehead with a red stone. Hanuman took leave of Sita and while returning made up his mind to see Ravana as well as the city of Lanka. To draw attention to himself, he destroyed the Asoka forest. Ravana sent many of his warriors including his younger son Akshaya Kumara to capture Hanuman. However Hanuman killed all of them. Then Ravana sent his elder son Indra Jit to capture Hanuman who succeeded by using his Brahma Asthra. Though he became free due to his boon, Hanuman seemingly submitted himself to the rakshasas and reached the court of Ravana. Becoming angry Ravana awarded the capital punishment to Hanuman. However Vibhishana, the younger brother of Ravana pointed out that such a punishment couldn’t be given to emissaries. Agreeing to his view, Ravana ordered the Rakshasas to set fire to the tail of Hanuman. However acceding to the prayer of Sita, who heard the news from other Rakshasis, the God of fire did not hurt Hanuman. Hanuman escaped from the clutches of the Rakshasas by his sheer prowess, and using the fire in his tail, set fire to the city of Lanka. Then he took leave of Sita and jumped back to the other shore. He then related his story to his friends and they together decided to tell it to Sri Rama. On their way back to Sri Rama, they destroyed the honey garden of King Sugreeva. They then reached Kishkinda and relate in detail about how they have been able to find Sita and how she is sad, guarding her virtue and would die after 2 months. Hanuman in this section has been described as one for whom nothing is impossible and who is the embodiment of faith, devotion, and loyalty to the master, fearlessness and self-confidence. The story points out that, success is the outcome of such an attitude .It teaches us that, if we want to be successful in life we have to combine the above qualities
As a humble devotee I personally feel that if we can read and sing the original lilting poems of Sage Valmiki, it would be really great and those of us who cannot, could equally benefit from daily reading the translation. I believe like this because unlike the Vedas where the vibrations created by each sound is important, here it is a poem and the intention of Sage Valmiki appears to tell and make us understand the story and not create positive vibrations.
I hope many of you would be benefited by this translation, which is nearest to the original.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 07:55:57 AM
Parayana Vidhana

Method of reading

Parvathy asked: - “ Oh, God of all beings, I would very much love to know from you, the greatness of Sundara Kanda in detail.” Sri Parameshwara replied: - “I would summarize the greatness of Sundara Kanda for you, because to tell in detail, only the great Lord Ramachandra is capable. Similar to the fact that God Rama is the greatest among Devas, similar to the fact that Kalpaga tree is greatest among trees, similar to the fact that the Kousthubha gem is greatest among gems, in Ramayana, Sundara Kanda is the greatest chapter. By reading or listening to Sundara Kanda with devotion, all the wishes are fulfilled, all dangers will vanish, all diseases will be cured and all types of wealth will grow. Especially it is the greatest panacea for those who suffer from great diseases. Even diseases like tuberculosis, Leprosy and epilepsy, which cannot be cured by even divine medicines, would be cured completely by reading Sundara Kanda 68 times by the grace of Lord Ramachandra. Please hear its greatness, which I am telling you with attention.
 
Please hear, the following ancient story, which tells about the greatness of Sundara Kanda . There was a great city called Kanchipuram in the earth and once upon a time it was ruled by Chola dynasty. Among those kings, there was a great king called Vamsankara who lived with his wife Manorama, He gave very many charities and did several fire sacrifices. He was devoted to the great temple of the city, which included the great Temple of Kamakshy and Ekamranatha and the temple of Varadaraja and ruled the state with efficiency. Unfortunately he was not blessed by any children. Once coming out of the temple of Kamakshy he saw a great sage entering the temple. He worshipped that sage and when enquired introduced himself. The sage asked him, in what way he would be able to help him and the king requested him to bless him to become a father. The sage told the king, that “In your previous birth you were a saintly Brahmin who lived in Rameswaram and worshipped in the temple daily .As a result you are born as the king of this country, Unfortunately in your previous birth, you did not allow your daughter to join her husband and become a mother due to some family conflict. This is the reason why you are not able to become a father.” He then requested the king and the queen to observe strict penance, give gold and silver as charities to Brahmins, and worship Lord Vishnu and Lord Shiva daily. The king and the queen followed his advice and as a result a good son was born to them. They named him Balachandra and the prince grew up as an extremely learned and able man. When he became old, the king decided to give his kingdom to his son and make him his successor and retire to the forest. Unfortunately the terrible disease of Tuberculosis afflicted Balachandra. In spite of treatment by the foremost expert doctors of the world and daily prayers the prince was not cured. When the king and queen were terribly worried and knew not what to do, the sage who had earlier blessed them with the child came again to that city. The king and the Queen fell at his feet and requested him to cure the disease of the prince. The sage told, “ In his previous birth, your son stole the materials kept ready for the worship of Rama and enjoyed life and that is why he is cursed with this disease. But later realizing his sin, he daily read Ramayana and worshipped Rama and that is why he has been born to you. I would tell you, how to get rid of the effects of that sin. ” The king thanked him and wanted to know in detail as to what should be done. The sage replied, “ Construct a decorated Yaga sala and in its middle construct a square platform. Spread a white silk cloth in that stage. On that cloth, spread six measures of Paddy and on that half the quantity of raw rice. On that keep a golden vessel made of one pound of silver full of pearls. Cover that vessel with a silk cloth. On that keep a gold plate in which the Sri Rama Yantra is drawn. Over that keep the golden statue of Sri Rama accompanied by Sita and Hanuman. Worship this statue using Rama Sahasranamavali. Then read the entire Sundara Kanda. This worship and reading should start in the early morning and end at noon. A non fading ghee lamp also should be kept burning for 68 days and the above procedure should be repeated 68 times. On each day, Payasam should be prepared and offered to God Rama. Though this is the best, completing the repetition 68 times can also be done in four months. It is best for the individual himself to read the Sundara Kanda, and it is of medium effect if it is got read by single Brahmin, and worse if it is got read by many Brahmins. After completing the above, The Yudha Kanda should be completely read either by 5 or 6 days. All the 73 days, in the evening a great scholar should retell the stories of Sundara Kanda. This would cure even diseases which Aswini Devas (Doctors of Gods) cannot cure. This also could help you win a war or even help you in getting occult powers, if your son does this, his disease would definitely get cured.” That sage then disappeared. The king performed the above worship and the prince himself read the Sundara Kanda daily and was fully cured of the disease. Hey Devi, just by reading Sundara Kanda 68 times the prince was cured of a terrible disease. There are also many others who got rid of their illness by reading Sundara Kanda. So even if one is poor or not physically able, he should observe the Vritha of Sundara Kanda and get benefited. There are also other methods of reading Sundara Kanda.

Reading 32 times This consists of reading Chapter 1 to 38 on the first day and the rest the next day. This should be repeated 32 times in 64 days
Reading 24 times This consists of reading Chapter 1-15 on the first day, 16-41 the next day and the rest of the chapters on the third day. This should be repeated 24 times in 72 days.
Reading 12 times This consists of reading Chapter 1-15 on the first day, 16-32 on the second day, 33-51 on the third day and the rest of the chapters on the fourth day. This should be repeated 12 times in 48 days.
Reading 7 times Read 7 chapters a day and complete reading on the fourteenth day and repeat it 7 times and complete the parayana in 68 days.
Reading 4 times Read ten chapters per day for the first 27 days and read the remaining 2 chapters on the 28th day
Reading two times Read eight chapters per day and complete reading twice on the seventeenth day. In all these cases on the last day, the last chapter of Yudha Kandam (131st chapter) should be read. On each day before and after the parayana boiled milk with Sugar should be offered as offering (Naivedya) to the God. On the day of completion it is desirable to give a feast to the Brahmins.
Methods for reading once.

Suppose some one is not able to follow any of the above desirable rules, he can read it any way according to his capacity. Several such methods are given below: - 1. Read the entire Sundara Kanda once in a full day. 2. Read Chapter 1-35 on the first day and the rest of the chapters next day. 3. Read Chapter 1-37 on the first day, 37-40 on the second day and the rest on the third day. 4. Read chapter 1-15 on the first day, 16-37 on the second day, 38th chapter on the third day, 39-54 on the fourth day and the rest on the fifth day. 5. Start on a Friday, daily read 9 chapters and complete reading on the next Friday. 6. Read within 9 days stopping each day on 5th, 15th, 20th, 26th, 28th, 40th, 52nd, 80th and 68th chapters. 7. Daily read 6 chapters and complete it on the 12 th day. 8. Till 22 days read two chapters a day, 5 chapters on the 23rd day, 3 chapters on the 24th day, 6 chapters on the 25th day, 3 chapters on the 26th day, 4 chapters on the 27th day and the rest 3 chapters on the 28th day. If some one is not able to follow any of the methods suggested above he can read it as per his capacity without following any rules.

Some of the specific problems, which could be solved by doing Parayana of certain chapters, are given below: -
1 Salvation can be achieved by reading the first chapter daily for six months. 2. Effect of attack of devils, ghosts, spirits can be warded off by reading 3rd chapter. 3.To get rid of dullness of brain, read 13th chapter 4.To get rid of the sin of having affair with some one else’s wife, read chapters 7-11. 5.To get permanent wealth and happiness read chapter 15. 6.To get rid of bad dreams read Chapter 27. 7.To get good behavior read chapter 20-21. 8.To rejoin with lost relatives read chapters 33-40. 9.To get rid of impending danger read chapter 36. 10.To get pardon from god for insult done to him knowingly and unknowingly read chapter 38. 11. Read chapters 42-47 to win over enemies 12.To become just and charitable read chapter 51 13. For improvement of assets like house, land etc read chapter 54. 14. To get peace and happiness read Chapter 61 15. To get perennial happiness and to attain God read chapter 67. 16.To get what one wishes read chapter 41 17. To realize God and to become one capable of sweet words read chapter 19.

It is essential to offer Naivedya to God before and after the Parayana. It would be great if at the end of the Parayana, Lord Rama, Goddess Sita and Lord Hanuman are worshipped using Sahasra Nama (1000 names). If someone is not capable of doing it, he can worship using 108 names of the God. As Naivedya boiled milk added with Sugar is supposed to be best offering to Lord Rama and Lotus and Thulasi (Ocimum) flowers are the best to worship the Lord. If not available any flower can be used. However Karavira(Arali) should never be used. Offering to God Pomegranate would bring in immense benefits .It would be better to the devotee to Chant Rama Gayathri during the beginning, Avahana and end of the worship. This is given by “Dasarathaya Vidhmahe, Sita vallabhata Dheemahi, Thanno Rama Prachodayath.” Also it is essential that after the Pooja, meditation is done using Gayathri manthra or the Shadakshari manthra of Rama viz “Ram Ramaya Nama.”. Though it is desirable to represent Rama either by Dasavarana Yanthra or statue, it would be sufficient if worship is done to the Ramayana Book. Rama with Sita, Lakshmana and Hanuman always is present wherever Ramayana book is there. It is also essential that whosoever does the Parayana for getting specific objectives should observe Brahmacharya during the parayana period.” Lord Shiva after telling all this to Goddess Parvathy told her that whoever reads are listens to this book on the Sundara Kanda Phala prapthi, would become a great devotee of Lord Rama and would lead a happy painless life.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:07:25 AM
First Chapter
                             Dealing with crossing of the sea by Hanuman
 
 ( This chapter describes how Hanuman crossed the great ocean to reach Sri Lanka in search of Sita.On the way first the God of Ocean and Mainaka mountain respected him. Later the devas tested his capability by sending Surasa Devi to test him. After this Simhika dragged his shadow and tried to eat him. Crossing all these hurdles he reached the other shore safely)
 
     Afterwards Hanuman, the slayer of his enemies, desired to travel by the paths that the Charanas (The devas who travel in the sky) travel, to find out the place where Sita who has been abducted by Ravana. is kept in hiding..                                                           1
 
(It is clear from this sloka that our ancients knew that even in sky you have to travel by certain chartered pathways)                     
 
With a desire to perform the incomparable and difficult job, he extended his head and neck and resembled a bull.  2
 
Then the valorous, strong and wise Hanuman started traveling as he liked, similar to a lion in zest, creating terror to the birds, felling trees by his immense chest, glowing like a diamond and killing various animals in the grass, like the torrential flow of water.                                             3-4
 
Hanuman stood like an elephant calf in a forest, in the mountain, which had many special elephants and which are fit to be worshipped and endowed, possessing the natural colours of blue, red, yellow and pink, decorated by the strange reddish (laterite) stones and also thickly populated by Yakshas, Kinnaras, Gandharvas (all the three are communities of minor devas) and Devas with their families along with Pannagas who can take any form or shape they like.                                                                             5-7                               
 
That reddish vanara (monkey), saluted the Sun God, the king of devas Indra, The Wind God Vayu, The progenitor Lord Brahma and all great and holy ones and then turned to the eastern direction and saluted his own father Vayu again. He then thought of Rama and Lakshmana and offered them his prayers and bowed before all the holy rivers and the sea. After this he embraced his manes and offered pradakshina (perambulation) to them and concentrated his mind on the travel that he intended to make.                         8-10     
 
(As soon as he was born to Anjana Hanuman felt very hungry. He was told by his mother to eat any fruit, which is red. He jumped towards the Sun in the dawn, who complained to Indra about this attack. Indra hit baby Hanuman with his Vajarayudha who fell down. His father the Wind God went in hiding creating a crisis in the world. Then the devas led by Brahma blessed the baby Hanuman and gave him several boons.)
 
Being blessed by all vanaras assembled there with a wish made by them for his safe return journey, he stood facing the path in which the wind travels.                            11
 
He stood facing the south and started growing in his physical stature, after requesting the other monkeys to wait for him in the same place.                                                    12
 
Being watched by the great and elderly monkeys, Hanuman who is the greatest among those who can jump and cross, grew like the ocean in high tide for completing the work of Rama.                                                                                                                      13
 
With his forelegs extended, he with an enormous stature stood facing Sree Lanka, with a wish to jump and cross the sea and pressed the mountain by his fore legs.                  14   
 
The mountain in spite of this pressure was stable but tottered for a few minutes. As a result the trees shook and flowers of different colours were strewn all over the mountain.                           
                                                                                                                                         15
 
Strewn by the thick flower clusters all over, the mountain was covered fully by flowers. It  appeared more like a mountain of flowers.                                                               16
 
Pressed heavily by the strong Hanuman, The Mahendra Mountain resembled an elephant in heat and water flowed out of it.                                                                                  17
 
Pressed by the great Hero Hanuman, that mountain  revealed deposits of Gold, Mica and silver through the openings and sparkled.                                                                     18
 
Not only that but also that mountain which had lot of laterite stones, threw out medium size fire flames all over and pushed out dense smoke.                                             19
 
Because of the pressure exerted by the Vanara, the animals, which lived in the caves, were pressed and made sad and painful sounds.                                                       20
 
That horrendous noise made by the big animals spread in all directions all over the world and also in gardens through out.                                                                                     21
 
Snakes with shining white Swastika marked hoods spit out poison from their mouth and hit at the stones with their poisonous teeth.                                                                   22
 
Stuck by the angry and poisonous snakes those big stones burnt as if they were on fire and broke in to thousands of pieces.                                                                        23
 
Those herbs in the mountain, which were supposed to cure the poison bite of the snakes, were not able to remove the poison from the mountain  itself.                                  24
 
Some of the snakes with big body were spitting fire and came out from the caves and were trampled by Hanuman’s feet.                                                                           25
 
Trampled heavily those trees of the mountain with new growths, gave out a smell of sandal, and gave rise to a rain of flowers.                                                              26
 
Those stones of the mountain, which were deep red, yellow and light red broke in to pieces and were strewn all over.                                                                            27
 
With the colour of reddish sandal and with ochre coloured deposits that mountain shone like a fire and was broken.                                                                                    28
 
Vidhyadaras (demi gods who wear garland and live in the sky) who had brought golden vessels to drink alcoholic drinks left behind the costly vessels and mugs, various types of flavored and cooked meat, shields made of the hide of a bull and swords with golden handles and rose up along with their women folk thinking that the mountain is being broken along with sages occupying it.                                                           29-31                                                                                                                               
                                                                                                                             
Not only that, some other Vidhyadharas who wore garlands in their neck and who had eyes like white lotus and some others who were intoxicated and also who were decorated by red paste and red garlands and red eyes reached the sky.                                      32
 
Their ladies who wore   chains, armlets, shoulder bangles, stood  with a smiling face along with their lovers, in the sky.                                                                                   33
 
Empowered by the manthras that they knew these Vidhyadharas and sages were able to float in the sky and watch the mountain.                                                                   34
 
Others heard the following words  spoken by those great sages, the demi gods Charanas and  saints of great reputation,                                                                                    35
 
“The very strong Hanuman who is the son of  wind God Vayu who is as big as a mountain is going to cross the sky like the sharks cross the ocean.”                           36
 
“For the sake of Lord Rama, and for the sake of his monkey friends, he is attempting to the impossible job of crossing the ocean. “                                                                 37
 
The Vidhyadharas who heard these words of  the sages stood in the sky and watched Hanuman who had an  enormous form.                                                                      38
 
Hanuman who was like a small mountain shook his body, shed some of the hair from his body and like a big cloud made a very loud trumpeting sound.                                      39
 
Making up his mind to jump to a great height, Hanuman rotated his big round tail, which is covered by hair all over,  like a eagle rotating a snake.                                                 40
 
Swiftly being rotated behind him , his thick tail, resembled an enormous snake being drawn hither and thither by Lord Garuda. (Eagle  on whom Lord Vishnu rides)           41
 
Hanuman stood stiff with his forelegs, which resembled  huge iron pillars, made his belly as small as possible and readied his hind legs for a big jump.                                     42
 
That great Hero, shortened his arms and neck and increased his virility, stature and power to the maximum extent possible.                                                                                   43
 
Looking above, staring  afar and staring  in to the sky he controlled his breath for the big jump.                                                                                                                              44
 
Standing firm on his two legs, extending his ears to catch all the sound , making up his mind  to travel  fast in the sky,  that Great monkey  who is very strong,  faced the other monkeys and spoke to them as follows.                                                                           45
 
“I would travel to Sri Lanka which is protected by Ravana like  the holy arrow sent by Lord Rama with the speed of  the torrential wind.”                                                          46
 
“If I am not able to find Sita in Sri Lanka, I would then go to the heavens with the same speed.”                                                                                                                              47
 
“If I am not able to locate her there also, with great ease , I will tie Ravana and bring him here.”                                                                                                                                48
 
“Whatever may happen, I would return after fulfilling the task and return  along with Sita and if not I would bring the whole Sri Lanka along with Ravana.”                              49
 
After talking like to this to the other monkeys, the great monkey Hanuman, without any worry and with great speed resembling that of Garuda, rose up in the sky.              50
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:08:12 AM
When he rose up in the sky, the trees in that mountain along  with their branches  also rose along with him.                                                                                             51
 
Along with him , he took away flower-laden trees  with white fat  cranes using  the speed of his thighs  and traveled in the clear paths of the sky.                                               52
 
Those trees which traveled along with him by the speed of his thighs, returned back after some time like the relatives who go with the guests and return after some time after the send off.                                                                                                                             53
 
Those sala (possibly pine trees) trees which rose to the sky by the speed of the thigh of Hanuman accompanied him like the soldiers who accompany their king.                        54
 
Surrounded by many types of fully flower-laden trees, the mountain like Hanuman was looking surprisingly wonderful.                                                                                     55
 
Those well mature trees fell in the sea like the mountains slain by Indra[3] and drowned deep.                                                                                                                                 56         
 
Hanuman who was similar to a cloud and  looked like a mountain surrounded by different type of flowers, buds , tender leaves and fire flies.                                                        57
 
Those trees along with  heaps of  flowers from them which were uprooted by the speed of the thighs of Hanuman returned back to the water like the friends after a send off.        58                                                             
 
The multi coloured  and different kinds of flowers   which were light by nature which fell of due to the fast movement of Hanuman, fell in to the sea.                                            59
 
Because of them the great sea glittered  like a sky full of stars                                        60
 
In addition , decorated by the series of multi coloured mountains which were falling behind, Hanuman looked like a streak of lightning in front of clouds which travel at a great height.                                                                                                                     61
 
Strewn by the great speed of Hanuman the flowers which fell on the water looked like the sky strewn with millions of stars.                                                                                     62
 
The great storm  generated by his travel  attracted greatly the clouds, which were shining once in a while due to lightning.                                                                                      63
 
The sky with clouds which were rising high, and the water filled ocean moving by tides of great speed looked alike.                                                                                              64
 
Pointing high towards the sky, those two hands of Hanuman looked similar to two five headed snakes coming out of the peak of mountains.                                                    65
 
That great monkey appeared as if he was preparing to drink the great ocean full of high tides and also as if he was wishing to drink the sky also.                                            66
( since he was moving up and down, it appeared at one moment that he was trying to drink the sea and at another moment the sky)
 
The two eyes of Hanuman who was traveling in the sky  appeared as if they were shining like two mountain fires at two different points.                                                              67
 
The two big yellow eyes of the chief of the monkey , shined like the moon and sun in the solar system.                                                                                                                    68
 
His face which appeared reddish by his large red nose, looked similar to the sky with a red setting sun.                                                                                                               69
 
His tails, which were held aloft in the sky, looked like Indra’s flag held aloft in the sky.
                                                                                                                                       70       
 
With his white sparkling teeth ,the famous and wise son of Wind god in the round created by his tail,  looked similar to the sun framed by his halo.                                            71
 
His reddish behind appeared as if it is a reddish laterite split mountain.                       72
 
The wind passing through the armpits of the monkey who was crossing the sea made thunderous swooshing sound made by the clouds.                                                        73
 
That monkey hero appeared like a comet with a tail traveling through the sky.              74
(This was a bad omen to the people of Sri Lanka)
 
The great statured monkey who was equal to the rising sun shined  with his waistcloth like an elephant.                                                                                                         75
 
With his great body floating in the sky and its reflection in the depths of the ocean, the monkey looked like a ship being driven by the wind.                                                76
 
Whichever part of the atmosphere he traveled , that portion appeared greatly agitated by the speed of his body.                                                                                                 77
 
That monkey who was traveling with great speed  was beating away the high tides of the sea by his immense chest.                                                                                                78
 
The speed of the wind generated by the moving monkey as well as the moving clouds twisted the sea greatly. By their great sounds.                                                             79                       
 
That monkey who was dragging with him the great tides of the salty sea, traveled as if he was separating the land and the sky.                                                                             80
 
Moving with immense speed and crossing the mountain(resembling the mount Meru) like high tides he appeared as if he was counting  those tides while  crossing them.             81
 
The seawater thrown towards the clouds by the monkey traveling at great speed mixed with the clouds and appeared like clouds of the autumn.                                            82
 
Those whales, crocodiles, fishes and tortoise which appeared above the water looked like human limbs when the cloths was removed from them.                                               83
 
At that time the big snakes living in the sea seeing the flying chief of monkeys mistook him to be ,Garuda the eagle.                                                                                            84
 
His shade ,which was ten yojanas[4] broad and thirty yojanas long ,appeared pretty over the water.                                                                                                                               85
 
Broadly placed over the sea his shadow in the water appeared as if it was a  were a huge crowd of fish following him .                                                                                          86
 
Hanuman who was very powerful , very huge  and a great monkey appeared as if he was a winged mountain floating in the sky without any support.                                           87
 
That monkey who was very powerful  caused the sea to look like a mountain pass  because of the high speed he was traveling in his path.                                                 88
(because of his great speed the water parted below him and was like a mountain pass)
 
He traveled like the king of birds through the route in which the birds flew and appeared as if a fast moving wind was dragging the clouds.                                                        89
 
The huge clouds attracted by the monkey shined with colours of white, red , blue and yellow .                                                                                                                  90
 
He appeared as if he was a moon which is traveling through  the cloud being hid at times and being seen at times.                                                                                                    91
 
The Devas, gandarwas  and Danavas[5] rained flowers on the fast flying monkey.            92
 
Then as if to aid the work of Lord Rama, the sun did not scorch him  and the wind made a pleasant atmosphere round him.                                                                                       93
 
The sages praised the monkey who was traveling with great speed and also the Devas and Gandharvas  sang in praise of the great one.                                                                   94
 
Seeing the monkey did not appear tired by his exertions, Rakshasas and Nagas, Yakshas and devas praised him with glee.                                                                                       95
 
When the great monkey was traveling thus the God of the ocean thought of methods of honoring the descendent of Ikshu Vaku.                                                                            96
(One of the well-known forefathers of Lord Rama)
 
He thought that if he did not help Lord Hanuman in his effort all those who can talk would speak ill of him.                                                                                                97
 
Since the Sagara kings belonging to the Ikshu Vaku clan raised him and Hanuman was helping their descendent , The God of Ocean thought that Hanuman should not get tired.
                                                                                                                                        98                                                                                                                                       
( Bhageeratha one of the forefathers of Lord Rama brought water from the head of Lord Siva to the dried up sea so that Bhageeratha’s  ancestors should get salvation from their sins and thus filled up the sea)
 
He thought that he should take suitable action, which would refresh  Hanuman and also provide him with rest so that he can cross the remaining distance easily.                    99
 
Thinking properly like this,  the God of the ocean spoke to the mountain Hiranya Nabha(Golden bellied) also called as Mainaka (son of Mena)who was hiding within him.                         
                                                                                                                                       100                                                                 
(He was the son of Himalayas and his queen Mena)
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:08:50 AM
“Hey1 mountain chief, you have been appointed over here to monitor the entry of Asuras living in Patala[6] by Indra, the king of Devas”.                                                          101
 
“You are standing  here closing the way to prevent them from  come up  by  those powerful ones living in the vast Patala “.                                                                102
 
“Oh! Mountain , only you have the power to grow sideways and also bottom to the  top. Hey, mountain chief, it is because of this I have come here to speak to you, please get up.”                                                                                                                               103
 
“This monkey chief Hanuman is flying in the sky with great valor for doing a dangerous errand to Lord Sri Rama. He is now going to come  just above you”.                       104
 
“ I need to help him for all the descendents of Ikshu Vaku are worth worshipping by me and  therefore they are fit to be worshipped by you also.”                                         105
 
“We have to do good  and we should not leave it undone for duties  performed at the correct time brings bad name to good people. “                                                   106
 
“ Raise up above the water level and let the great monkey who is our guest who is fit to be worshipped stand on you for some time.”                                                              107
 
“Oh mountain with golden peaks, which are served by devas and Gandharvas., let Hanuman take rest on you and go refreshed  his remaining way”.                          108
 
“You should know the good qualities of Lord Rama, the parting pangs of his wife Sita and also tiredness of Lord Hanuman, and try to raise up fast.”                                      109
 
The Mainake Mountain which was full of forests, climbers and golden peaks listening to the words of the ocean rose up fast.                                                                               110
 
That Mainaka Mountain which was rising very high looked like the glittering Sun God with his rays coming out piercing a thick cloud.                                                           111
 
That mountain which had great fame, ordered to thus by the God of ocean within a very short time exhibited its peaks outside the water.                                                           112
 
Those peaks which were golden, pointed and very great ,resembled the rising Sun God and appeared as if  they  were rubbing the sky, and the deep blue sky tinted by the sparkling golden peaks looked as if it has become golden in colour.                    113-114
 
The mountain which had  several peaks of  innate glitter  and of sparkling gold colour resembled hundreds of Suns.                                                                                       115
 
Rising above by itself in the middle of  salty ocean and standing in front of him, Hanuman thought that it was an obstacle.                                                                   116
 
That fast moving monkey chief easily brushed  off  its  tall peaks as if wind brushes of  the cloud.                                                                                                                       117
 
That mountain which was pushed aside by the monkey, was astonished by his strength and also became happy because of it.                                                                          118
 
That mountain which stood tall in the sky, became happy and took a human form, stood on his own peak and said as follows to the valorous monkey:-                                   119
 
“Hey great monkey you have done some thing which other people cannot do.”        120
 
“Please get down on to my peaks and relax.”                                                               121
 
“The ocean was remade by the ancestors of Lord Rama, and the Ocean God worships you who is engaged in the job of helping Rama as an act of gratefulness.”                         122
 
“We always have to repay, the good done to us. This is the perennial duty of our religion. So he wants to help you and make you beholden to him.”                                123
 
“He requested me with respect to provide a resting place to you in my pleasant valley so that you need not jump at a stretch the one hundred yojanas and then easily jump the rest of the way. And so hey,  great monkey you please stay on me for some time, take rest and then proceed.  “                                                                                                      124-125
 
“Hey monkey chief, savour the very tasty roots and fruits lovingly offered by the God of Ocean , and you can proceed very much refreshed soon.”                                            126
 
“ Hey monkey chief, you know that receiving and showering hospitality on good people is a blessed act in all the three worlds and apart from that,  you do have another connection with me.”                                                                                                   127
 
“Hey monkey chief, I consider you the greatest among all those monkeys who can move fast and jump very high.”                                                                                           128
 
“It is well known that those  learned ones who desire to perform right full acts , that even if a guest is not a great one he is fit to be  worshipped. Then what to say when the guest happens to be a great person like you.”                                                                    129
 
“Hey great monkey, you are the son of Vayu (the wind god) who is great among the devas and equal in speed to him.                                                                             130
 
“Hey holy one, if you are worshipped the Wind God receives it himself and please also hear about another reason why you are fit to be worshipped by me,”                       131
 
“Hey son, during Krutha Yuga Mountains also had wings and they were traveling to all places like Wind and Garuda.”                                                                                    132
 
“Because the mountains were traveling all over the great sages  and society of devas who were with them as well as all living beings, were terror struck because of the fear that these mountains may fall on them.”                                                                            133
 
“Because of this reason, Devendra who had done one hundred fire sacrifices, became enraged and starting to cut the wings of the mountains in to pieces in different places using his Vajrayudha[7] (Diamond equipment literally). “                                     134
 
“That angry Devendra intent on cutting my wings neared me  but the great wind god blew me away fast from that place. “                                                                          135
 
“Your father pushed me inside this salt sea without any harm coming to my wings and thus,  I alone was saved.”                                                                                              136
 
“And so I worship you because  I should have worshipped  the God of wind. And Monkey chief , you know that this connection  between both of us is really great.”      137
 
“And so Monkey chief , because of this accept the hospitality provided by me and the Ocean God and bless us.”                                                                                        138
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, relax and take rest and accept our worship, and also accept our love. and I have become happy by meeting with you. “                                         139
 
Thus told by the great mountain the great monkey said” I am pleased with your hospitality. You have provided all the hospitality to me and I have accepted it.” 140
 
“The time for performance of my duty is getting over and also the day light hours are nearing to an end. Apart from this I have given my word that I will not tarry in between doing this great work.”                                                                                               141
(See the 46th stanza of this chapter)
 
Thus telling the valorous monkey chief  Hanuman patted the mountain on its peaks and with a smile re entered the sky and recommenced his journey.                                   142
 
That monkey who was the son of wind God was seen off  with respect by the mountain as well as the ocean and was worshipped by them by suitable wishes.                            143
 
After this he left the mountain and ocean and traveled high and started to go forward by the path of his father and started traveling in the clear sky.                                        144
 
The son of Wind God further rose up and moving in the right direction and started traveling without any support in the clear sky.                                                   145             
 
Witnessing this almost impossible second act being performed, all Sidhas, devas and sages appreciated him.                                                                                          146
 
Seeing the great act of the golden peaked Mainaka mountain, all the devas and Devendra who were there in the sky, became extremely happy.                                          147
 
The great Indra with his ebbing happiness and with stuttering voice due to that  told the following words  to Mainaka ,the mountain chief.                                                    148
 
“ Hey golden peaked king of the mountains, I have become very pleased with you.”     149
 
“Hey , pleasant one I have given you my protection.”                                              150
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:09:31 AM
“You have provided help in the right time to valorous Hanuman who is fearless even when there was a need to be afraid.“                                                                              151
 
“This monkey is going in the service of Lord Rama who is the son of Dasaratha and because of your hospitality to him, I am extremely pleased. “                                       152
 
Because of these words, the mountain chief understood that even Indra the king of devas was pleased with him and became very happy.                                                          153
 
Thus the mountain chief stood there firmly and Hanuman was moving extremely fast over the ocean.                                                                                                         154
 
At that time the devas ,gandarwas , siddhas and the great sages seeing the fast moving monkey chief in the sky, told Surasa the mother of Nagas (serpents) who had the splendor of the Sun thus.                                                                                                              155
 
.”This great Hanuman who is the son of the god of Wind is flying over the sea. Please take a ferocious rakshasa form which touches the sea, which is like mountain and  with red eyes and vampire like teeth and delay his progress.”                                      156-157
 
“ We want to know (test)  for the second time,  his strength and virility and also would like to see whether he will win you over by trick or become dejected.”                      158
(though they had an inkling of this from his behavior with Mount Mainaka, they wanted to reconfirm)
 
Thus requested and respected by the devas, Surasa devi took an unusual ugly fear creating form which is more suitable to the rakshasas  and stood in the middle of the sea and neared Hanuman and spoke to him thus:-                                                   159-160
 
“Hey monkey, you have been allotted as food to me by the devas and so I am going to eat you. Enter my open mouth.”                                                                                         161
 
Thus spoken to the great Hanuman,  saluting her and with a pleasant face spoke to her thus:-                                                                                                                              162
 
“Rama the son of Dasaratha came to the Dandakaranya forest along with his brother Lakshmana and his wife Sita and was living there.”                                                    163
 
“He earned the enmity of Rakshasas and when he was otherwise engaged, Ravana abducted his wife the renowned Sita.”                                                                       164
 
“As per the orders of Rama I am going as an emissary in search of her. You who are a citizen in the kingdom of Rama are  also  bound to help him out.”                             165
 
“Or else I promise you that after seeing Sita and also Rama who is very  much worried, I would come to you and reach your mouth.”                                                                    166
 
Thus requested by Hanuman, Surasa Devi who could take any form she wished , said to him” None can cross me and this is a boon given to me by the devas.”                     167
 
With a desire to know the strength of Hanuman, Surasa Devi the mother of Nagas further said” You can only go from here after entering my mouth. This is a boon given to me by Lord Brahma. “Saying this she enlarged the size of her mouth greatly opened it wide and stood before him.                                                                                        168-169
 
Angered by the words of Surasa, Hanuman told her “ Make your mouth suitably big so that you can swallow me.”                                                                                      170
 
Telling her thus, Hanuman became ten Yojanas big as Surasa was at that time ten yojanas big.                                                                                                                             171
 
Observing that he has grown to ten Yojanas Surasa enlarged her mouth to twenty yojanas.                                                                                                                      172
 
The very intelligent Hanuman seeing that she has opened her mouth to twenty yojanas, became angry and took up the form of thirty yojanas.                                              173
 
Seeing this Surasa made her mouth forty yojanas wide.                                          174
 
The valorous Hanuman became fifty yojanas big.                                                 175
 
Surasa made her mouth sixty yojanas wide and Hanuman became seventy yojanas big.     
                                                                                                                                  176
Surasa made her mouth eighty yojanas wide.                                                           177
 
The mountain like Hanuman made himself ninety yojanas big.                                178
 
Surasa Devi made her mouth one hundred yojanas wide.                                          179
 
Very intelligent and wise Hanuman seeing the wide open mouth of Surasa with protruding toungue , very fearful and similar to hell, instead of increasing his size further, started reducing himself fast and like a wind driven cloud became as big as a thumb.                                                                                                                                           
                                                                                                                                 180-181
 
With great speed, the great one  entered  her mouth and suddenly came out and standing in the sky itself  told the following words:-                                                               182
 
“Hey  Dakshayani(daughter of Daksha) my salutations to you. I have entered your mouth and so taking this as the truth, allow me to go to the place where Sita lives.”            183
(These words bring out the fact that Hanuman knew about her divine origin. This also is indicated by the fact that he saluted her-see Stanza 162)
 
Seeing Hanuman like the moon which has come out of the mouth of Rahu, Surasa took her real form and told him, “ Hey, son, Her monkey chief, Let you have a pleasant journey and let your  errand be successful.. Please become happy after reuniting Rama and Sita.”                                                                                                          184-185
 
All beings witnessing the third and impossible task of Hanuman and  praised the monkey chief and said “Great, great.”                                                                                    186
 
Equivalent in speed to Garuda , he left the sea which is the abode of  Varuna and which was very difficult to cross, and rose above to the sky and traveled further.                  187
( Some commentators believe that Hanuman descended in to the sea, took bath and rose up, because he entered the mouth of Surasa.
 
Hanuman then traveled like Garuda in the sky which is served by the rain drops, in which the birds live, peopled by Gandharwas like Thuumburu[8] who sing ragas like kaisika, in which rainbows exist, in which aero planes which  travel high on vehicles such as lion, elephant, tiger, birds snake and crocodile exist, which is well decorated, which is being lit by  fire of Vajrayudha , thunder and lightning, Which is populated by people who do good deeds and those great ones who have won over heavens,  Which is being constantly served by Agni the fire God who is being fed by the portions to be given to devas, Which is full with Sun, moon, planets and stars. Which is filled by sages, Yakshas, Gandarwas and Nagas, Which is really great, which is very clear, which is full, In which Viswavasu the king of Gandarwas travels, in which the elephant of Devendra travels, Which is the way of Sun and the moon, which does always good, Which is the roof constructed by Lord Brahma for all living beings and  Which is populated by great valorous vidhyadaras.
                                                                                                                            188-194
 
Like the wind he also dragged the clouds with him.                                                195
 
Attracted by the monkey chief the clouds shined in black and also red, yellow and white
colours.                                                                                                                    196
 
That monkey  who was entering and coming out of the clouds looked like the moon of the rainy season which is completely invisible and visible at different times.              197
 
Hanuman the Son of God of wind, looked like a winged mountain visible from all places in the support less sky.                                                                                               198
 
A Rakshasi(ogress) called Simhika who can assume any form she likes saw the fast moving  Hanuman and thought in her mind thus.                                                  199
 
“ In the very long time which has past , only today I am going to eat proper and sufficient food for after a long time an animal of this size has come my way.”                      200
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:10:18 AM
Thinking thus in her mind she dragged Hanuman’s shadow  and once his shadow was caught Hanuman started thinking thus.                                                                      201
 
“ Like a torrential wind of  the sea blowing against , a big ship slows it down, my strength has reduced and I am being stopped. “                                                       202
 
Then the monkey peered all round, to the top, below and saw  a very large being floating in the sea.                                                                                                                      203
 
Examining it carefully, he thought, “This must be the fearsome and big being , as told by the king of Monkeys Sugreeva, which can drag one’s shadow and I do not have any doubt about it.”                                                                                                                204
(In Kishkinda Kanda in the forty first chapter Sugreeva describes about this Rakshasi to Hanuman)
 
That wise and intelligent monkey recognized her as Simhika and started increasing his size like the black cloud in rainy season.                                                                    205
 
Seeing the increasing size of monkey chief’s body, She opened her mouth ,which was like Patala and the sky very wide.                                                                           206
 
Thundering like a series of clouds she started chasing the monkey.                        207
 
That wise monkey saw her throat through her widely open mouth , he also saw the big size of her body and her Achilles Heel[9].                                                                   208
 
Slightly reducing his body’s size, he fell with lot of force and like thunder in to her wide-open throat.                                                                                                              209
 
The Siddhas and Charanas (celestial beings)  saw him vanish in his throat like the moon vanishing on full moon,  eclipse days                                                                        210
 
With his sharp nails  he tore her Achilles heel  and with the speed of wind and mind came out of it .                                                                                                                    211
 
The fearless monkey chief Hanuman thus killed her by his quick power of thinking, valor. and capacity to take right decisions at right time and started increasing in his size.
                                                                                                                                    212
Because the monkey tore apart her chest she fell down dead in to the sea. Is it that Hanuman was created by Brahma to kill her!                                                             213
 
Seeing how fast he killed Simhika, those beings who live in the sky told monkey chief  thus:-                                                                                                                           214
 
“Hey , great monkey , you have now done a very great deed . A great animal is dead. We all wish you to complete the job that you have undertaken without any problems.  215
 
“Hey monkey chief, if any one has  your four qualities of  valor, wisdom, intelligence and quick thought process, he would never face any problems in completing his job.        216
 
Understanding the meaning of their words, respected by all of them, he reached the sky again and moved forward.                                                                                             217
 
Once he completed traveling one hundred Yojanas, he almost reached the other shore and seeing in all directions he saw a very big forest.                                                           218
 
Traveling in the sky itself  he saw the island decorated by very many kinds of trees, the Malaya Mountain and its sub forests.                                                                       219
 
That heroic and intelligent Hanuman, examined the sea, seashores, the trees on the sea shore, the rivers, which were the wives of the sea and  ports as also his big cloud like body, which was hiding the sky and thought.                                                           220-221
 
“ Seeing the big growth of my body and its torrential speed, the Rakshasas would get curious about me”. Thus thought the monkey chief.                                             222
 
He then reduced his mountain like size of his body, and took his real form like, the great sage  from whom ignorance has been removed.                                                     223
 
He further reduced his size and resembled the great Vamana who destroyed the pride of King Mahabali by measuring three steps.                                                              224
 
That Hanuman who can assume many pretty forms reached the sea shore examined his stature himself and thinking about the job that he has to do ,  assumed a form that is suitable  for the job and became one who cannot be defeated by others.              225
 
From there  the great Hanuman who was like a big mountain range landed in the Lamba (hanging) mountain, which had pretty  fertile peaks full of pandanus , coconut and Karnikara (some herb) plants.                                                                                226
 
That Hanuman reached the seashore  and saw the city of Lanka, which was on the Trikoota(three spire) mountain and reduced his stature to the minimum required size  and bullying  the animals and birds jumped from the mountain.                                    227
 
Hanuman with his immense strength crossing the  great ocean, which was populated, by Danavas and Pannagas jumped on the other shore and saw  The city of Lanka which was similar to the city of Amaravathi, the capital of Indra.                                           228
 
                        Thus ends the first chapter of Sundara Kanda which,
               is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmik
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:11:12 AM
Second Chapter
                                              Second Chapter
                            Entering in to the city of Sri Lanka at night
 
(In this chapter the musings of Hanuman on seeing the city of Sri Lanka, his first impressions about it and his thinking on the strategy he has to adopt  is described)
 
It is wonderful that the great one crossed the great ocean, which was impossible to cross, and  stared at Sri Lanka situated on the top of Trikoota Mountains.                               1
 
By the rain of flowers shed by the different trees here and there, Hanuman who was decked by flowers all over after completing the task he has undertaken looked as if he was a victorious hero.                                                                                              2
 
The truly heroic Hanuman though he had crossed one hundred yojanas did not know what is tiresomeness. Not only that he was not even breathing with effort..                              3
 
“I can jump and cross several more hundred yojanas and so reaching the other shore of a sea which is only one  hundred yojanas is not a great job!” He thought.                            4       
 
The great one among heroes  and the fastest among those who can jump,  crossed the sea and neared the city of Sri Lanka.                                                                             5
 
 He walked in to  the center of gardens  which had light bluish lawns, strewn with stones here and there and with dense population of trees                                                             6
 
That very resplendent monkey chief Hanuman, went by the side of mountains full of trees  and forests in full bloom.                                                                                                    7
 
That son of wind God , stood on a mountain with several peaks  and saw  the city of Sri Lanka laden with the gardens and minor forests .                                                            8
 
He , the monkey chief , saw pine trees, Karnikara[10] trees , date palms, Priyala trees, lemon trees, wild jasmine trees, panadanus bushes(Thazham poo) , incense filled long pepper trees, kadamba trees , seven leafed banana trees, fully flowered asana trees, Kovidara trees, karavira trees, and also many trees bent with heavy load of flowers which were full of  birds and whose tips were being shaken by the breeze that was blowing all around, ponds  full of swans and ducks , lotus and lily flowers and many, many tree filled gardens which  flowered and fruited all round the year, many swimming pools specially constructed for play and also several pretty flower gardens.                             9-12       
 
         The great Hanuman then saw the beautiful city of Sri Lanka  which resembled the city of Amaravathi of the devas and which was being ruled by Ravana . protected on all the four sides by Ravana himself, fearsome archers,  and ever roaming Rakshasas because Sita was abducted and kept in the city, and which was  also protected well by moats full of  lotus and lily flowers and gold like tall walls all around. It also had mansions which resembled the planets the autumn sky, dazzling white elevated long wide avenues, strange golden tower gates decorated by climbers and other decorative items, many spires used to keep watch on the enemies from out side, flags  and other banners..
                                                                                                                          13-18.
 
That monkey chief  thought the city, which was built on the mountain as a city with white and regal houses , which were floating in the sky.                                                            19
 
He saw the city built by Viswa Karma(the architect of Devas) and ruled by Ravana was flying in the sky.                                                                                                            20
 
He approached the northern gate of Sri Lanka whose fort aments appeared as if they were the waist, whose  moats appeared as if they were dresses, whose guns and spears appeared as if they were the hairs and  whose  spires appear as if they were the ear studs and which was constructed by Viswa Karma after deep thought, which appeared as tall as the Kailasa mountain(abode of Lord Siva) and  which appeared as if it was touching the sky, and whose buildings are constructed  one over  another so that  it appeared  as if the whole city was flying, which was thickly populated by terrible Rakshasas like the city of Bhogavathi which was  populated by Nagas, which is strongly built, which does not have dirt, which was once occupied by Lord Kubera, which is protected by several valorous Rakshasas who were armed with spears and long swords similar to a cave being protected by serpents and which can never be evaluated as to what it is and started thinking.
                                                                                                                                21-25                                                                                                                                                                         
 
Observing the fierce security , the sea and the terrible enemy Ravana, the monkey started thinking.                                                                                                                26
 
“Even if the monkey army reaches here it would not be of any use, for even devas cannot wage a war and win over Lanka.”                                                                                    28
 
“Even if Rama reaches  the very peculiar city of Sri Lanka which is really impossible to enter and is ruled by  Ravana, what possibly can the great warrior do?”           29
 
“In case of Rakshasas, there is no point in talking to them in a friendly manner or with sweet words nor can they be corrupted by money and nor is it possible to make them fight against each other and the only option of war cannot even be thought of as a possibility. “                                                                                                            30
 
“This is because only  Angadha the son of Bali, Neela the monkey chief , the heroic king Sugreeva and myself  can enter this city.”                                                                   31
 
“:Let me find out whether Sita the daughter of Janaka is alive or not and after seeing her I can thinking  of  a strategy.”                                                                                              32
 
“I can not enter this city of Rakshasas  and which is protected by them in the present form”                                                                                                                                33
 
“These Rakshasas  are highly valorous, very strong and greatly heroic  and so can only be deceived by me who am searching Sita.”                                                                          34
 
“ I should search the city of Sri Lanka with an almost invisible form  and  that too in the night because for completing this great deed , it is the most appropriate time.”               35
 
Knowing that , even Devas and Asuras would find difficult to enter that city, Hanuman took several deep breaths and started thinking.                                                               36
 
“What trick should I employ to search so that I would not be visible to Ravana the bad Rakshasas?”                                                                                                                      37
 
“The job which I have taken oath to complete should certainly be done and  also I should be able to talk with the daughter of Janaka alone” thought he.                                     38
 
“When a job has to be done , sending a messenger who is unstable and  who cannot do the proper thing at the proper time, is like having darkness at dawn.”                        39
 
“Even after  knowing well as to what has to be done and what should not be done, there is no possibility of completing the job if the messenger is over confident  and thinks that he  only can complete the job.”                                                                                          40
 
“How will the job be completed properly? How no problems will crop up preventing its completion? And what should be done so that crossing of the great ocean does not become a waste?”                                                                                                    41
 
“Suppose I am seen by the Rakshasas  then the wish of Lord Rama to Kill Ravana can definitely not be done. “                                                                                             42
 
“Even if one takes the form of Rakshasa  is it possible to hide from these Rakshasas and if it is in any other form this task would definitely not be done.”                                  43
 
 
“I know the fact that even the God of Wind cannot move here unhindered.. Is there anything that these powerful Rakshasas do not know?”                                          44
 
“If I remain here with my present form I will be destroyed and Lord’s mission will surely fail.”                                                                                                                           45
 
“So I will go as a dwarf  but in my present form  and enter the city at night to complete the mission of Sri Rama.”                                                                                           46
 
“After entering the unapproachable city of Ravana, then I can search all houses and buildings for the daughter of Janaka.”                                                                      47
 
At that time thinking thus , anxious to see Sita (daughter of  King Videha) He started waiting for the sunset.                                                                                               48
 
After sunset  and in the night Hanuman the Son of God of wind, assumed a very minute strange form as big as a cat.                                                                                     49
 
That valorous Hanuman jumped and entered with lot of speed the beautiful city with clearly demarcated  avenues .                                                                                   50
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:11:41 AM
That monkey saw that big city which resembled the city of Gandarwas which was full of palatial buildings built on pillars inlaid with silver and gold, having windows made of gold, having seven to eight stories and having floors decorated by gold and crystal.
                                                                                                                             51-52
 
Diamonds and other precious stones decorated those grounds of the houses of Rakshasas and several garlands of pearls were used to decorate them.                                  53
 
The strange wall hangings  made of gold , which was used to decorate all over, the city by the Rakshasas made the city glitter in eminence.                                                   54
 
Though the Great monkey became happy on seeing the city which had very big white buildings which had windows made of gold of the purest quality, which was surrounded by very powerful night patrol, which was being protected by the great valor of Ravana, which cannot be described by ones thought process and which is surprisingly beautiful.
he felt dejected because he was mainly interested in seeing Sita..                           55-56
 
The moon also making up his mind to help Hanuman, rose up along with its thousands of rays  ,decorating  the roof of  the world with moonlight , in the middle of the stars and along with them.                                                                                                      57
(note: that before this the ocean, God of wind and Sun were trying to help Hanuman)
 
That monkey hero saw the moon who was having the luster of a conch, having the colour of milk and lotus stem and who was shining above  as if he was a swan swimming in the lotus pond.                                                                                                              58
 
 
          Thus ends the second chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:12:18 AM
Third Chapter
                                           Third Chapter 
                             Victory over the goddess of Sri Lanka
( The  stopping of Hanuman by the Goddess of Lanka  and his victory over her)
 
Hanuman the monkey chief   who is the son of the God of Wind  , who is remarkably intelligent and strong,   and who was on the Lamba mountain which was as big as a cloud ,prepared with courage to enter the city of Lanka which had pretty gardens and lakes and  which was also protected by Ravana .                                                                              1-2
 
Hanuman saw the city  which was shining like the clouds of autumn,  which had the booming sound of ocean, where sea breeze  wafts continuously,  , which was similar to Alakapuri the capital of  Kubhera[11], which was full of enthusiastic army, which had very regal and pretty tower gates, which had a white decorated gate way, which was protected like Bhogawathi the city of serpents, which was great, which was having clouds like the streak of lightning, which reached up to the path of stars, which was similar to Amaravathi the city of Devendra, which had cool breeze, which was surrounded by big golden walls, which had the jingling sound of bells, and which was decorated by flags, 
again and again and with thoughtful surprise  neared it and with happiness and force jumped and climbed its walls.                                                                               3-8
 
Hanuman saw with pleasure  the city of Sri Lanka .which had Gates made of gold, which had  floors on which precious gems were embedded, which had majestic towers that appeared to fly and  were made of gold in which diamonds, crystals, pearls and other precious gems were embedded, which had courtyards and houses made of molten gold and decorated by silver and thus appearing white , which had steps  made of precious gems interspersed with powder of crystals through which swans walked hither and thither, which was filled with sounds of Krouncha (mythical birds) birds and pea cocks , which had  many musical instruments which  when played were making  reverberating sounds and which was like the city of Indra touching the sky .                             9-12
 
That heroic Hanuman seeing the splendorous , rare and richly endowed  city of the chief Rakshasas thought like this.                                                                                       13
 
“Protected by the army of Ravana which has kept all arms in readiness, this city  can not be conquered  by anyone using his strength.”                                                            14
 
“This perhaps can be entered only by the famous Kumuda, Angadha, the great monkeys Sushena, Mainda and Dwividha .                                                                            15
 
“This could be entered  possibly by Sugreeva the son of Sun, Kusa Parva the monkey, Jambhavan the bear, Kethumala and myself.”                                                               16
 
“He then remembered  about the great valor and masculinity of the great heroes  Rama and Lakshmana and became pleased.”                                                                          17
 (Though the above monkeys were  capable of entering the city, he was not sure that they would be able to conquer it and so the thought of these heroes pleased him)
 
Hanuman saw that famous decorated city which had palace like buildings from which darkness was removed , which was complete and which did not  have any deficiencies and which looked like a young lady who wore  the glitter of gems as her dress, the pretty stables as ear studs and   who had the  workshops of the city as breasts.                18-19
 
Then the city goddess took her actual form and  saw the very strong, monkey chief who was the son of the wind god   entering the city.                                                           20
(This goddess called Lanka Lakshmi was earlier called Vijaya Lakshmi and was the keeper of the treasury of Lord Brahma. She was once careless and did not do her work properly. Brahma cursed her to become the watch woman of Ravana He also told her that on the day she is defeated by a monkey, she will regain her original form)
 
That Goddess of Lanka City who was looked after by Ravana saw  the monkey chief and appeared with a grotesque face.                                                                                   21
 
She stood in front of the valorous  son of wind god and with a booming loud voice spoke to the son of wind.                                                                                                        22
 
“Who are you? Why have  you come here? Tell that which is the truth ,for then only  your soul will continue to exist”                                                                               23
 
“This city of Lanka is protected on all the four sides by the invisible soldiers of Ravana and so definitely you cannot enter it.”                                                                          24
   (this Sloka also indicates that the Goddess of Lanka is immortal and hence would continue protecting it even if the soldiers were defeated)
 
Then the valorous Hanuman replied to her who was in front of him,” I would tell the truthful answer to what you have asked.”                                                                   25
 
“By the way who are you? Why are seeing me cruelly? Why are you dangerously bullying me? But also why are you standing near the gate?”                                      26
 
That lady of Lanka who was capable of taking any form she liked hearing the words of Hanuman, addressed the son of wind God with hatred thus:-                                     27
 
“I am one who obey the orders of Ravana , the all powerful  king of rakshasas and .  I cannot be won over by anybody and I protect this city.”                                           28
 
“Hey monkey, you cannot enter here disregarding me. Now itself you are going to sleep after loosing your soul after I kill you.”                                                                       29
 
“ Monkey, I am the city of Lanka and I alone guard it with utmost care and I am telling this to you only.”                                                                                                           30
 
Hearing the words of Sri Lanka, Hanuman the monkey chief who was the son of Wind God, became sad and stood like another mountain.                                                    31
 
He who is an expert  and  the greatest among those who can jump facing her who has taken a feminine form, spoke to her softly like this:-                                                  32
 
“I am going to see this city which has forts, spires and towers. I have come here only for this as I am interested in it.”                                                                                          33
 
“My coming to this city of Lanka is to enable me to see the gardens, forests ,fields and mansions.”                                                                                                                 34
 
That Lanka Rakshasi who can take any form she likes, even after hearing the words of Hanuman, still spoke to him in a harsh manner.                                                        35
 
“Hey bad monkey , without winning over me who am  guarding this city , you cannot enter in to  it.”                                                                                                         36
 
Then the great monkey  facing the Rakshasi  told her, “Lady, I will just see the city and go away.”.                                                                                                                  37
 
Then the Goddess of Lanka shouted uproariously and with great strength beat the chief of the monkeys.                                                                                                               38
 
Having   been beaten by the lady of Lanka, that monkey chief who was a hero and also  the son of wind God roared in a very high pitch.                                                        39
 
Then Hanuman forgetting himself because of anger, folding his fingers  hit her strongly with his left fist.                                                                                                           40
 
Because he knew that she was a lady he did not show his anger too much.                 41
 
That Rakshasi because of the fist punch suddenly fell down on the ground with broken limbs, horrible face and showed her real form.                                                               42
 
Because of the knowledge that she was a woman,  seeing her fallen on the ground Hanuman looked at her with mercy.                                                                             43
 
After this that Goddess of Lanka with stuttering voice and devoid of pride  told him the following words.                                                                                                              44
 
“Hey, great hero, please show mercy on me. Hey ,Monkey chief who is soft by nature, please save me. Good people of great strength always are stable in showing justice.“    45
 
(She indicates that the just people who are strong do not kill a woman)
 
“Hey, very strong monkey chief, I am myself the Goddess of the city of Lanka and a great hero, and you have defeated me by your prowess.”                                              46
 
“Hey, Lord of the monkeys, I am telling you truly about the boon given to me by Brahma himself. And so please hear.”                                                                             47
 
“The day when a monkey defeats you by his prowess, then you please understand without doubt that bad time has come to the Rakshasas.”                                            48
 
“ Hey graceful one, by your sight, I surely understand that the time has come to me.. Whatever has been told by Brahma is the truth for no change can come to it.”       49
 
“The final end has come near to the bad soul Ravana and his rakshasas due to Sita.”                                                            .                                                                                                                                  50
“And so monkey chief, enter this city protected by Ravana  and do there whatever you wish to do.”                                                                                                               51
 
“So you who are the Lord of the monkeys, please enter this good town ruled by the Rakshasa king, which is badly affected by the curses, and search for the daughter of Janaka  properly..”                                                                                                    52
(This clearly indicates that Sita was present in the city. The curse refereed to above is given by the bull Nandi Deva the vehicle of Lord Shiva   when he was jeered at by Ravana)
 
          Thus ends the third chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki
   
   Thus ends the sixteenth day story of Ramayana sung by Lava and               
.                               Kusha in front of Rama
 
      Songs sung in   fourth  to twenty-fourth  chapters of Sundara Kanda by Lava and Kusha in front of Sri Rama at the place where AswaMedha sacrifice was being performed on seventeenth  day . The total verses sung on that day were 773

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:14:07 AM
Fourth Chapter
                                           Fourth Chapter 
                                   Travel inside the city of Lanka
               ( Description of his impressions of the city of Sri Lanka)
 
That Resplendent monkey chief and great Hero Hanuman winning over the great goddess of City of Lanka,   who in her valor could take any shape that she wishes, entered the city by jumping over the wall and not by crossing the gate.                                                     1
(When your intention is to destroy the city , it is believed that you should not enter by the gate)
 
Hanuman who always does good deeds  to the king of monkeys ,Sugreeva, entered the city and placed his left leg on the head of his enemy.                                                                      2
(It is believed if your first step is of left leg , you bring calamity to the city/house)
 
That monkey who was the son of the God of wind and who has entered the city at night, reached the main avenue of the city which was decorated by precious gems and flowers. and he saw round the city with extreme courage.                                                             3-4
 
That city which was full of music created by drums and which was full of sounds of happiness, had a lot of great buildings with windows decorated by diamonds like the great elephant of deva loka and looked like the sky decorated by clouds.                5
 
That city shined with the good  houses of the crowd of Rakshasas                                    6
 
That city with buildings of the type Padmam (lotus), Swasthikam(like swastika) and with palaces like Vardhamanam(ever increasing) had many beautifully constructed good houses and shined greatly  like the sky by its clouds .                                                     7
 
Hanuman who does only good service to the King of monkeys ,  with an intention of completing the work of Sri Rama,  completely saw that city which was decorated by pictures, garlands and ornaments and became happy.                                              8
 
That Son of God of wind,  who was going from one house to another house  saw houses of many sizes and shapes all over.                                                                                  9
 
He heard the three sweet musical sounds of Thara, Madhyama and Manthra, which emanated from head, throat and belly respectively from the voluptuous ladies who were like the Apasra (court dancers) of deva loka.                                                               10
 
In the houses of Lords, sounds of  the waist belt, sounds made of anklets, sounds while climbing stairs. Sounds of clapping hands and enthusiastic shouts were heard here and there.                                                                                                                             11
 
He also heard sound of chanting of Manthras(Sacred poems) from the houses of Rakshasas.                                                                                                                     12
 
He also saw Rakshasas who were experts in the knowledge of Vedas and also them who were shouting poems in praise of Ravana.                                                                     13
 
He also saw several spies among the great army of Rakshasa  who were standing round the main avenue of the city.                                                                                            14
 
He also saw  those who were doing penance for performing Yaga, those with uncut hair, those whose head was shaved off completely, those who had covered themselves with hide of cow, those who had one hand full of Durbha grass as weapons,  those who had fire pits as weapons, those who had spear and thorn pointed stick as weapons, those who had ordinary sticks as weapons, those who had only one eye, those who had only one ear, those who had hanging stomachs and chests, those who were fierce looking archers,
those who carried swords, those who had slanted mouth, those who carried pestle and mortars as weapons, those who were handicapped, those who were dwarfs, those who carried big steel rods, those who shined in peculiar shirts made of steel, those who were not very fat,  those who were not very thin, those who were tall, those who were dwarf, those who were very white, those who were very black, those who were very hunch backed, those who were midgets, those who were ugly looking, those who were in different shapes, those who were handsome, those who were holding flags, those who were holding small flags, those who were  having trees and spears as weapons, those who were having mace as weapon and also those  who were carrying different type of weapons.                                                                                                              15-20       
 
That great monkey further saw those who had in their hands rope and a stone, those who were wearing garlands, those who had applied perfumes, those who were wearing costly ornaments, those who were wearing different types of dresses, those who had joined the army in their free will, those who were carrying many sharp spears and those who were very strong people and  carried the Vajrayudha(ace made of diamond)                    21-22
 
Before the harem  he saw lakhs of very careful sentries appointed by the king of Rakshasas.                                                                                                                 23
 
Then the monkey chief saw the very famous and huge palace of the king of Rakshasas constructed on the mountain top, surrounded by walls and  moats full of lotus flowers  which had a very precious golden tower.                                                             24-25     
 
The great monkey entered the beautiful palace of the king of Rakshasas which was pretty, which was similar to heaven, which was echoing divine sounds, which was full of sounds of horses, which had the jingling sound of ornaments, which was protected by chariots, palanquins, planes, wonderful horses bringing only good and  four tusked elephants which were like a series of white clouds and  which was decorated by thick fat animals and birds and which was protected in all sides by Rakshasas.                                26-30
 
That Hanuman entered the harem of Ravana  which had surrounding walls made of gold and silver, which was decorated by  costly pearls and other precious stones and which was full of scented smoke emanating from good quality myrrh and sandalwood.       31
 
 
          Thus ends the fourth  chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:14:43 AM
Fifth Chapter
                                           Fifth Chapter
                                 Seeing of Rakshasa and Rakshasis
  ( Hanuman is searching the houses and streets of Lanka for Sita and is able to see many women but not her.)
 
Then the intelligent Hanuman, saw the moon, which was in the center of the sky, which was with rays and which was spreading the sheet of moon light, like an enthusiastic bull wandering in its stable.                                                                                                    1
(According to commentators, this sloka indicates that Hanuman entered Ravana’s house after midnight. Since moon increases the pain of parting to Sita and Rama, Hanuman thought him as scorching with rays like the sun)
 
Then he saw the moon, which destroys the sorrows of the world, which increased the levels of the great sea and which traveled by giving light to all beings.                        2
 
That Goddess Lakshmi who shined normally on the Mandara Mountain of earth, in the sea during dusk and  on the lotus in the ponds, at that time shined sitting on the moon. 3             
 
The moon in the sky  was similar to the swan in the sliver cage, lion in the caves of Mandara Mountain and the heroic soldier sitting on proud elephant.                            4
 
The moon, which was full of all its crescents, resembled the bullock with its sharpened horns, the silver mountain with its peaks, and  the elephant whose tusks were decorated by gold.                                                                                                                            5
 
That moon who did not loose the luster due to dense dew drops, who had borrowed light from the sun by which he drove away darkness, who was serving the luminous Lakshmi in his crystal clear mien and who had the rabbit mark, shined in the sky.                       6
 
The moon shone with great light like the lion climbing on the stone clusters, like the great elephant reaching the war and like the king getting his kingdom.                                      7
 
The early part of night, was devoid of darkness due to rise of the moon and was tainted by the eating of meat food by the Rakshasas and was full of lovers joining together after romantic quarrels.                                                                                                         8
 
At that time musical instruments like Veena gave strumming sounds from their strings, which was sweet to the ears and virtuous  wives were sleeping with their husbands and Rakshasas started wandering about  with very wonderful and horrible acts.                9
 
The intelligent monkey chief saw many houses where people were in the trance induced by consuming alcohol and which had garages for chariots, elephant and horse stables. 10
 
Those tipsy ones were teasing each other, placing their stout hands on each other and were shouting vulgar words at each other.                                                                   11
 
Those Rakshasas were baring their chest, putting their body on their sweet hearts, assuming various shapes and leaving free the tightly held bows.                              12
 
He also saw  several well made up maidens, some ladies who were sleeping, some who were laughing  and some who were upset and very angry.                                           13
 
That city  was full of trumpeting of elephants, well-honoured friends, gasping heroes and hissing snakes.                                                                                                                14
 
He also saw their some Rakshasas who were very intelligent, who talked sweetly, who were full of attention, who were considered noble in this world , who were made up in different manners and who had very good names.                                                       15
 
That Hanuman became very pleased  on seeing them who were handsome people, who had all sort of good qualities and who were looking good and suitable to their good qualities. He also saw some ugly people who had made up themselves  so as to look  as handsome.                                                                                                                    16
 
He saw many  star like women who were pretty, who had a very clean mind, who  were of good character, who were well known, who in spite being drunk were passionate towards their husbands.                                                                                                      17
 
He also saw many woman  like the birds hidden by flowers,   who were shining because of their wealth, who were very shy, who were attracted by tremendous passion and to whom their husbands were making passionate love in the mid of night.                      18
 
The intelligent Hanuman also saw  some  married women sitting in comfort on the laps of their husbands ,who were making passionate love with their husbands  and putting on nice behavior because of good upbringing, some who were  having interest in Dharma and some who were sitting at the top of  their houses.                                                     19     
(Here he describes virtuous woman of the house)
 
That monkey chief Hanuman, saw also many women with the colour of the flash of gold and some with the colour of molten gold, some  noble ladies with out the upper cloth covering them,  some with very pretty sensual organs with attractive colour, some who are of the colour of the moon because they were separated from their lovers, some who were glowing in light because they have got the lovers of their choice and also many happy and very  pretty girls in those houses.                                                       20-21
(Here the poet describes unmarried women in love)
 
He also saw some with faces as pretty as the full moon, some with curved eyelids over pretty eyes and some with ornaments like the flash of lightning.                              22
( He was seeing their eyes and faces to see whether they were human beings or Rakshasis  and their ornaments to see whether they were wearing Sita’s ornaments)
 
But he did not see  Sita  who was brought up in a royal family of good lineage,  who had very high celestial birth, who was with a body like a fully developed climbing plant  and who was born outside the womb as per her will.                                                           23
 
He became extremely sad and felt foolish because in spite of  a long search he was not  in a position of  being able to locate Sita who permanently dwells in the path of justice, who had very pretty eyes, who was full of love,  who for ever lived in the mind of her husband, who was anytime much greater than any great lady, who was suffering because of the absence of her husband, who had a neck made wet with tears, who in earlier days used to wear dollar hanging from  her neck, who was like a  peahen  which with its  very pretty wings was dancing in the forest , who was like a faded crescent of the moon, who was like a piece of gold dimmed by dust, who was like  the wound[12] pierced by an arrow and  who was the wife of Lord Rama who was greatest among those who speak and who was lord of human beings,                                                                                             24-27
 
 
 
          Thus ends the fifth   chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:15:06 AM
Sixth Chapter
                                           Sixth  Chapter
                                    Entering the house of Ravana
(Hanuman enters the houses of nobles in the palace complex of Ravana and finally enters the house of Ravana)
 
That monkey who can take any form he liked thoughtfully wandered with speed in to the different palatial houses of Sri Lanka.                                                                            1
 
Then that Hanuman whom Lakshmi has showered her grace, reached the house of the king of Rakshasas, which was surrounded by  walls, which glittered like Sunflower.  2
 
Examining the house protected by the Rakshasas like the lions protect the forest , the monkey chief glistened with wonder .(or by the glitter of the houses)                            3
 
That monkey chief saw  the great one’s great house which had pictures made of silver, which was decorated by gold, which had towers , multiple buildings  and pretty gates, which was occupied by great elephants ridden by heroic soldiers and chariot tied horses which cannot be controlled, which had chariots covered with the hides of tiger and lion and  were made of ivory, gold and silver and had booming sound, which had forever moving great mega chariots making huge sound inlaid with precious gems filled with special weapons and vessels and occupied by great heroes , which was filled  on all four sides by thousands of  different types pretty and special animals and birds ,which was saluted  and cared for by several Rakshasa sentries, Which was filled with many great ladies, which was occupied by jewel like ladies who were happy, which was the house of the king of Rakshasas, which was filled with booming sound of the ocean made by the jingling of very special jewels, which was filled with luxurious objects fit for great kings, which had perfumed objects like sandal and myrrh,  which was occupied by large gathering of people who were like the lions of a great forest, which had the noise created by drums, cymbals etc, which was filled by the sound made by conches, which had sacrificial  performances for special occasions conducted by Rakshasas, which had daily worship being performed, which had non stop celebrations, which had sounds like the tides of ocean and  which had very good quality carpets made of jewels.             4-13
 
That monkey chief thought that the house which was glittering and which had elephants, horses and chariots as an ornament if the city. Then Hanuman walked here and there for some time near Ravana.                                                                                         14-15
 
That monkey went round and searched without fearing  the different houses of Rakshasas and also in their gardens and palaces.                                                                                16
 
That great  hero who had very great speed, jumped in to the house of Prahastha  and jumped from there to the house of Mahaparswa.                                                     17
(ministers of Ravana)
 
From there  the monkey chief  went to the cloud like house of Kumbakarna  and from there jumped to the house of Vibhishana,                                                                       18
(Brothers of Ravana)
He then jumped in to the houses of Mahodhara, Virupaksha. Vidyujihwa. Vidhyunmali  and Vajra damshtra.                                                                                                        19
(Army chiefs of Ravana)
Like this the great resplendent monkey went to the houses of Shuka, Charana  the great hero Indrajit.                                                                                                                    20
(Shuka and Charana were the chief spies of Ravana and Indrajit his eldest son)
Like this again he visited the houses of Jambumali, Sumali, Rasmikethu and Surya shathru.                                                                                                                             21
 
That monkey chief who was the Son of God of Wind, jumped in to the houses of Vajarakaya, Dhoomraksha and Sampathi.                                                                       22
 
The son of the God of Wind visited one by one the houses of Bhima, Vidhyadhroopa, Ghana, Vighana, Sukhanasa, Sasa, Vikata, Brhamakarna, Dhamshtra, Romasa, Rakshasa, Yudhonmatha, Matha, Dwajagreeva, Nadhi, Athikaya,  Aksha, Vidhyujjihwa,  Indrajjihwa, Hasthimuka, Akambana, Karala, Pisascha, Sonithaksha, Devanthaka, Naranthaka, Kumbha, Nikumbha, Ugravakthra, and Ghoraand  Ghorara.           23-29
 
That famous monkey chief saw the  invaluable riches in each of these rich peoples houses.                                                                                                                    30
 
The lucky Hanuman  after seeing and searching these houses on all four sides reached the house of the King of Rakshasas.                                                                                 31
 
Hanuman who was the most intelligent monkey of all, entered inside and saw the women sentries with ugly eyes who were armed with spear and the thorn mace doing their shift duty.                                                                                                                              32
 
He also saw very huge Rakshasas belonging to different regiments and armed with diverse type of arms  in the house of the Rakshasa chief.                                       33
 
In that house Hanuman saw  horses which very swift , pretty, red , white, armed sufficiently to do a battle and possessing very high speed, and elephants which were capable of winning the  elephants of the enemy which were trained in the elephant discipline, which were capable of killing the army of the enemy, which were like clouds equal to the  prowess of Iravatha, which were similar to the mountains giving birth to several streams, Which were making sound like thunder, and which can never be won over by the enemies.                                                                                              34-36
 
That monkey who son of Wind god saw in the house of Ravana the king of rakshasas, thousands of horses decorated with gold, several type of  gold plated palanquins which were like the young sun, several houses covered with climbing plants, several art galleries, several houses of entertainment, playing bulls made of wood, pretty houses of passion and several houses to spend the day time.                                              37-39
 
That Hanuman saw the house of Ravana rivaling the house of Shiva the chief of beings, which was similar to Mandara mountain, which had places for pea cocks , which was full of flag poles, which was filled with thousands of jewels, where heaps of treasures were lying about here and there and which had several art works made of very great sculptors.
                                                                                                                                 40-41
 
That house due to the glitter of precious stones and because of Ravana’s prowess  was shining like the sun because of its rays.                                                                     42
 
That monkey warrior saw glittering golden cots and seats  as also several shining vessels.
                                                                                                                                     43
 
Hanuman entered that great palace  which was full of gem studded vessels which have become wet because they were used to serve honey and alcoholic drinks, which was extensive like   the very beautiful house of Kubera, which was booming because of sounds made by the jingling of anklets, shaking sound of waist belt,  and the sounds made by drums and cymbals, which had several houses, which was occupied by several jewel like women  and which had many architectural marvels.                                    44-46
 
 
          Thus ends the sixth   chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:15:26 AM
Seventh Chapter
                                           Seventh  Chapter
                                           Seeing Pushpaka Vimana
 
(Hanuman when he searched the city further saw the Pushpaka Vimana and though he was terribly attracted by it felt sad because he had not made any progress in search of Sita)
 
That strong Hanuman saw a row of houses  which were glittering during rainy season, which were having a flock of birds, which were like a whiff of cloud and which had golden windows inlaid with diamonds.                                                                   1
 
In those houses he saw avenues full of precious conch, arms and  bow  and further he saw in those mountain like houses  broad moon lit paths.                                                        2
 
He also saw  houses which were won by their own strength, which were free of all blemishes, which were being worshipped by asuras and devas and which were glittering  by the several riches in them.                                                                                              3
 
He saw the house of the king of Lanka  which was made as a result of great effort, which looked as if it was constructed by Maya(The famous Rakshasa architect) and which was full of all luxuries in the world.                                                                                          4
(This house was constructed by Viswa Karama  , the architect of Gods but looked like one constructed by Maya)
He saw the very great house, which stood out, like clouds, which had the glitter of the prettiest gold, which was fit to the strength of the king of rakshasas and which was definitely very pretty.                                                                                                     5
 
He saw the Pushpaka Vimana (literally flower like plane )which was like heaven descended to the earth, which was shining because of its  wealth, which was full of flowers of several trees, which was covered by pollen, which looked like the tip of the mountain, which was fit to be worshipped, which was made greatly shining  similar to the streak of lightning in the clouds by presence of great ladies, which was like the planes of people of good deeds floating in the sky, which was being carried by great swans, which was similar to the tip of the mountain painted using several colours, which was similar to the sky decorated by the moon and the planets, which had many joined big pictures resembling the clouds, and which had many paintings decorated by jewels.            6-8
 
In that Vimana there was  painting of the earth with its mountains, painting of forests full of trees and the painting of lotus flowers with its petals and sepals.                                9
 
Not only that , pictures of white mansions were painted on it , besides paintings of  pretty flower filled lakes , lotus flowers with its tendrils and luxuriously growing forests.     10
 
That great  plane  which was glittering by the shine of precious stones and which was the greatest among the palaces was called Pushpaka. In it were made several birds flying in the sky which was made of diamond, silver and corals. Not only that horses of noble lineage which indicated prosperity  and snakes were also made in it using several types of precious jewels.                                                                                                          11-12
 
The Hanuman again went near that plane and with wonder examined it. The birds made of coral and gold with flower like wings were hung on it. These were with good, bent drooping  wings and had very pretty faces They appeared as if they were the real helpers of the God of love Manmatha Also elephants with pretty captivating trunks which were playing in the lotus pond and were catching the lotus flowers were also made there. Like that the figure of Goddess Lakshmi whose good event making hands were catching the lotus flowers were also made. Like this the very pleasant plane  was shining with light like the end of winter, which had very pleasing perfume and   which was like a tree and also like a mountain with many beautiful caves.                                               13-15
 
Then the monkey became very thoughtful because he could not find Sita who was only attracted by the good qualities of her husband, who was being worshipped by all good people and who was the daughter of King Janaka  in spite wandering and jumping about all over the  worshipful city which was maintained by the prowess of the ten headed Rakshasa.                                                                                                                      16
 
The mind of that holy one who was very intelligent, who did only right actions and who was having several confusing thoughts because  he was not able to see the daughter of King Janaka was filled with sorrow.                                                                         17
 
          Thus ends the seventh   chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:15:51 AM
Eighth Chapter
                                           Eighth  Chapter
                          Description of Pushpaka Vimana
(This short chapter gives a vivid description of Pushpaka Vimana as seen and understood by Hanuman)
 
    The redoubtable hero Hanuman who was the son of the wind God,  saw the very great Plane which was standing in the middle of that building, which had windows made of gold and which was decorated by precious jewels.                                                       1
 
That plane whose glitter could not be  measured  and which could not adequately be described by others  was made by Viswakarma with an intention  that it should be the greatest plane which  could move anywhere in the sky and was parked in the route of wind and was like a sign post of the path of the Sun.                                              2
 
In that there was nothing which was made without very hard work. There was no part of it which was not made by very costly gems. The  assets  of that were not even within the ambit of Devas. There was nothing in  it, which was not very wonderful.                       3   
 
He saw the great Pushpaka Vimana which was won by the valor gained by   full meditation and prayer, which can go in different styles just by mental wish, which was constructed with several types of  dwellings, which had equal but differing sights in all its places, which can go at any speed by knowing the wish of its master, which cannot be stopped by anybody, which can go in the speed of wind, which had all possible riches of great  and holy people, which looked like the dwelling place of Devas and equally famous people, which has been made in much greater manner than each wish of its maker, which had peculiar pillars, which had spires and domes similar to the peaks of mountains, which was as clear as the autumn moon,  which was as pretty as the crowd of flowers of the spring season, which was more pleasing to the eyes than the spring season, which had faces shining by the ear studs worn, which was protected by  gluttonous ,fat  sky riding, rakshasas and   which was also protected by thousands of swift Boothas (devils) who had  round sunken  eyes,                                                                     4-8 
 
   Thus ends the eighth   chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:16:23 AM
Ninth Chapter
                                           Ninth  Chapter   
                                            Visiting of the Harem     
 
   ( In this chapter  the search of  Hanuman of Sita in the harem of Ravana and the first impressions of him about Ravana’s harem is described)
 
Hanuman the son of Wind God saw in the middle of the great Pushpaka Vimana a  very big and great building.                                                                                                      1
 
That was the house of Ravana which was many yojanas ( two and a half miles) broad, one yojana long and with many decorated platforms                                                  2
 
The killer of the enemy Hanuman searched everywhere for the long eyed Sita who was the king of Videha.                                                                                                            3
 
Inspecting the houses  of many great Rakshasas Hanuman who was graced by the Goddess Lakshmi reached the house of the king of Rakshasas.                                    4
 
The very extensive dwelling of Ravana was protected by many with top pointing arms, surrounded by four tusked elephants as well as three tusked elephants, and also full of Rakshasa ladies who were his wives and also some  forcefully abducted Ladies from Royal families.                                                                                                      5-6
(This is contrary to what is expressed in sloka 76 of this chapter)
 
That house was like an ocean tumultuously moved by a tempest, which was full of crocodiles, sharks, whales , fishes and snakes.                                                      7
 
His house was full of all riches, which were in the house of Kubera(God of riches) Indra(King of devas) and Sun God.                                                                     8
 
The treasures in the House of Rakshasa king Ravana was similar  and much more than the riches of  Indra, Kubhera, Varuna(The rain god) , Yama(the god of death).   9
 
The Son of God of Wind saw another mansion in the center of that house, which was beautifully built and in which several artistic works were done.                              10
 
That Pushpaka Vimana which was prettily was made for Brahma by Viswakarma(the architect of Devas)  and increased passions and also could be used to travel as one  pleases.                                                                                                                        11
 
Kubhera by  doing very great penance got that Vimana which was fully decorated by jewels and which was venerated by beings of all the three worlds from Brahma.     12
 
The king of Rakshasa won Kubera by his prowess  and got it from him.               13
 
Not only that but that Vimana  was decorated by life like statues of deer, decorated all over by gold, had many very beautiful pillars and appeared as if it was shining by its own light.                                                                                                                          14
 
That Vimana  was decorated on all the four sides by several towers, which appeared as if they were touching the sky like the Meru and Mandhara mountains.                          15
 
That plane which was built by Viswakarma, had golden steps and was charming, great and had the luster of the fire and the Sun.                                                                   16
 
It had platforms made of precious gems like Sapphire and windows and shelves decorated by gold and crystal.                                                                                  17
 
It appeared pretty as it had floors decorated  by corals, very costly gems, incomparable pearls and also several pretty drawings.                                                                       18
 
It was similar to the Sun at dawn and had gold like saffron and sweet scented sandal.  19
 
That monkey chief climbed the sacred and well decorated  Pushpaka Vimana which had  different type of pretty halls.                                                                                              20
 
Then Hanuman who stood there smelled the sweet perfume from the eatables and drinks spread out there which looked like the air personified.(i.e. spread in all places.)     21
 
It appeared as if the scents  called the very strong Hanuman, “come here, come here”, like a relation calling another very close relation.                                                    22
 
He saw a great stage in the middle , which ,being firmly there attracted the mind of Ravana, which like a pretty lady was causing only good, which had steps made out of pearls and diamonds, which shined because of its golden windows with ivory inlaid here and there, which had floors made of crystal  stones, which had very tall decorated pillars built using gold, silver , pearls and corals, which was decorated by different type of pillars, which had very tall and wing like sky touching perfect pillars which were straight, which was as broad as the earth itself with its cities and houses, which was covered by a very big carpet on which the different parts of earth were drawn, Which was filled with sounds of songs by energetic birds, Which had beautiful incense wafting about, which had special seats with  the presence of the king of Rakshasas, which was  made dark by the incense and  myrrh, which was very clear, which was white like the swan, which was peculiar because of the flowers used for worship, which gave happiness to the mind like the glittering Kamadhenu(sacred wish granting cow of heaven), which was decorated so that it will get fame, which looked like the mother of all treasures, which could destroy sorrow and which was famous and divine.                                                             23-30
 
That stage which was protected by Ravana, like a mother ,satisfied the five sense organs by its pretty form, taste, smell, touch and voice.                                                  31
 
Hanuman doubted and wondered whether it was heaven, the city of Indra himself, or the city of gandarwas.                                                                                                   32
 
He also saw there very big golden lights which were still like those defeated gamblers by the deceit of other gamblers.                                                                                     33
 
He felt as if the entire area was burning because of the strong light from those lamps  and also by the glitter  the ornaments and power emanating from Ravana.                       34
 
There he saw thousands of ladies lying on the jeweled carpet  dressed in cloths of varied colours, wearing several types of ornaments  and with varied appearances.                  35
 
Those ladies after long love play  and being drunk were sleeping soundly because it was already midnight.                                                                                                          36
 
Those ladies looked as if no sound coming from the shaking of their ornaments and were like a lotus pond full of silent and bees.                                                                     37
 
He saw the faces of those great ladies who were sleeping with open mouth, closed eyes and with the smell of lotus flowers.                                                                             38
 
Their faces looked like the lotus flowers, which opened during daytime and  had closed during night.                                                                                                                39
 
The honey drunk bees without any doubt were desiring their faces thinking that it was fully opened lotus flowers.                                                                                            40
 
Because of that and because of other valid reasons that great monkey chief thought their faces equivalent to lotus flowers.                                                                                 41
 
Because of the glitter produced by the bevy of ladies that stage looked like the star filled clear sky of the autumn.                                                                                                42
 
That king of Rakshasas surrounded by them looked like the moon surrounded by the stars.                                                                                                                             43
 
Seeing them Hanuman thought that they looked like a collection of stars fallen from the sky after they have enjoyed the benefit of  all their good deeds.                                44
 
In that place the shine , colour and presence of the ladies glittered , very much like  the great shine of the big stars.                                                                                       45
 
They were  almost in deep  trance by the deep sleep because of their love play and intoxication by drink and their garlands and ornaments were very much displaced.         46
 
Some of them were great ladies, in case of some , their Tilaka (sindhoora) was erased, in case of some their anklets were broken and in case of some their chain of pearls was lying by their side.                                                                                                      47
 
Like the mare which carried lot of burden was rolling in the ground to recoup its strength, some of them had broken their pearl chains , some had undressed and in case of some, the anklets were completely broken.                                                                                   48
 
Some appeared with good ear studs but with broken garlands due to their exertions like the flowering climber in a deep forest was  crushed by an elephant.                           49
 
In other cases the broken pearl necklaces were lying between the breasts of some and appeared as if some swans were sleeping there.                                                         50
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:16:55 AM
In case of others their diamonds looked like the king fisher birds and the broken golden chains looked similar to the Chakravaka[13] birds.                                                            51
 
With hips similar to the sandy shores some of them looked like the shores of river with many swans, king fisher and Chakravaka birds.                                                          52
 
With glittering belled anklets, with lotus faces and with nail marks in many places of their body, they looked like rivers with beauty as their shores.                                    53
 
In case of some ladies the pressure marks made by ornaments on their busts and other soft arts appeared as if they themselves were  ornaments.                                             54
 
The cloth corners which were flying hither and thither by their breaths again and again fell on the top of their breasts                                                                                        55
 
Those edges of  the very pretty and shining cloths of various colours  with various ornaments when shaken over their foreheads appeared as if they were waving victory flags.                                                                                                         56
 
In case of  some women with luster even the ear studs were slightly moving hither and thither by their breath.                                                                                             57
 
Their naturally sweet scented breath along with the smell of  wine  wafted towards Ravana ,with pleasure.                                                                                            58
 
Not only that some of Ravana’s wives mistook the other wives faces as that of Ravana’s and kissed them several times.                                                                                59
 
Because those ladies loved Ravana very much , they behaved with those other wives with love even though they did not like them.                                                                        60
 
Some other ladies were sleeping using  their bangle clad arms and their cloths as a pillow,
                                                                                                                                    61
 
With one lady attaching herself to the chest of another, one attaching to her hands, one sleeping on her lap, and another on the same lady’s arms, and embracing each other tightly  with their thighs, hind parts, hips touching each other , all of them slept together because of  their love towards Ravana.                                                                       62-63
 
Because the ladies with very ample hips were tightly embracing each other , they were happy and with linked hands were sleeping soundly.                                              64
 
That bevy of ladies linking themselves together appeared as if they were  a garland which had attracted several big tipsy bees.                                                                          65
 
The harem of Ravana looked like a flower garden in the month of May-June in which the climbing tendrils with full of flowers are intertwined , in which the bees fly from one place to another, in which the heads of the plants are attached here and there and in which the flowers shake in the wind.                                                                                    66-67
 
 Though their ornaments , cloths and various parts of the body were in places where they should be, they were not knowing whose is where and which.                              68
 
The well-lit golden lamps appeared as if they were staring at the sleeping Ravana along with his multi coloured collection of women.                                                              69
 
Lasses from the families of kings, sages, Pithru devas, Rakshasas and Gandarwas  appeared as if they were there attracted by their passion to Ravana.                           70
 
Most of the ladies who were there , were the ones who were abducted by the war thirsty Ravana and some of those voluptuous ones came there because of their passion to him. 71
 
Except the noble daughter of Janaka  , all of them were there because of his great valor and none of them have been abducted and brought , none who came against their wish and none were there who had  accepted any one else.                                           72
 
None of them were born in a baser family or not pretty or not intelligent or not suitable to be served upon or none without wealth or none who is not suitable to be loved by their husbands.                                                                                                                       73
 
That good-natured Hanuman thought, ”If the wife of Sri Rama also attains this state of Ravana’s wives towards Rama, my birth in this world would be a blessed one.”     74
 
With sorrow that Hanuman thought , “ Sita is the storehouse of all good qualities  and this King Of Lanka has done acts which should not be done towards her, alas!”..       75
 
       
 
           Thus ends the ninth  chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.

Translated by P.R.Ramachander
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:17:24 AM
                                        Tenth Chapter   
                                          Seeing of Mandodhari
 
      (This chapter gives further description of the harem of Ravana, It gives a vivid description of Ravana, his women and his wife Mandodhari.It ends describing the happy Hanuman who mistook Mandodari for Sita)
 
Hanuman who was searching there, saw a cot, which was fit to be in the land of Devas, which was great, which had special parts made of gold and ivory, which had bed covers inlaid with diamonds, which had extremely costly special seats and which was fully decorated by gems and crystals.                                                                               1-2
 
He also saw a particular very special seat which was decorated all over by gold, which was shining like sun, which was very broad and which had all things which end sorrow 3
 
On one side of the seat he saw a very special umbrella, which glittered like the moon and which was decorated by many very special garlands.                                               4
 
On all four sides women were fanning the cot with white fan with soft bristles, it was scented by collection of many perfumes, several incense generating smoke were wafting about it, very precious bed sheets made of wool and hides covered it and all around it was decorated by garlands made of several rare flowers.                                        5-6
 
That monkey chief Hanuman saw on the shining bed on the cot, the Chief of Rakshasas, who was of the colour of deep black cloud, who was wearing special glittering ear studs, who was having red eyes, who was having very long hands, who was wearing cloths with golden zari, who had applied the highly perfumed paste of red sandal, who wore precious ornaments which was like the streaks of lightning in the red clouded sky of the dusk, who was handsome, who could assume any form that he wished, who was equal to the immobile Mandhara mountain with its several trees and bushes, who wore several pretty ornaments, who was tired after love play during the night, who was the darling of Rakshasa ladies, who created pleasant life to the Rakshasas and who was not showing the effect of alcohol that he has drunk.                                                                        7-11
 
Nearing Ravana, who was like a hissing serpent, Hanuman, who could even scare very strong people, was scared and confused and stepped back.                                   12
 
Afterwards that monkey chief Hanuman climbed a stairs  reached another hall and from there carefully examined the  sleeping king of Rakshasas.                                     13
 
That costly bed on which the chief of Rakshasas was sleeping  looked like garden in which an elephant was sleeping after trampling over it.                                               14
 
He saw the two hands of the Rakshasa king, which was attached to his golden shoulders, which were long, which were like the flags of Indra, which had scars made by the tusks of elephant Iravatha, which were starting from his thick shoulders having the scars made by Vajrayudha, which was having the wounds made by Vishnu’s wheel, which was attached to his equal and thick shoulders, which had good hands and fingers, which had ideally shaped fingers and thumb, which were able and were like iron bars, which were round and resembled the trunk of an elephant, which were lying on the clean bed and which were like five headed serpents.                                                           15-18
 
He looked at his two hands which were well covered with specially cold specially scented sandal wood which was as red as the blood of rabbits, which were decorated, which was applied with mixture of several scents, which was massaged by great ladies, which used to make devas, yakshas, Pannagas, gandarwas and Danavas weep, which were kept on the bed and which resembled pythons sleeping on both his sides.     19-21
 
That mountain like Rakshasa with his two hands shined like the perfectly shaped Mandhara Mountain with its two peaks.                                                                     22
 
The breath of the sleeping king of rakshasas which was having the sweet smelling scent of mango flower, pongamia flower and Vakula flower, which was having the smell of many food items and which was having the reeking smell of alcoholic drinks spread throughout that area, came out of his very big mouth.                                      23-24
 
Hanuman saw in that hall, Ravana who was shining with a slightly out of place crown made of precious gems and pearls, who was having a glittering face because of his ear studs, who was having a fat long and broad chest applied with the paste of red sandal which was shining because of his garlands, who was wearing a white silk upper cloth which was slipping down, who was wearing a very costly yellow silk, who was having red eyes, who appeared as if he was a mountain made of black gram, who was breathing like a serpent, who was like a royal elephant sleeping in the river Ganges amidst huge crowds, who was having  the entire body shining by the light provided by golden lamps, who was like a cloud lit on all four sides by streaks of lightning, who was a great individual and  who was having love towards his wife ,.sleeping along with his wives who slept at  the corners of his feet.                                                                   25-30
 
He saw many of them(wives) who were having shining faces like the moon, who were wearing pretty ear studs, and who were wearing flower garlands which never fade.  31
 
He also saw some experts in dance and music who were seated and wearing the great ornaments worn by Ravana on his shoulders and lap.                                         32
 
He saw them wearing shoulder bangles of molten gold and ear studs made of diamond and other precious stones.                                                                                        33
 
Due to their pretty glittering ear studs and faces like moon, that Vimana was shining like the sky because of a collection of stars.                                                                     34
 
Those narrow hipped ladies of Ravana were sleeping in various places due to tiresomeness caused by various exercises like lovemaking.                        35
 
One lady was sleeping in the dancing pose with pretty Mudhras(symbols) shown by her hands and with many of her pretty parts exposed.                                                       36
 
One lady who was sleeping embracing the Veena looked like a boat afloat in a mighty river, which was tied by the tendrils of Lotus plant.                                                     37
 
A black eyed sleeping beauty with the Madduka (a type of drum) kept in her armpits,
looked like a mother with her darling baby.                                                            38
 
Another lady with very pretty breasts who was also pretty all over was sleeping embracing a drum and looked like a lady embracing her husband whom she has met after a very long separation.                                                                                      39
 
Another lotus-eyed beauty was asleep embracing the Veena and appeared as if she had met her boy friend when nobody is around.                                                                 40
 
Another very passionate lady who was a dancer  was sleeping embracing the Vipanchika (a stringed instrument) and appeared as if she was sleeping in tight embrace of her husband.                                                                                                                         41
 
Another lady with eyes like wine was asleep embracing the drum with her golden coloured soft voluptuous and pretty body.                                                                    42
 
One flawless pretty lady was holding the drum in  her armpits between her arms and breast  and was sleeping tired because of her passion.                                                43
 
Another lady was sleeping with the two pieces of  the drum (thabla)  in her tight embrace and appeared as if she was holding her husband and baby in her hands.                          44
 
Another lotus leaf eyed lady was holding with her two stretched hands the giant drum and was sleeping because of exertions of zest.                                                                        45
 
Another lady who was asleep with the slightly tilted Ghata  (earthen pot musical instrument) looked like a small hill of the multi coloured flower garlands, which were kept fresh by sprinkling of water.                                                                                 46
 
A young girl, who was deep asleep, was hiding her gold pot like breasts with hands and sleeping.                                                                                                                       47
 
A full moon faced lady with lotus petal like eyes forgot herself in her love zest and was sleeping embracing another lady with a pretty backside.                                            48
 
Many noble ladies in their great passion were sleeping embracing tightly to their breasts several musical instruments like they would embrace their lover.                               49
 
That monkey then saw  another very pretty lady sleeping on a beautiful bed in a place away from these ladies.                                                                                                50
 
That great hero Hanuman who was the son of wind God saw the sleeping Mandodari[14], who was wearing very prettily crafted ornaments made of pearls and other precious gems, who by her natural luster was an ornament for that great house, who was a dear, who was white in colour, who was chief queen of that harem, who was golden in colour, who was having a pretty appearance and who was well made up, Hanuman mistook her for Sita because she was the epitome of youth and beauty and became extremely pleased and happy.                                                                                                                51-54
 
Exhibiting his monkey qualities he clapped his hands, kissed his own tail, became happy, jumped here and there, sang, ran, climbed on the pillar and jumped from there.          55
 
 
          Thus ends the  tenth  chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:18:30 AM
Eleventh Chapter
                              Eleventh   Chapter
                                     Search in the hall for drinking
 
   ( A full  and detailed description of the hall of drink and Hanuman’s search for Sita there is recounted in this chapter)
 
Within a quarter of minute he rejected his momentary wish that it was Sita as not right and became clear headed and started thinking, in the right path.                                 1
 
After that Hanuman decided that “There was no chance of Sita who was separated from Sri Rama sleeping, nor eating, nor wearing of ornaments, nor even drinking water nor go near another male even if he were the king of Devas for even among devas there is none as great as Rama and so this lady has to be somebody else.” And he started searching further in the hall of drinking.                                                                                2-3
 
The monkey chief  saw  Ravana who was deep asleep due to being tired by his intense love making and his collection of ladies among whom some were tired because of love making, some because of singing, some because of dancing and  some asleep because of consumption of alcoholic drinks. He saw some ladies leaning on drums of different types and on small seats as well as many sleeping on special beds made for sleep by ladies. He saw thousands of ladies some decorated by ornaments, some who had the habit of describing their bodily beauty, some who describe the meanings of songs, some who work according to the need of place and time and some who can speak properly to suit an occasion                                                                                                              4-7
 
Amongst those ladies, the Rakshasa king of great valor, looked like a bull among cows of high pedigree in a very wide stable.                                                                   8
 
Naturally being surrounded by those ladies, the king of Rakshasas shined like an awesome he-elephant among large number of she elephants of the forest.        9
 
In the house of  the great chief of rakshasas, the monkey chief saw collection of well stocked drinking places(bars)                                                                                   10
 
In that drinking place Hanuman saw meats of deer, pig and raven kept separately. 11
 
He also saw further half eaten peacocks and hen kept in large golden vessels.        12
 
Hanuman saw the meats of eagle,  sheep, porcupine, deer and  peacock  cooked with curd and Masalas , fully cooked doves , half eaten ravens, buffalos and one thorn fishes, well cooked mutton, several type of side dishes, several type of drinks and several type of light eatables.                                                                                                      13-14
 
Similarly by different types of drinks which were sour, salty and other great tastes made by concentrating the juices of grapes, orange and pomegranate and those chains, armlets and bangles which have been removed and strewn all over and also decorated by flowers and fruits kept in goblets that place was very pretty.                                            15-16
 
That place of drink appeared to be glistening even without fire by  the very many  tastefully arranged sofas and chairs.                                                                        17
 
Garlands and also very many distilled alcoholic  drinks, various alcoholic drinks made with sugar syrup, honey, fruit juices and flower concentrates, several other drinks which were sorted and kept and various types of meat which were properly mixed , cooked  and made by great chefs, with great care in which various spices and condiments which were added in proper proportion  filled that drinking place and added to its luster.       18-20
 
That monkey chief saw many specially made drinks filled in silver and golden pots arranged in different place all over.                                                                 21
 
He also saw large number goblets, which were made of gold, silver and many made with several gems.                                                                                                               22
 
That place was also filled with serving cups for these drinks, which were made of gold, crystal and gold alloy.                                                                                                   23
 
That Hanuman saw in some place half emptied goblets, in some places empty goblets  and in some places goblets filled to the brim.                                                                24
 
He wandered here and there seeing various eatables, drinks sorted in different categories, left over food, broken drink pots, spilled water, fruits and prettily made garlands.   25-26
 
There were white cushions used by ladies for sleeping and various beauties sleeping tightly embraced.                                                                                                              27
 
Not only that in some cases one lady in her sleep was covering herself with the pulled out dress of another and several were in very deep slumber.                                                 28
 
It was wonderful, that the cloths on their body and the garlands that they were wearing did not move by their heavy breath, which was like the slowly wafting wind.         29             
 
The breeze  carrying with in it  the incense of cool sandal, by the scents of various alcoholic drinks and the various flowers in garlands was wafting here and there, That Puspaka Vimana was also full of scents of various perfumes worn by different ladies, the sandalwood and other incense that were being burnt.                                                 30-31
 
In that house of Rakshasa some of the ladies were brown, some were black  and some others were  of golden colour.                                                                                      32
 
Their looks because  of deep sleep and made loose by their passion, appeared like the lotus pond in which the flowers have closed up.                                                         33
 
Like this the great soul Hanuman wandered all over Ravana’s harem and searched in all places but in spite of that did not find Janaki (Sita, Janaka’s daughter).                      34
 
Hanuman became very thoughtful and worried because he thought that in staring at those women he has slipped from Dharma (the standards of right conduct.)                      35
 
He thought that the sight of this crowd of wives of the enemy when they were deep asleep made him a commit a great sin.                                                                             36
(The sloka could also indicate half nude ladies who were asleep)
 
Then he thought that his stare at the wives of somebody else was not done in a worldly manner.                                                                                                   37
 
“This sight of other people’s wives has not done by me with passion.”  , he  further thought.                                                                                                                            38
 
Then a new doubtless thought  pointing towards the correct decision arose in the mind of  very intelligent Hanuman who was capable of  great thought                                        39
 
“I saw  all the wives of Ravana who were sleeping without any fear  and with great belief. In spite of that my mind did not waver even a little bit.” He thought.             40-41
 
“ Mind is the sole cause of all the sense organs doing good or bad and that mind did not waver even a bit in my case”, he thought.                                                                   42
 
“Always suppose a lady has to be searched it should be in the crowd ladies only and therefore It is impossible to me to search and find out Sita in any other place.” he further thought                                                                                                                          43
 
“Search for an animal of a specific type has to be made within the type only and a lost woman cannot be searched among a group of deer.” He thought.                             44
 
“And therefore this Harem of Ravana was searched well  by me with a very clean mind and in spite of that I could not find Sita” he thought.                                                    45
 
The great Hero Hanuman saw many lasses of Devas, Gandarwas and Nagas but was not able to find Janaki.                                                                                                         46
 
Having seen many great ladies but because he was not able to find Sita, he went outside from that hall at that time and started thinking.                                                            47
 
The great soul Hanuman having come out of that hall of drinking, took great pain in starting the search for Sita again.                                                                                 48
 
 
          Thus ends the  eleventh  chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:19:44 AM
Twelfth Chapter
                              Twelfth   Chapter
                                             Hanuman’s worry
       (Hanuman’s final search for Sita in the harem, his fear for having committed a sin because of his entry in to the Harem and his sense of dejection in not being able to find Sita are described)
 
That Son of God of wind visited separately the garden enclosures, picture galleries and bedrooms in the center of the palace , but he who was interested in seeing the beautiful Sita could not see her.                                                                                                      1
 
Because that great monkey was not able to see the darling of the son of Raghu, he thought thus “because Sita who is very upset is not visible to me, it is definite that she is no more alive.”                                                                                                                    2
 
“It is possible that the daughter of Janaka who treads by the path of pristine duty, who is devoted to her husband, who has interest in protecting her virtue, might have been killed by the chief of Rakshasas who exhibits many bad qualities.” he thought                         3
 
“After seeing the ladies of the chief of Rakshasas who are having ugly features, who are ugly, who do not have the luster in their body, and who are having a very cruel vision , Sita who is the daughter of Janaka might have died out of fear”. He thought                   4
 
“Without seeing Sita, without doing my duty  and having spent lot of time with other monkeys , I should not go back to Sugreeva  because the powerful Sugreeva awards great punishments”, he thought.                                                                                                   5
 
“I have searched all over the harem, I have seen all ladies of Ravana but I only could not see the sterling natured Sita and so all my efforts are in vain”, thought he.                     6
 
“When I go back and meet all the monkeys who have gathered together  they would ask “Hey hero, what did you do there? Please tell us about it. What happened there?” and what will I who has not been able to see her reply to them?”. He thought.                    7
 
“If the time is delayed too much for my return definitely they will all commit mass suicide by starvation”, he thought.                                                                                   8
 
“When I return after crossing the sea. all those assembled monkeys and also  Angada and the very old Jambhavan would individually find fault with me”. He thought.                   9
 
“Being not disappointed in one’s intentions leads to greater wealth, very real pleasures and zest in doing things”, he thought.                                                                             10
 
“This emotion of not getting dispirited by failure leads to success in man’s actions and so I should put in more effort and do more searching”, he thought.                                    11
 
He decided that he would put in more intense search in all places where search was not done and started searching.                                                                                            12
 
He searched in drinking halls, he searched in flowerbeds, again he searched in picture galleries and he searched well in sporting arenas.                                                        13
 
He also searched in streets in between the gardens, various types of towers, underground cellars, memorial houses and outer halls of the palaces.                                              14
 
That great monkey Hanuman traveled to all places and searched by climbing, getting down, stopping once in a while, walking, opening the doors, breaking open closed doors, getting in, getting out, jumping down and  jumping up.                                             15-16
 
The places that he has not visited in Ravana’s Harem were not even four fingers broad.                                                       
                                                                                                                                      17
 
That Hanuman searched in the streets between outer walls of buildings,  the platforms associated with memorials, wells, and lakes.                                                              18
 
In those places Hanuman saw Rakshasis with various forms who were very ugly, whose actions were ugly but he was not able to see the daughter of Janaka.                        19
 
Hanuman saw there many Vidhyadara maidens whose beauty was unparalleled in the world but was not able to see only the wife of Rama.                                              20
 
Hanuman saw there very beautiful Naga maidens who had faces like the full moon but he was not able to see the  good-natured Sita.                                                                   21
 
Hanuman saw Naga maidens forcibly abducted by Ravana after victory in war  but he was not able to see only the daughter  of Janaka.                                                        22
 
The son of Wind God who was both intelligent and heroic saw several ladies with good lineage but not Sita and became very sad.                                                                23
 
His sorrow went on increasing when he thought that the effort put up by monkeys and his crossing of the ocean was fully wasted.                                                                        24
 
The son of wind God got down from the  Pushpaka Vimana with immense sorrow  and became very thoughtful.                                                                                                25
 
 
          Thus ends the  twelfth chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:20:18 AM
Thirteenth Chapter
                              Thirteenth   Chapter
                                     Crashing of hopes of Hanuman
 
    ( The worries of the very disappointed Hanuman are described graphically. At the end he sees a glimmer of hope when he sees the Asoka forest)
 
After jumping from the Vimana on to the  wall he was restless like the streaks of lightning among the clouds.                                                                                      1
 
The monkey Hanuman after not being able to find the daughter of Janaka in Ravana’s palace  in spite of vigorous and complete search told to himself as follows:-               2
 
“I with a desire to do good to Lord Rama have searched this city completely and in spite of that was not able to find the very pretty Sita who is the daughter of Janaka.”         3
 
“I have definitely searched fully in small ponds, big ponds, ;lakes , streams, rivers, bushes in the deltas, forts, mountains  and plains and am not able to find the daughter of Janaka anywhere.”                                                                                                           4
 
“The eagle king Sampathi told me about the presence of Sita in Ravana’s palace and still I am not able to find her.”                                                                                                  5
 
“That Sita who was not born out of a womb, who was brought up in the kingdom of  king Videha, who was well brought up with culture by the king of Mithila, who is the foster daughter of the sage-king Janaka will never reach the arms of Ravana who is uncultured., Is it not?”                                                                                                                           6
 
“I think that when Ravana who was afraid of the arrows of Rama  abducted her  and was flying at a great height, Sita must have slipped from his hands and fallen to earth and died.”                                                                                                                                   7
 
“I feel that , it is a possibility that the heart of the well pedigreed Sita who was being abducted and was traveling in the paths of the sky used by sages   must have stopped on seeing the sea . “                                                                                                               8
 
“I feel by the power of  Ravana’s  thigh and being trampled in his tight hands must have made her to give up her life.”                                                                                             9
 
“Another possibility is that traveling far above the sky that daughter of Janaka must have tried to escape and fallen in the sea and must have died.”                                               10
 
“Alas, it is a possibility that the Sita who was far away from her relations, who was doing great penance and  who was bent upon preserving her purity must have been eaten by the horrible Ravana.”                                                                                                             11   
 
“Or it is possible that the cruel wives of the Rakshasa king must have eaten Sita who is pure and had black eyes.”                                                                                                12
 
“It is also possible that always thinking about  the full moon face of Rama who had eyes like the petals of lotus flower, and seeing there was no other alternative she must have simply died.”                                                                                                                   13
 
“It is also probable that Sita who was born  in the Kingdom of Mithila   must have cried aloud “Hey Rama”, “Hey Lakshmana”, and “Hey Ayodhya”, and also crying many other things must have forsaken her body.”                                                                            14
 
“: I also think that some times she must have been hidden in some dark underground vaults and like a bird put in a cage  and must be crying even now.”                            15     
 
“How can Sita who is the wife of Rama, who has eyes like lotus petals, who is famous and who has brought up in the house of Janaka  submit herself to Ravana?”               16
 
“Whether she has been well hidden or has been killed or is no more because of her deep sorrow , this should not be informed to Sri Rama who is very deeply attached to her?” 17
 
“If I do  inform him the truth danger will result and if I do not inform ,then also it would have a worse result and in this circumstance I am not able to decide either way.”     18-19
 
Hanuman then again reexamined his thought process to conclude as to what would be timely, yield good result and would be accepted as right by everybody.                      20
 
“If I do return to the kingdom of the monkeys without seeing Sita, what great thing would I get?”, he thought                                                                                                           21
 
“My crossing of the ocean, entry in to the city of Lanka and seeing of Rakshasas would go waste.”, he thought.                                                                                                    22
 
“What will Sugreeva and the monkeys who have accompanied me and those two sons of Dasaratha who have reached Kishkinda tell me?”, he thought.                                     23
 
“As soon as I reach ,If I  inform the bad news to Sri Rama that I have not been able to find Sita, because of that he will die.”, he thought.                                                      24
 
“He would not stay alive if he hears the very cruel, hard hearted ,terrible  and hard words which are without mercy and which cannot be borne by sense organs .”he thought       25
 
“The intelligent Lakshmana full of love to him  seeing that Rama is bent on death will not also continue to live”, he thought.                                                                                     26
 
“Once Bharatha hears that his two brothers are no more , he will also die .Once Shatrugna knows that Bharatha is dead he will also die. “ he thought.                            27
 
“Once they know that their sons are all dead, the mothers Kausalya, Sumithra and Kaikeyi would also not live.” , he thought.                                                                     28
 
“When he sees Sri Rama in this state, the grateful and truthful king of monkeys Sugreeva  would also forsake his life”. He thought.                                                                    29
 
“The miserable Ruma (Wife of Sugreeva) would be afflicted by the loss of her husband and be unhappy, sad and suffering pain  and would leave her life.”, he thought.        30
 
“Once Sugreeva is no more, Tara who is already miserable by the loss of Vali and also gone down in health by that sorrow would also die.”, he thought.                               31
 
“How will the lad Angadha continue to live in spite of the sorrow of loosing both his parents and also Sugreeva.”, he thought.                                                                  32
 
“It is certain that afflicted by the sorrow of the loss of their kings, the monkeys would beat their head by their hands and fists and break their head.”, he thought.                33
 
“All the monkey heroes  who were respected and loved  by good words  and gifts  by the famous monkey king would  sacrifice their lives “, he thought.                                  34
 
“After that the monkeys would not go to play in places where there are lot of houses or in forests or in mountains.”, he thought.                                                                            35
 
“Those who live with families and with wives and children , would be affected by the sorrow of their king and would roll in to rough terrain from the top of the mountains and die”, he thought..                                                                                                           36
 
“Otherwise they will all die by consuming poison or hanging themselves or by starvation or by entering in to the fire or falling on weapons.,” he thought.                                 37
 
“I think that by my return ,the Ikshuvaku clan and the monkeys would all be destroyed and consequently there would be  intolerably great wailing”, he thought.                    38
 
“So I would not return to the city of Kishkinda for it would not be possible for me to see Sugreeva without seeing Sita.”. he thought.                                                                  39
 
“If  without returning I stay  here ,then those  two great heroes who are also great souls, with a hope that the work will be done eventually would keep their souls  and so the monkeys also would live boldly.”, he thought.                                                                 40
 
“If I am not able to see the daughter of Janaka, I can live in the shadow of the trees here with whatever good food that I get or with whatever food that comes my way , controlling my five senses and live a life of a recluse,”, he thought.                           41
 
“Otherwise I can raise a raging fire in these fertile areas  with fruits and roots , near the sea  and die by entering It.”, he thought.                                                                     42
 
“The other alternative is to die of starvation so that the crows and other flesh eaters would eat away my body.”, he thought.                                                                                   43                       
 
“I know that this method of leaving ones life is permitted by great sages”, he thought. 44
 
“If I am not able to find Janaki then with grace I can fall in to the water”, he thought.    45
 
“This beautiful long  night which began very well for me in which benefits were received one after another which lead to my fame became a waste to me because I am not able to see Sita.”, he thought.                                                                                                      46
 
“At least I can become a  sage who controls all his senses and live below a tree.”, he thought.                                                                                                                            47
 
“Without seeing that black eyed beauty I will not return from here”, he thought.            48
 
“If I return from here without finding Sita , Angada will die with all his monkeys.”, he thought.                                                                                                                            49
 
“There are many bad results because of death and the one who lives ultimately gets the good and he one who lives definitely  gets pleasures , and so I will keep my life.”, he thought.                                                                                                                      50
 
That monkey chief in spite of again and again analyzing  his sorrow did still not reach the end of his sorrow.                                                                                                              51
 
He then thought, “Let the abducted wife of Rama be any where but  let me kill the very strong ten headed Ravana  for by doing that base act and  at least I would have  taken revenge.”                                                                                                                    52-53
 
“Otherwise I will take him like a sacrificial cow being taken  to the fire over the sea and put him at the feet of Rama”, he thought.                                                                      54
 
Not knowing anything about that Sita, being very thoughtful, worried and sad the monkey thought thus.                                                                                                   55
 
“Till I am able to see the famous Sita who is the wife of Rama, I would keep on searching the city of Lanka again and again.”                                                                                56
 
“Had I brought Rama with me fully believing the words of Sampathi, not being able to see his wife, Rama would have burnt all the monkeys.”                                                57
 
“I would live here reducing my food and controlling my organs for because of that those men and monkeys  will not all die because of me.”                                                       58
 
“I am able to see an Asoka forest with very big trees and this is the only one place I have not searched yet.”                                                                                                          59
 
“I would salute the eight Vasus, eleven Rudras, eleven Suns two Aswini devas, and seven Maruths  and become some one who will increase the sorrow of these Rakshasas”     60
 
‘I am going to somehow win over all the rakshasas and present Sita belonging to the Ikshuvaku clan to Sri Rama like giving the end result to the one who is doing fire sacrifice.”                                                                                                                     61
 
The resplendent Hanuman who was the Son of God of wind, meditated like this for some time  and ended up with the senses devoid of the tie of sadness.                                  62
 
“My salutations to Sri Rama along with his brother Lakshmana, My salutations to Sita who is the daughter of Janaka, My salutations to Rudra, Indra, Yama the god of death, Vayu the god of wind, moon, sun and The people of Maruth”, he saluted                 63
 
After saluting thus and also saluting Sugreeva Hanuman thoughtfully examined all the ways to the Asoka forest. He considered Asoka forest as the first place for success and thought about his future steps.                                                                                64-65
 
“This Asoka forest , with all sort of decorations, with densely populated trees and which is full of Rakshasas should be searched immediately he thought.”                                66
 
“Here sentries have been posted  here and there and are protecting the trees  and the wind is also blowing strong”, he observed.                                                                 67
 
“Let the sages and Devas bless me to give me result in this attempt by making me small and not visible to Ravana and also for the sake of Rama.”, he prayed                      68
 
“Let the ever existing Lord Brahma , other Devas, God of Fire, God of wind and Indra with his weapon of diamond grant me success.”, he further prayed.                             69
 
“Let Varuna(god of rain) with the rope in his hand, sun, moon, the great Aswini devas, Maruths, Parameshwara, that God who is the chief of all beings, all the beings and several  other invisible gods who are on my way grant me victory in my attempt”, he prayed.
                                                                                                                                     70-71
 
“When will I be able to see  the noble Sita’s face, which has a prominent nose. which has clean teeth, which is without blemishes, which has eyes like the petals of lotus flower and which glitters like the moon without blemishes ?”, he wailed.                               72
 
“How is she   who is without support, who is forever meditating, who has been abducted  by the cruel sinner Ravana who wore a good form over his terrible  aspect, going to become visible in front of my eye?”, he thought.                                                        73
 
 
Thus ends the  thirteenth  chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:20:54 AM
Fourteenth Chapter
                              Fourteenth   Chapter
                                  Searching inside the Asoka forest
 
         (Graphic description of the Asoka forest as seen by Hanuman is given. Seeing the forest Hanuman decides that Sita should definitely visit there because she likes the forest and also needs to do her morning ablations)
 
The very powerful Hanuman  after thinking for some more time and after meditating on Sita, Jumped immediately on to the wall of that  palace of Ravana.                          1
 
Enthused all over his body by his self confidence  that monkey climbed that boundary wall and saw many trees with flowers symbolic of spring season, several Sala trees, several pretty Asoka trees, Several champaka trees in full bloom, several karnikara trees, several Naaka trees, several mango trees and several Kapimuka(monkey face) trees.    2-3
 
In that orchard with many mango trees, which is surrounded by pretty climbing plants he rushed in side, like an arrow rushing to its aim from the string of the bow.                     4
 
That Hanuman  entered that garden  which was full of sound made by birds, which was like a rising sun, which was made strange by silver and gold like trees, which was full of birds and deer on all sides, which had several small strange and pretty gardens, which was full of several trees with flowers and fruits, which was always full of nightingales and bees, which was full of sounds made by peacocks, which had a rich varieties of birds, which had people who are happy and in which birds and animals were playing.          5-8
 
Hanuman who was searching for the very pretty lady Sita who was blemish less, woke up several birds which were sound asleep.                                                                            9
 
The trees which were shaken violently by the birds which were flying above them, caused a multi coloured rain of flowers.                                                                       10
 
Hanuman the son of the God of wind, covered completely by the shedding flowers looked like a mountain of flowers in the middle of that Asoka Forest.                11   
 
All animals seeing the monkey rushing in all directions  thought that he was the spring season itself.                                                                                                              12       
 
The ground covered by the shedding flowers from the trees looked like a lady wearing ornaments.                                                                                                                  13
 
The trees shaken vigorously by the strong monkey shed various types of flowers.  14         
 
The trees having shed their leaves, branches , flowers and fruits  looked like a loosing gambler who has already pledged his cloths  and ornaments.                                     15
 
Those bare stems of the trees looked like they have  been destroyed by cyclone  and consequently deserted by all birds and appeared as if they are  of no use.               16
 
That Asoka forest  beat by the hands and tail of the monkey was bereft of any noble trees and resembled a lady with disheveled hair, with erased Sindhoora (dots in the forehead) . with ashen lips drunk by a tenacious lover and with marks all over the body made by  his nails and teeth.                                                                                                        17-18
 
The monkey cut and fell the  groups of twining climbers all over in the garden, which was similar to the scattering of clouds over Vindhya Mountain by the Wind God.                19
 
 Traveling through the garden,  that monkey chief saw places which  were inlaid with precious stones , which were made of silver, which were made of gold ;streams (fountains) of various shapes, which were filled with very pure water, which had steps made of the nine types of precious stones here and there, which had pearls and corals as sand, which had the middle portion made of crystals, which glittered prettily  by the very special type of golden trees, which was full of Lotus and Neelothphala flowers, which was filled with the cooing sound of Chakravaka birds, which was having the sound created by crabs,  which had the sound created by the beaks of swans, which was filled with nectar like water, which was arranged in such a way that it was surrounded by small rivulets on all sides ; gardens filled with several type of climbing plants, which had several wish giving trees, which had several Karaveera plants; and which had orchards filled with dense ornamental shrubs.                                                                20-25
 
Here the monkey chief saw many mountains  with cloud like tall peaks,  which had several very pretty sharp peaks, which was surrounded on all four sides by sentry stations, which was filled with houses made by granite stones, which was surrounded by different varieties of trees, which was the prettiest in the world, and which had several pretty terraces.                                                                                                        26-27
 
He saw streams flowing from those mountains, which looked like the pretty loving ladies raising from the lap of their lovers and slowly going forward.                                     28     
 
Not only that but the monkey chief thought that the pretty streams which were flowing back because of huge trees with a large sinking crowns were stopping them, were like the angry sweetheart  who is stopped by her relatives and coming back after giving up her anger and going near her darling                                                                             29-30
 
The monkey chief Hanuman who was the son of wind God, saw near the river a lotus pond full of different varieties of birds and a lake which was filled with cold water, which had several steps inlaid with precious gems, which had sand strewn with pearls, which had several flocks of deer roaming here and there, which had very pretty  and specialized orchards, which was constructed by Viswakarma (the architect of Devas), which was surrounded by several flower beds and which was decorated by several well crafted towers.                                                                                                              31-34     
 
The trees in the garden were bearing fruits and flowers and were decorated .They also had platforms constructed all round which had golden steps.                                 35
 
Hanuman the monkey  saw a golden Simshuba tree ( caller “Irumul “in Malayalam) with various  climbers and leaves encircling it and which had a golden platform beneath it.   36
 (These trees do exist in Kerala forests even now. They are mainly used for firewood)
 
He saw springs in very low lying areas and also dry places and several mountain like golden tress.                                                                                                         37-38
 
That great monkey chief thought for a moment that he too is golden seeing the glitter similar to the Meru Mountain of those trees.                                                        39
 
He was wonderstruck on seeing the golden Simshuba tree with its seedlings around it, and also with numerous bell like sound created by the pleasantly wafting wind.        40
 
Hanuman who was very swift climbed another Simshuba tree which had flowery tips, which had young leaf and flower buds and which had very dense leaves and thought, “
I would be able to see from here Vaidehi (daughter of Videha) who is sad because of  her sorrow, who always fervently wishes for seeing Rama, and who may  have accidentally come over here.”                                                                                                    41-42
 
“This Asoka forest belonging to the bad soul  Ravana is very pretty  and is decorated with Sandalwood trees, Champaka trees and Bakula trees.”                                            43
 
“The royal lady who is the  daughter of Janaka would certainly come over to this very pretty  lotus pond which is full of birds.”                                                                   44
 
“That Janaki (Sita) who is the queen. Who has experience in living in forests, who is very talented  and who is the very innocent darling of  Raghava (Sri Rama who is the descendent of King Raghu) would definitely come here.”                                           45
 (Raghu the ancestor of Rama served the celestial cow Nandini and got a son called Dilipa)
 
“ Perhaps that daughter of Janaka  who has doe like eyes, who has become thin by constant thought of Sri Rama and  who has lot of experience in living in forests would certainly come over here.”                                                                                            46
 
“That lady who has wilted due to parting with Rama, who has lotus like eyes and who is a traveler in the forest is likely to come daily here  as she is interested in seeing the forest.”                                                                                                                          47
 
“That Janaki who is the very innocent wife of Sri Rama, who is the daughter of Janaka, who is of good colour, who is in the middle of youth, and who is great is always interested in people who travel in the forest  and also  taking in to account that the dawn is  coming  near she would be coming to this river with clean waters to offer her Ablations of the dawn.”                                                                                48-49
(The Brahmanas and Kshatriyas offer oblations during dawn, noon and dusk (Called Sandhyavandanam ) to the Sun God. But these are at present being done only by males. This stanza indicates that during those times even ladies used to offer it)
 
 
“This holy Asoka forest is very suitable to the intelligent wife of Rama who is the daughter in law of the great King.”                                                                           50
 
“If that moon faced lady is alive  she would definitely come to this river with crystal clear water.”                                                                                                                            51
 
At that time , thinking thus, the great Hanuman hid himself  among leaves of a profusely flowering tree expecting to see wife of the king of men and was staring down the tree and was watching everything.                                                                                               52
 
 
      Thus ends the  fourteenth  chapter of Sundara Kanda  which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:21:24 AM
Fifteenth Chapter
                              Fifteenth   Chapter
                                                 Seeing of Sita
   (This chapter initially gives a description of Asoka vana and  its one occupant whom Hanuman suspects as Sita. In the end using pure logic Hanuman concludes that she definitely is Sita)
 
Sitting on the Simshuba tree Hanuman examined all areas down  below , in  the garden in search of Mythili (princess of Mithila) and saw everything which was there in the Asoka forest.                                                                                                                               1
 
Sitting there he saw well the entire garden, which was full of shining climbers and trees, which was sweetly scented, which was decorated all over, which was similar to the ornamental parks, which was full of animals and birds, which had lot of great mansions, which was resounding with the sweet song of Koels, which had golden fruits and flowers, which had many ponds, which had several sofas and carpets, which had several underground chambers, which had trees which fruit and flower in all seasons, which had several Asoka trees  full of flowers from bottom to top  and  were touching the floor because of the heavy load of flowers , which had several Karnikara trees, which had several fully flowering Palasa trees, which was shining like a sun due to the dense flowers  and glitter of Asoka trees, which appeared to shine because of various ornament like flowers and which had bare leaved trees so made by the very many birds which were often flying as  a flock .                                                                                                  2-8
 
Because of their luster that entire area appeared to be shining and the garden also shined with multi crowned pongamia trees, the seven leafed trees, Champaka trees and Udhalaka trees.                                                                                                                                   9
 
There were thousands of  Asoka trees in the garden some of which were golden, some like the flame of fire and some very jet black.                                                                 10
 
That forest with several parks and was as pretty as Indra’s celebrated Nandana vana and Kubera’s famous Chithra vana  and was pretty , holy , greatly attractive, with holy splendor, which cannot be compared to any other  garden and which was much above the rest.                                                                                                                                   11
 
It was like a second sky full of  star collections which resembled  flowers and with its flowers resembling the nine precious gems it was like the fifth sea.                            12
 
That pretty garden  filled with very desirable scents resembled the great Gandhamadana mountain and was full of honey smelling trees which flower in all seasons and with  various types of deer and birds which make different types of noises and was stealer of mind with wafting perfumes all around.                                                                      13-14
 
That monkey chief  also saw a temple which was near the Asoka forest, which was tall, which was supported by thousand pillars in the middle. Which was as white as Kailasa, which had steps made of coral. Which had floor made of molten gold, which had the glitter attracting the eyes, which was holy and which appeared to touch the sky in height.
                                                                                                                             15-17
(Possibly this is a very rare mention of temple in the entire Ramayana. Taking in to account that nothing is mentioned about its presiding deity, the word Chaithya in the verse could be taken to mean as a remarkable building. The word 1000-pillared hall is perhaps mentioned first time in Hindu literature)
 
He saw in the garden a lady who was  wearing dirty cloths, who was surrounded by several Rakshasis, who was thin because of starvation, who was again and again breathing hard and  who was shining  like the crescent of moon in the early waning period. After staring and seeing her with care he saw that broad eyed lady who was with glittering mien, who was like a flame of fire darkened by smoke, who was dressed in a single disheveled great yellow cloth, who was laden with dust, who was not made up, who was like a pond without lotus, who was ashamed, who looked wilted due to sorrow, who was like a lady saint, who was like the star Rohini affected by planet Mars, who was with face made wet by tears, who was dejected, who was thin because she was not taking food, who was full of sad thoughts and sorrow, who was full of fear, who was not seeing any of her dear relatives near by, who was like a deer separated from her flock and surrounded by dogs, who was having singly made hair which was hanging like a cobra behind her, who was like a black forest covered earth in the autumn, who needed good life, who was wilted by sorrow, who never knew the troubles caused by sorrow, who was very thin and who was covered with dirt.                                                                  18-25
 
He concluded that she was that lady who was abducted by Ravana the Rakshasa who could assume any desired form and that she was having the same appearance as she had when abducted.                                                                                                                26
(Rama had given Description of how she looked when she was abducted)
 
Even after Seeing Sita, who had a face like full moon, who had pretty eyebrows, . Who had very pretty round breasts, who by her luster was removing darkness from all directions, who had very black hair, who had lips like the red guava fruit, who had very beautiful hips, who had eyes like petals of lotus, who is born in a great family, who was born in the channel created by plough, who is darling of all the world like Rati (wife of God of love)who had the shine of the full moon, who had extremely pretty body, who was sitting on the floor as if meditating with full control over all her organs, who was like the serpent maiden hissing with fear , who was not shining because of the hard and long sorrow, who was like the flame of fire hidden by the smoke, who was like the poem which praises but which was not clear, who was like the assets which had vanished, who was like the hope which is reduced, who was like the desire which is stopped, who was like the fulfillment  of desires which were dangerous, who was like the confused wisdom, who was like the fame darkened by gossips which were not true, who was sad because she was not able to attain Rama, who had grown thin because she was abducted by Rakshasas , who was having eyes like a doe, who was seeing here and there with fear because of her weakness, who was  breathing heavily again and again  with a lusterless face with black curved eyes and eye  brows. , who was coated with dust and dirt, who should wear make up but who did not wear it, who should be pitied, who was like the moon light hidden by black clouds and who was like the corrupted Vedic knowledge which was not repeated  and practiced, Hanuman’s brain  was full of suspicions..27-36
 
Hanuman recognized Sita with great difficulty which was similar to understanding of an ungrammatical sentence without any figure of speech  and which indicated a wrong meaning.                                                                                                                37
 
He understood her as Sita who was a princess, who was blameless and who had wide eyes after looking at her carefully due to the following reasons.                           38
 
“He saw those ornaments (which could be easily removed and are not a symbol of a married woman)  which were pointed out to be worn by her by  Sri Rama as an identification hanging and shining on a nearby branch of a tree. “                        39
(This stanza indicates that there were some ornaments even during those times which should always worn by married women and there were others, which were optional and could be removed. Here it is mentioned that Sita only wore such ornaments that were compulsory. She threw some of them over the Kishkinda Mountain when she was being abducted by Ravana and were  collected by the monkeys)
 
“He thought that some of those ornaments which were worn by her permanently were fixed strongly and were coated with dirt and were definitely those pointed by Sri Rama as identification like those ornaments made of coral and other jewels being worn on her fingers and hands, like the well crafted ear drops, and like the well tied ear ornament called Swadamshtram”.                                                                                          40-41
(It is interesting to note that he does not mention the mangalyam, which must have been introduced after this time.)
 
“He did not see on her those ornaments which were thrown by her from the Pushpaka Vimana on Rishya Mookha Mountains and all those which she was having were those listed but not thrown out. “                                                                                    42-43
(Sugreeva and his friends were hiding in Rishya Mookha mountains afraid of Vali, who could not enter there due to a curse.)
 
“At that time the monkey chief  saw her golden yellow pretty upper cloth  had fallen down and was hanging on the tree. “                                                                        44
(This stanza indicates that she was not wearing a sari but a two pieced cloth and the upper cloth must have been similar to Uthariyam worn by males)
 
“Whatever ornaments she has thrown away were definitely the one seen by the monkeys”, He thought .                                                                                     45
 
“Though whatever cloth she was wearing was crumpled and dirty because  they  were worn for a long time, they were definitely having the luster and colour of  the  cloth befitting her status, without doubt” , he thought.                                                       46
 
“Though this golden darling of Sri Rama was now in the custody of some one else, She who is  faultless was definitely in his mind and this is definitely her”. He thought.      47
 
“This is the one for whom Sri Rama  was sad,  due to mercy, affection, sorrow and love; mercy because a helpless one has fallen in others hands, affection because he had the responsibility of protecting the one who has come to him for protection, sorrow because his wife was missing and love because she was the wife who was acting according to his wishes.”                                                                                                                 48-49
 
“The beauty of each part of her body and its shape were similar to that of the beauty of Sri Rama and the personality of his was also  similar to  hers, and so this black eyed beauty must be her”. He thought.                                                                             50
 
“This ladies mind lives within his and his mind lives within her and that must be the reason why she and he are staying alive at least for this  short time”. He thought.     51-52
 
 “Sri Rama in spite of parting from this lady is still keeping his body in tact and his body is not breaking to pieces and so it is clear that Lord Sri Rama is doing things which were impossible to others”. He thought.                                                                               53
 
“By living away from this wonderful beauty Sita at least for some time, the great Sri Rama was doing some thing which is impossible for others”, he again thought.           54
 
Like this becoming happy on seeing Sita, he thought in his mind of Sri Rama and thought of him as his Lord.                                                                                                          55
(He felt that she was keeping her virtue in tact and became happy)
                       
         Thus ends the fifteenth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:21:52 AM
Sixteenth   Chapter
                                           Lamenting about Sita   
 
    (Seeing Sita Hanuman is upset and thinks about her in various ways and pities her. He again decides that the lady whom he has found is Sita herself)
 
After thinking highly of Sita who is fit to be praised and Rama who has a beautiful character, that monkey chief again became thoughtful.                                            1
 
That glittering Hanuman meditated thus for some time about Sita, and with tearful eyes cried. alas!                                                                                                                    2
 
“If  the great man’s wife Sita ,who is fit to be worshipped by Lakshmana who always  behaves with humility towards elders, is troubled by sorrow , then the dictates of time are impassable. “                                                                                                            3
 
“This great one who knows the inner mind of Rama and Lakshmana does not get much stormy like the river Ganges in rainy season.”, he thought                                        4
(This indicates that Sita is very hopeful of her being rescued by Rama and Lakshmana and has not broken to pieces)
 
“Endowed with similar characters ,  age. and  conduct and belonging to  similar families and possessing similar characteristics, Sri Rama deserves Sita and this black eyed beauty deserves Sri Rama”, he thought.                                                                                      5
 
Having seen her who  is with colour of molten gold, who is the prettiest in the world and who is like Lakshmi(Consort of Lord Vishnu) and having also  thought of Sri Rama., he told  himself the following:-                                                                                          6
 
“For the sake of this broad eyed damsel, the very strong King Bali was killed, and also Kabanda who was equal to Ravana was killed”.                                                             7
(Kabanda who was a Gandarwa who  got his head and thighs pushed inside his trunk by Vajrayudha in a fight with Indra. Since he had the boon of immortality from Brahma,  he was given two very long hands(8 miles long) and  mouth in his stomach., He used to draw whatever he could from the forest by using his extra long hands and push it in to his stomach. After the war with Rama, he was defeated and resumed his original form.)
 
“The Rakshasa Viradha who was having extremely great valor  was killed in the war in the forest similar  Indra killing  Sambarasura., again for the sake of this damsel”         8
 
(Viradha was actually a Gandarwa named Dumburu who was cursed by his master Kubera.In the forest in the war with Rama and Lakshmana, he initially caught hold of Sita  and left her to fight with Rama and Lakshmana.He then caught hold of , both of them and kept them on his shoulders. With their swords they cut of his hands. At that time he remembered about his actual, form and by the grace of Rama , got rid of his curse.)
 
“Fourteen thousand Rakshasas who were doing terrible deeds were also killed in Janasthana by using arrows which are like flame of fire for her sake. “                          9
(Janasthana is a part of Dandakaranya forest on the shores of Godhavari. Here fourteen thousand Rakshasas lead by Khara, Dhooshana and Trisiras attacked Rama and Lakshmana .They were all killed by the two brothers.)
 
“ The all knowing Rama killed in war the greatly powerful Khara, Trishiras and similarly Dhooshana.”                                                                                                                    10
 
“It is  for  this broad eyed damsel’s sake  that the kingdom, which was ruled by Bali, which was considered as great by the world and which was difficult to obtain for monkeys was got by Sugreeva.”                                                                                    11
 
“It is for her sake that that I crossed the ocean which is the lord of streams and rivers and for her sake that I searched this city well.”                                                                     12
 
“I feel that for her sake if Lord Rama turns upside down the earth surrounded by oceans and even the universe, it would be most apt.”.                                                             13
 
“Suppose in the three worlds, a choice is given between Sita who is the daughter of Janaka and the kingship of the world, the kingship will not be even equal to a tiny part of Sita.”                                                                                                                              14
 
“This Sita who is eternally devoted to her husband came out breaking apart the earth coated with field dust similar to the pollen of lotus ,when the great Janaka  who was the king of Mithila ploughed the field and  became his very famous daughter.”         15-16
 
“She is the eldest daughter in law of King Dasaratha who was very good, who never came back defeated in war and who was having great valor.”                                   17
 
“This lady who is the darling wife ,of just and philosophic Rama who does unblemished actions and is like  the lord of wealth ,has fallen in to the hands of these Rakshasis.”    18
 
“She , without bothering about sorrow and sacrificing  all  pleasures, accompanied her husband  to the solitary forest for the sake of  love from him ,  gave it the  utmost importance  and lived with happiness by eating fruits and roots of the forest thinking it similar to her life in the palace  and was engaged in service to her husband.”      19-20
 
“She who is having  all the above qualities, who was having a body of the colour of gold, who was always adorned with a smile, who always used to talk of only good things and who never had experienced sorrow in her life , now tolerates extreme sorrow.”            21
 
‘”Even though troubled by Ravana similar to a  thirsty man  attacking the water house, she has remained virtuous and Sri Rama deserves to see her.”                                22
 
“If Rama gets her back again he would attain the happiness of a king who lost his kingdom and got it again.”                                                                                              23   
 
“Even though forsaken by love and passion, even though taken away from her relatives and friends, she is keeping her body pure for the sake of union to him”.                       24 
 
“Even now she is not seeing the Rakshasis and does not give any attention to these flower and fruit filled trees but  with absolute concentration is meditating on Rama.”               25
 
“Husband is the ornament which is better than all ornaments to a lady and she who deserves such an ornament does not shine without one.”                                                 26
 
“The Lord Sri Rama is keeping his body intact in spite of parting with her and does not disintegrate and is doing some action which no one can perform.”                                27
 
“Seeing her who is having a pitch black hair, who is having eyes of the shape of lotus and who is fit only to enjoy, suffering my mind is in turmoil.”                                        28
 
“She who is having the patience of earth, who has eyes like lotus and who should have been protected by Rama and Lakshmana, is now being guarded by the ugly Rakshasis below a tree.”                                                                                                            29
 
“This daughter of Janaka, who is lifeless like the lotus flower touched by snow, who is suffering by sorrow again and again, has attained the tragic state of Chakravaka bird who ha lost the company of its beloved.”                                                                         30
 
“These Asoka trees bent low because of the large number of flowers produced after the autumn season, and this moon with its thousand rays, produces lot of sorrow to her.” 31
(Moon light and flowers make her remember her life of love with Rama and thus causes sorrow to her)
 
 
The strong and wise chief of monkey thought about the matter as described above and decided that “She is definitely Sita” and stayed hidden in the Simshuba tree.               32
 
      Thus ends the Sixteenth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:23:30 AM
Seventeenth Chapter
                              Seventeenth   Chapter
                                               Seeing of Rakshasis
 (Graphic description of the Rakshasis surrounding Sita is given in this chapter. It also describes the sorry state of Sita and ends with the mention of happiness of Hanuman on seeing Sita)
 
Then in the clear sky the cream coloured moon , which is normally clear, rose like a swan appearing in blue water.                                                                                               1
 
Shining with clarity that moon appeared to help by its light and by its cool moonlight served the son of wind God.                                                                                           2
 
Because of that He saw the full moon faced Sita similar to the ship in ocean weighed down and about to sink by her sorrow.                                                                          3
 
Trying to see Sita (daughter of Videha) clearly ,that son of wind god saw near her ugly and terrible looking Rakshasis among whom some were one eyed, some one eared, some with closed ears, some without ears, some with stick like ears, some breathing through the nose in the head, some with very large head and body, some thin with elongated neck, some with brush like hair, some with no hair at all, some wearing her hairs  like a woolen rug, some with hanging ears and forehead, some with hanging breasts and belly, some with hanging lips, some with chin itself as lips, some with hanging faces, some with hanging knees, some hunch backed, some obese, similarly some who were dwarf, some handicapped, some with slanted mouth and some with yellow eyes.                    4-9
(This description in these stanzas and the following one,  by the poet of a group of grotesque looking figures, indicates to us the common perception of those times of the look of Rakshasis. There is a story that when Lord Brahma was reciting Vedas , due to excessive hunger, he became very angry and from his anger , the first two Rakshasas Hethi and Prahethi were born. They became a part of the Asuras and by their prowess became the pre dominant among them)
 
He also saw other Rakshasis, among whom some were very ugly, some yellow coloured, some with jet black colour, some who were very angry, some who were interested in fighting, some who were armed with big spear, swords and rods, some with faces of pig, deer, tiger, bison, sheep and fox, some with legs of elephant, camel and horse, some with heads fixed just over the body, some with one hand and one leg, some with ears of a donkey, some with ears of a dog, some with ears of a cow, some with ears of an elephant, some with ears of a lion, similarly some without nose, some with very big nose, some with nose like an elephant, some with ears on their forehead, some with legs of an elephant, some with very big legs, some with legs of a cow, some with profuse hairs on the legs, some with big neck and heads, some with big breasts and belly, some with big mouth and eye, some with long nails and tongue, some with face of a sheep, some with face of an elephant, some with face of a cow, some with face of a pig, some with faces of horse, camel and donkey, some holding spears and thorn sticks, some with ire, some interested in fighting, some with projected teeth., some with blond hairs, some with terrible looking mien, some always interested in alcohol and meat, some drinking spirits often, some with ugly faces, some who had rubbed meat and blood all over their body, some whose food was only meat and blood, some  who had a terrible stare which would make hairs stand upright, and all of them surrounding on all four sides  a huge forest tree with umpteen branches.                                                                                           10-18
 
That Hanuman blessed by Goddess Lakshmi saw below that tree which was in the center of Asoka forest, that Lady Sita, who was a princess, who was innocent, who was the daughter of Janaka, who had lost her glitter, who had  faded because of her sorrow, who was having flying dirty hair, who was like a star pushed down to earth when its good deeds are over[14], who was great because of her virtue, who was not knowing ways to see her husband, who was not wearing costly ornaments, who was wearing the ornament of her devotion to her husband, who was abducted by the king of rakshasas, who was separated from her relatives, who was like the she elephant who was in the custody of a lion after loosing her way, who was like the autumn crescent hidden by the clouds of the late rainy season, who was dirty looking because she had not washed herself, who was like a veena without strings, who was sunk in the sea of sorrow, who was earlier in the custody of her husband and who did not like  to be in the custody of Rakshasis.       19-24
 
‘Seeing the lady who was like a tender plant in flowering, surrounded by the Rakshasis, he felt that she was like the Rohini star surrounded by the nine planets.                          25
(The Moon God has 27 wives , all of them daughters of Daksha. The moon God , it seems was very partial to Rohini, one of his wives. She is supposed to be the bright star traveling along with the moon)
 
“Though by her natural beauty itself she was well made up, due to the dirt that she was having on her faded body , she was like the slush coated lotus plant which was shining as well as not shining”, he thought.                                                                               26
 
The monkey chief Hanuman  saw Sita who was only wearing a  dirty and ruffled single cloth, who was having an eye similar to the young deer, who was not wilting away because she was remembering the greatness of her husband, who was being protected by her virtue, who was having black eyes and who was blessed by her youth.                27-28
 
Understanding her as Sita, that son of wind god ,looking at  the princess of Mithila who was having eyes similar to an young deer, who was seeing in all directions like a fear struck deer, who was breathing heavily as if her breath will burn the well grown tress surrounding her, who was like a tidal wave of sorrow which always comes as a group, who was shining without any ornaments, who was having very perfect limbs and who was having great patience, attained limitless happiness for having completed his task.            29-31
 
Hanuman shed tears of happiness seeing her who was having eyes like wine and immediately Saluted Sri Rama. .                                                                           32
 
That heroic Hanuman becoming happy because he saw Sita, saluted both Sri Rama and Lakshmana and continued to he in hiding.                                                           33                                                             
 
 
      Thus ends the Seventeenth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:24:35 AM
Eighteenth Chapter
                              Eighteenth   Chapter
                                                 Arrival of Ravana
 
(Here the description of the passionate Ravana who woke up and came to Asoka forest along with his wives to see Sita ,is given. Ravana is described as valorous but spoiled by his passion and his women are described as virtuous, good and devoted to him)
 
When he was examining with care the forest, which was in full flower and also searching for the daughter of Videha, the night was about to come to an end and the dawn was in making.                                                                                                                           1
 
In the end of night he heard the recitation of Vedas by the Brahma rakshasas who were well versed in all the six parts of Vedas and who had done great fire sacrifices.              2
(Brahma Rakshasas are highly learned Brahmins who due to the wayward life they lead and sins they committed are not able to attain Pithru Loka after their death. It is believed that they are very learned and have occult powers)
 
At that time the very strong and great Hero , the ten headed one (Ravana) was woken up with the good luck , by singing songs which were sweet to hear and also verses praising him.                                                                                                                                    3
 
That famous king of Rakshasas having woken up at the correct time wearing displaced cloths and garlands thought of the daughter of Videha.                                                    4
 
That egoist Rakshasa because the God of love affected him, was not able to keep his passion to Sita under control.                                                                                       5
 
He , carrying with him his unparalleled  fame ,wearing all ornaments entered  Asoka forest., which was having hangings made of gold in which gems were inlaid, which had fallen fully ripe fruits, which was dense with trees, which was giving happiness to the mind and eyes ,  which was having statues of  deer , which was full of different varieties of trees, which was having several wonderful birds full of zest, which was filled with lotus ponds and which was shining with various types of flowers and saw it round.  6-9
 
That Ravana was followed by a very big group of ladies similar to Indra being followed by deva and Gandharwa maidens.                                                                                 10

Some of those ladies were carrying in their hand white threaded fan, some had golden lamps hanging on a chain and some had round ornamental discs.                            11
(The Chamara, the white threaded fan had a handle and was used to fan kings)
 
Some with water in golden vessels preceded him and some with back turned swords and carpets followed him.                                                                                                 12
 
At that time one intelligent lady took a gem studded pot with water in her right hand and walked with him.                                                                                                         13
(When great personages walked, some one walked before him and sprinkled water on his path , so that , the road is not dusty.)
 
Another walked behind him with an umbrella, which was having a golden handle, which was white, like a swan and which was shining like a full moon.                               14
 
With eyes made red by lack of sleep and wine, those great wives of Ravana followed their heroic husband like the streaks of lightning following the clouds.                     15
 
Those darling wives of Ravana who were wearing mixed up garlands and bangles, who were having a disheveled looks, whose hair has been unloosened, whose face was full of droplets of sweat, whose body was made wet by sweat, whose hair was adorned by flowers, who were tottering because of loss of sleep and due to effects of wine, who were having pretty faces, who were having eyes causing passion and who were great ladies followed the Rakshasa king because of  their respect and passion towards him.     16-18
 
This very strong Ravana who was the husband of those ladies had come under the control of passion became a bad individual and  because he had lost his heart to Sita and  was following a path of utter selfishness .,                                                                             19
 
Hanuman the son of Wind god heard  the jingling sound  of the anklets and waist belts of those great ladies.                                                                                                          20
 
Hanuman saw Ravana who was capable of very great deeds, who had unimaginable strength and masculinity, who shined on all the four directions by the light of many lamps held in the front which were fed by perfumed oils, who was full of passion, egoism and bad conduct, who was having long red eyes, who was a personification of the god of love without his rope and who was wearing well washed white cloths with a colour of foam of milk hanging from his shoulders but pushed to one side, entered the garden. 21-24   
 
Hiding in branch with profuse leaves and hidden by leaves and flowers, Hanuman started examining Ravana with care..                                                                                          25
 
When the chief of monkeys was examining Ravana thus he saw the youthful pretty great wives of  Ravana.                                                                                                         26
 
That famous king surrounded by that bevy of beauties entered the garden of the harem, which was full of animals and birds.                                                                            27
 
That Hanuman saw the very strong king of Rakshasa who was the son of sage Vishravas, who was holding his two ears upright like spears, who was well ornamented, who was visibly drunk by passion, and who was surrounded by his ladies like the stars surrounding the moon.                                                                                                                   28-29
(Malyavan, the maternal grand father of Ravana, wanted the Rakshasa clan to win over Devas. He induced his daughter Kaikasi to attract Sage Vishravas, who was the son of
Pulasthya and father of the God of wealth, Kubhera. She became the mother of four children as a result. The eldest was Ravana)
 
That monkey chief who was endowed with great power  saw Ravana  who was glittering by the rays of his power.                                                                                               30
 
That greatly resplendent monkey chief who was the Son of God of wind decided without any doubt that” This individual was earlier seen by me in the center of the city, in a great palace asleep and so this must be the great hero Ravana.”,  and he jumped and ran away             
                                                                                                                                        31
(The awesome look of Ravana induced fear even in a great hero like Hanuman. The poet wants us to compare the weak and tender Sita in such a circumstance.)
 
That monkey chief was greatly resplendent  but being disturbed by the great power of Ravana , he further withdrew deep in to hiding.                                                        32
 
That Ravana with a great desire to see Sita who had jet-black hair, jet black eyes, passionately attractive wide waist, and very dense breasts neared her.                       33
 
 
      Thus ends the Eighteenth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:24:53 AM
Nineteenth Chapter
                              Nineteenth   Chapter
                                       Description of the sage  like Sita
 
      (This chapter gives a very detailed and graphic description of the state of Sita)
 
The innocent princess Vaidehi who was a noble soul, seeing Ravana  the youthful , pretty king of Rakshasas from the place  she was sitting ,shook like a banana plant caught in a cyclone                                                                                                                        1-2
 
That ten headed one saw Sita who was having a pretty body, who had broad eyes, who was hiding her belly by her thighs and breasts by her hands, who was being guarded by the crowd of Rakshasis, who had wilted because of her sorrow, who was crying, who was like a sinking ship, who was like a branch of a tree which had fallen on earth, who was sitting on bare earth , who was doing great penance, who was suitable for a make up but was not made up, who was wearing dirt as an ornament and who was the princess of Videha. In that state she who was like a stem of lotus, which was shining and also not shining.                                                                                                                    3-6
 
Ravana because his death was nearby, passionately loved Sita, who was like one traveling in the chariot of mind pulled by horses called “strong decision” taking her near to the all knowing great prince Sri Rama, who had faded, who was alone, who was crying, who was all the time thinking and crying, whose only aim was Sri Rama, who was virtuous, who had still not seen the end of sorrow, who was like the shivering Naga maiden tied by magic chants, who was like the star Rohini affected by the comets, who was born in a pedigreed family which was orthodox, which was just and which was having good character and good conduct , who was given in religious marriage to another great family, who appeared as if she was brought up in a bad family, who was like the fame tainted by non existing gossip, who was like the knowledge which was not memorized by constant repetition, who was like the fame which had disappeared, who was like the attention which was dishonored, who was like the knowledge which has diminished, who was like the desire which was disappointed, who was like a demolished home, who was like the commands which were not obeyed, who was like the residences which were burnt, who was like the worship which was prevented in the right time, who was like the destroyed lotus pond, who was like the army without its commander, who was like the darkened glitter, who was like the dried up river, who was like the sacrificial arena made dirty, who was like the receding fire about to die, who was like the night of full moon when eclipse is caused by Rahu and Kethu, who was like the turbid lotus pond which was disturbed by the trunk of the elephant and from which all leaves and flowers were removed and from which the birds have flown away, who had wilted because of  her husband was not with her, who was like the river from which water has been removed by canals, who was like the night of waxing moon because she had not taken her bath, who was great, who was very pretty, who was fit to live in a palace made of gems, who was wilting due to harsh sun light, who was like a lotus stem picked some time before, who was like a she elephant which was removed away from the he elephant and tied to a pillar, which was tired because of extreme sorrow and which was taking long breaths, who was shining with a single made hair without any ornaments, who was like the black corner of the forest at the end of the rainy season,  who was famished because of her fast, who had become thin because of her sorrow, who was pitiable because of worries and fear, who was not taking any food, who was wilted because of sorrow, who appeared as if she was praying  with folded hands to Sri Rama mentally as if  she was praying God  for the death of the ten headed one giving great importance to her virtue , who was having white  long eyes with pretty eyelids, who was crying, who was seeing all round out of fear, who was firmly believing only on Sri Rama and who was  not suitable to be found fault of..                                                                                                             7-22
 
 
      Thus ends the nineteenth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 16, 2008, 08:25:18 AM
Twentieth Chapter
                              Twentieth   Chapter
                                           Ravana’s prayer of love
  (This chapter is the prayer of love of Ravana to Sita. He praises her, points out his greatness and tells her how she can enjoy life if she accepts his proposal)
 
That Ravana with an  aim to intimately talk to Sita who is sad, who meditates like a sage, who was caught in the web of fear and who is virtuous and devoted to her husband, sweetly explained to her:-                                                                                         1
 
“Oh lady who has thighs like the elephants trunk, you seem to wish to make your body invisible to me by hiding your breasts and belly.”                                                     2
 
“Hey broad eyed one, hey my dear, hey lady who has a very beautiful body, I am passionately in love with you ,who is the prettiest lady of the world and  so please respect me.”                                                                                                                             3
 
“Hey Sita, there are neither Rakshasas or men who are personification of passion here, and so let the fear for me inside you be completely erased.”                                        4
 
“Hey Coward, abducting other women and raping them are permissible by the clan rules of Rakshasas, no doubt.”                                                                                                  5
 
“Whatever it may be , let the God of love play to any extent on my body, but I will definitely not even touch you without your permission.”                                               6
(Vedavathi has cursed Ravana that if he  touches any lady against her wishes, his head will break in to pieces.)
 
“ Hey  Lady, please do not fear that any mishap will occur in this case . Hey  pretty one , have belief in me and  love me with all your soul, and do not spend time like this by nurturing your sorrow..”                                                                                                  7
 
“With matted singly made hair, sleeping on the floor, wearing dirty cloths, worrying and starving  are not suitable to you , my lady.”                                                                     8
 
“Hey daughter of Mithila, please accept my love and receive rare garlands, smoke from incense, several good cloths, divine ornaments, very costly drinks, beds. Seats, song, dance and other instrumental music.”                                                                   9-10
 
“Hey pretty one, you are a jewel among ladies and why is it that you are not fit to receive praises ? Don’t be like this, accept me and wear ornaments on your body.”                  11
 
 
“This pretty youthful looks of yours  is fading very fast and the youthfulness  that is past would not return back similar to the flowing water.”                                                    12
 
“Hey Good looking lady, there is no one else as pretty as you and I think that the creator Brahma has stopped his work after creating you. “                                                        13
 
“Hey daughter of Videha, which male including the God Brahma can leave you after personally seeing you glittering in your beauty and youth?”                                         14
 
“Hey lady who has a face like cool full moon,  Hey lady who has big wide waists, whichever part of the body I see, my eyes are tied up by that part.”                             15
“Hey princess of Mithila, forsake this sorrow, become my wife and become the chief among my several great ladies.”                                                                               16
 
“Hey coward, whatever jewels I have brought by force from any corner of the world would belong to you and for that matter me and my kingdom will be yours.”         17
 
“Hey lady who attracts, I would conquer all countries with several cities in the world and for your sake give them to Janaka, your father.”                                                        18
 
“I do not know any one else in this world who has same strength as me , and so think of my great valor which is unbeatable in war.”                                                              19
 
“All devas and Asuras were unable to stand before me along with their armies and have been driven out by me several times after breaking their flags.”                                20
 
“Please accept me, let you be ornamented and made up just now.”                            21
 
“Let you , wear glittering ornaments all over your body and  let me  with pleasure  see you  pretty. after wearing those ornaments.”                                                                22
 
“Hey pretty faced one, Hey coward, after being well made up, with pleasure ,enjoy all passions, be happy  and get satisfied in your want of passion.”                                    23
 
“You can give as presents  land and  wealth to whomsoever are dear to you. Please be happy believing in me and order with courage. Please enjoy all pleasures and let all your relations live happily because of my power.”                                                     24
 
“Hey lady, be pleased to see my greatness, my wealth and my fame. Hey lucky one, what are you going to do with Rama who wears cloths made of barks of trees?”          25
 
“Rama has lost his victory, he has lost his wealth, he wanders in the forest, he does penance, he sleeps on bare earth, and not only that I am doubting whether he is still alive or not?”                                                                                                                    26
 
“Hey princess of Videha, like the moon with a stork filled front which is hidden by dark clouds , he will not be even able to see you.”                                                                  27
(Normally people imagine the shadow on the moon as rabbit but the poet here imagines it as lot of storks)
 
 
“Not only that Rama will not be able to take you away from my hands like  Hiranya Kasipu  was not able to  take back his wife Keerthi from the hands of  Indra..”                                  28
(Indra abducted the Kayathu alias  Keerthi wife of Hiranya Kasipu, who could not get her back .Sage Narada convinced Indra of his wrong act and Gave back Kayathu to Hiranya Kasipu.It seems she was in the family way while in captivity and Narada told her the stories of Vishnu. The child named as Prahlada became a staunch devotee of Vishnu.)
 
“Hey coward, hey lady with heart warming smile, hey lady with pretty teeth, hey lady with pretty eyes, Hey handsome lady who attracts others, you have stolen my mind like the Garuda has taken away the serpent.”                                                                    29
 
“In spite of your wearing dirty silk cloth, in spite of not been made up, in spite of your having a famished look, after seeing you , I am not able to love m other dear wives.”   30
(Even at this state Sita is pretty, then imagine how much pretty she would be if she dresses well.)
   
“There are very many ladies with all good qualities in my harem and be pleased to become their queen.”                                                                                                    31
 
“Hey black haired one, my wives are the best in all the three worlds and they would serve you like the divine maidens serve Goddess Lakshmi.”                                                   32
 
“Hey lady with pretty eyelids, Hey lady with pretty waist , you can get all the wealth and gems that Lord Kubhera has and also all the worlds and me if you so please.”                33
 
“Lady, Rama cannot be equal to me by innate power, fame and wealth and also never be equal to me by penance, strength and masculinity.”                                                          34
 
“ Hey Lady with shifting glances, I would dedicate sufficient wealth and land for your sake, you can then enjoy all the pleasures and become happy, You can live with me as you please, be a dear to me, engage in love play with me and along with you  let your relatives also become happy.”                                                                                       35     
 
“Hey coward, Hey lady,  you can wear golden garlands with clear pearls and travel and enjoy with me  to the fully flowered dense forests full of bees and also the beaches.”  36
 
(There is a version of Ramayana called Adyathma Ramayana, which tells us that Ravana had abducted Sita only as a means to see Rama whom he revered as God. This Chapter’s stanzas have been given alternate meaning by the adherents of that version of Ramayana .There is another version called Ananda Ramayana which tells us that Sita is in fact the daughter of Ravana.)
 
      Thus ends the twentieth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:08:06 AM
Twenty first Chapter
                              Twenty first Chapter
                                          Denial of Ravana’s proposal
 
(This chapter contains the reply of Sita .She tells him that he should give  her back to
    Sri Rama and seek his protection if he wants to live further)
     
Hearing the words of the cruel Rakshasa , Sita became sad and started trembling and toungue tied and told the following words as  reply ,one by one in low tones.           1
(People believed that virtuous women should not shout and also Sita wanted to convince Ravana that he is wrong and that is why –one by one)
 
Sita who was pretty, who has done penance, who is virtuous, and who always meditates on her husband became extremely sad, started crying and trembling and put a thin grass in between them and replied him with a smile which showed her greatness.              2
(Putting the grass between them indicates , how much value she has attached to Ravana)
 
“Take back your mind from me  and take your mind to your own people ,for you are not fit to pray  to me like the sinner praying for redemption.”                                            3
 
“I who was born in a great family and got married in to a equally holy honoured family cannot do a great sin which is cursed by virtuous women with one husband.”              4
(Valmiki uses Eka Pathim meaning a lady with one husband.)
 
That famous daughter of Videha without bothering about Ravana the Rakshasa told this turning her back to him and started to tell the same thing in more detail.                        5
 
“ I who am innocent and a wife of another  man ,  am not fit to become your wife in the proper course, so protect the just method of action and obey the tenets of good conduct properly.”                                                                                                                          6
 
“Hey night traveler, like your wives, the wives of other people also should be properly protected and so keep yourself as  a simile  and try to find satisfaction in your own wives.”                                                                                                                        7
 
“He who cannot find satisfaction in his own wives is one who cannot control his senses and that unstable man is lead to his own destruction by other ladies.”                       8
 
“It appears that here,  there are no great ones who tell you about the right path or it appears that you are not obeying them for your brain is doing just opposite to the right conduct.”                                                                                                                     9
 
“You who seem to concentrate your mind on bad conduct possibly are not obeying the  advice of those great analysts  and their words , which would give you to good future because you are leading  the Rakshasas to destruction .”                                           10
 
“Prosperous countries and cities race to their complete destruction if they get a foolish king who engages himself in unjust activities.”                                                           11
 
“Like that , this gem studded city of Lanka having got you as a king is soon going to be destroyed because of your sinful activities.”                                                                     12
 
“Hey Ravana, all animals are thankful for the destruction of a sinner who gets destroyed by thoughtless activities done by himself.”                                                                   13
 
“Like this your own people who are ignored t by a sinner such as you would become happy and curse you saying” That angry one attained this destruction because of God.””     14
 
“I am not the one who will be  tempted by wealth or  the position of a queen  and stray from just activities  as  I am one with Lord Rama like the Sun’s rays are with Sun.”     15
 
“Having made the Lord of the world’s hands as a source of protection (pillow). How can I allow any one else’s hands near me.”                                                                           16
 
“Like the ultimate knowledge is fit for one who does penances completely and gained knowledge of the  soul, I am suitable  to be wife only to him  who is the king.”         17
 
“Hey Ravana, It would be good for you if you return me to  Rama similar to the imprisoned she elephant be joined to its He elephant in the forest.”                          18
 
“That Sri Rama is the greatest among men, he knows what is just and he is famous for behaving with affection towards any one seeking his protection and if you are desirous of living, you should build up friendly relationship with him .You please do everything that will please that Lord, who loves those who seeks his protection. That is the only one way for you,  who is desirous of a deathless state and  want to prevent your own death you have to decide to control your senses and decide to pray-fully offer me  back at this moment.”                                                                                                         19-22
 
“Only by offering me back to Rama would you lead a comfortable life and if you do otherwise you would reach your death.”                                                                23
 
“The Vajrayudha (weapon of diamond) may leave you and even God of death can postpone his action for a long time but if Rama, the Lord of the world ,becomes angry, you will not be left out.”                                                                                           24
 
“You would hear the fearful echoing sound of Kodanda[15] , the bow of Rama , which would be similar to the sound made by Vajrayudha.”                                                       25
 
“ Well made, poison spewing arrows of Rama and Lakshmana are going to fall here like serpents soon. “                                                                                                        26
 
“Those arrows with hawk feather which are going to fall here are soon going to kill all Rakshasas and would leave no space in this city.”                                                  27
 
“That great eagle ,Sri Rama is going to soon destroy the snake like king of Rakshasa like a eagle destroys the snakes.”                                                                                    28
 
“Like Lord Mahavishnu took away the entire wealth of Rakshasa by his three steps, my Lord and destroyer of his enemies Sri Rama would free me from your clutches soon.” 29
(This gives an indication about the story of Vamana and Mahabali. Lord Vishnu took the form of dwarfish Brahmin lad and requested Mahabali for three steps of Land. Two steps measured all the fourteen worlds, and Mahabali offered his own head for the third step.)
 
“Hey Rakshasa , having been made without a army camp  by the extermination of the army of Rakshasas in Janasthana and having no other  alternative you did this bad deed.”                           30
 
“Hey base one, did you not enter my ashram and abduct me when the lion like brothers went little far away.”                                                                                                          31
 
“Like a fox which is not safe when two hunter dogs are smelling for him, you would not be able to even stand before Rama and Lakshmana.”                                                    32
 
“Similarly in the war with them you would attain destruction like the Vrithrasura who had  one hand left was destroyed by the two handed Indra and there is no possibility of victory.”                                                                                                                33
(This alludes to one of the very few battles Indra won He first cut one of the Asura’s hand and when he continued fighting Indra killed him She compares Ravana to a single armed Asura and mocks at him..)
 
“My Lord Sri Rama with Lakshmana would take your soul away by their arrows like the hot sun dries away a small pool of water.”                                                                 34
 
“Even if you hide in the mountain of Kubhera or hide in the residence of Varuna or in the hall of Indra , definitely you cannot save yourselves from the son of Dasaratha like a lifeless huge tree cannot save itself from lightning.”                                                      35
 
      Thus ends the twenty first chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:08:41 AM
Twenty second Chapter
                                Twenty second Chapter
                                              Ravana setting limit for Sita
 
(Ravana terrorizes Sita and tells her that within another two months she should sleep with him. Otherwise she would be killed. Sita rejects the threat with contempt it deserves and the passionate Ravana treats her cruelly. He is dissuaded by one Dhanyamala and returns to his palace , after ordering the Rakshasis surrounding Sita to make her obey to his wishes by fair or foul means.)
After this Ravana , hearing the  firm reply of Sita, gave the following dangerous reply to her well intentioned words:-                                                                                            1
 
“To the extent a man tries to console a lady, he gets caught in her web to that extent, to the extent he praises her, he is given negative replies to that extent.”                             2
 
“The passion towards you within me is controlling my anger towards you like an experienced driver controls a straying horse.”                                                                3
 
“Passion of a man is beautiful, because to whomsoever that passion is addressed , he gets love and mercy towards her.”                                                                                          4
(Ravana who is a Rakshasa talks about the passion of man.)
 
“Because of this I am not killing you, who has love towards an imposter sage  and  who should be insulted and killed.”                                                                                       5
 
“Hey princess of Mithila, for every harsh word that you told me you deserve terrible punishment of death.”                                                                                                      6
 
After telling the daughter of Videha these words, he became very angry and further told her the following:-                                                                                                            7
 
“Hey pretty one, who cannot be adequately described, the remaining period of safety that I have set to you are only two months and so you better climb in my bed to sleep with me.”                                                                                                                                  8
 
“If you do not accept me as your husband after two months, my cooks will cut you in to pieces for my breakfast.”                                                                                                    9
(After abducting and keeping her imprisoned in Asoka forest. Gave her a period of 12 months of which ten are already past.)
 
The deva and Gandharwa ladies present there with pain laden eyes pitied the daughter of Janaka who was threatened by the king of Rakshasas.                                                     10
 
Some ladies by the movement of their lips and some others by their eyes and faces tried to console Sita who was terrorized by the Rakshasa.                                                   11
 
Consoled by them Sita, addressing Ravana the king of Rakshasas told him the following words which reflected the greatness in her due to her virtue and which were good to the soul:-                                                                                                                               12
 
“There appears to be none interested in your welfare and that is why nobody is preventing you from this base act of yours.”                                                               13-14
 
“In all the three worlds none except you would wish me to be their wives, for I am the wife of that just soul like Sachi Devi is the wife of Indra.”                                          15
 
“Hey, base Rakshasa, where and how are you going to run and save yourself after uttering these sinful words addressed to the wife of the all powerful Sri Rama.(could be also interpreted as from that sin instead of Rama)”                                                16
 
“ You two are like the very angry upset elephant and a poor rabbit in the forest, you being the rabbit and Sri Rama the elephant.”                                                                17
 
“You , who are like that are without shame insulting him  from the beginning  and never became  visible to his eye and kept yourself  in hiding.”                                       18
 
“Hey cruel one, why are those two cruel ugly an yellowish black eyes of yours which are staring me not falling down on earth.”                                                                         19
 
“Hey sinner, why does not your toungue which talks to me who am Rama’s  wife and daughter in law of Dasaratha not getting detached?”                                                    20
 
“Hey ten headed one,  who deserves to become ash, I am not turning you in to ash by the power of my virtue  because I do not have the  consent from Rama and since I have to follow my own dictates of just action(dharma).”                                                       21
 
“It is not possible for me ,who belongs to Rama, to be abducted and I do not have any doubt that God has fated this ,for causing your destruction.”                                    22
 
“After doing some trick to get Sri Rama away from me , you are supposed to be a great hero , who is the brother of Kubhera and who has an army , had only done  the theft of a wife “                                                                                                                             23
 
Hearing these insulting words, Ravana rolled his very cruel eyes and stared at the daughter of Janaka.                                                                                                     24
 
That king of Rakshasas who was like a bluish cloud, who had very thick neck and arms, who had the strength and gait of a lion, who was a gentleman, who had sharp  toungue and eyes like the flame of fire, who wore the crown with moving tips, who wore several pretty garlands and other marks, who wore red cloths and garland, who wore golden armlets, who had a pretty waist belt adorned with blue gem stones, who was like the Mandara mountain used to churn out nectar from the sea with the great serpent Vasuki encircling it   and  who was equal to a mountain, shined with his two long , round and thick hands like the two peaks of Mandara mountain.                                          25-28
 
That Ravana, who wore two ear globes having the glitter of the young sun, who was like a mountain having two Asoka trees with red young leaves and flowers, who was similar to the wish giving tree (Kalpaka[16]) , who looked like the personification of spring season, who was like the dreaded body platform in the cremation ground, who though ornamented well was looking terrible and who was having deep red eyes due to anger, hissed like a serpent addressed Sita the daughter of King of Videha and told thus:-   29-31
 
“Hey lady , who has believed with hope that unjust Rama who is poor, I am going to kill you by my strength  just now like the Sun eats away the dawn.”                                  32
 
Having told her like this Ravana who was the king who made his enemies cry, addressing the Rakshasis with terrible miens,  some of whom were one eyed, some who were one  eared, some who were shut eared, some who were having cow like ears, some who were having elephant like ears, some whose ears were hanging, some who did not have ear at all, some who were elephant legged, some who were horse legged, some who were cow legged, some who were having very long hairs on the leg, some who were having both eyes on one side, some who were having only one leg, some who were having giant legs, some who did not have leg at all, some who were having big heads and legs, some who were having big breasts and bellies, some who were having big mouth and eye, some who were having very long toungue, some who did not have toungue at all, some who were not having nose, some who were having the face of a lion, some who were having face of a cow and  some who were having the face of a pig , ordered  them , “ Hey Rakshasis, You take that action which would make Sita the daughter of Janaka obey my intents soon and all of you do it together. Not only that, bring her under control, using techniques favouring and not favouring her and tricks like Sama(soft), Bhedha(creating confusion) and Dhana(using rough tactics)” and after ordering like this  forgetting himself by passion and anger he terrorized the daughter of Janaka showing her his face.”                    33-39     
 
Then a Rakshasi called Dhanya Malini hurriedly came near him and embracing the ten headed one told him thus:-                                                                                    40 
(some people identify Dhanya Malini as Mandodari, the queen of Ravana)   
 
“Hey king, who is the chief of Rakshasas, what is the use  this foolish Sita who belongs to the base caste of man   to you, come on, make love with me.”                                   41
 
“Hey King, I feel that the God Brahma has not fated her to enjoy the greatly enjoyable things that you have earned by your strength.”                                                           42
 
“The body of him who is in passionate love with some one who does love him becomes frail day by day and full contentment can be had only when you love some one who desires you. “                                                                                                                43
 
That very strong cloud like Rakshasa, thus pulled back by that Rakshasi went back from there with a smile.                                                                                                        44
 
Starting from there, the ten headed one traveled to his palace with the glitter of the sun, making the earth tremble under his feet.                                                                     45
 
Along with the ten headed one, the Deva ladies, Gandharwa ladies and the Naga ladies surrounded him on all four sides and entered the palace.                                           46     
 
Tempted by the God of love that Ravana terrorizing  Sita who was stable, who always stood by just action and who was trembling   leaving her there reached his glittering palace.                                                                                                                           47             
 
 
      Thus ends the twenty second chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:09:14 AM
Twenty third Chapter
                              Twenty third Chapter
                                      Rakshasis trying to persuade Sita
(After the departure of Ravana, the Rakshasis started advising Sita about the desirability of her, acceding to the request of Ravana. They point out the positive aspects and also tell her about her being killed, if she does not obey Ravana)
 
                                                                                 
       The King Ravana who made his enemies cry went back from there,  telling like this to the princess of Mithila and ordering all Rakshasis.                                                        1
 
  After the king of Rakshasas started and went back to his harem ,those terrible looking Rakshasis surrounded  Sita.                                                                                             2
 
 Afterwards the Rakshasis forgetting themselves in anger, came near Sita and faced the daughter of Videha told her these fearsome words:-                                                       3
 
“Hey Sita, how is it that you do not consider being wife of Ravana who has ten heads, who was born in the family of Pulasthya and  who is great as big?”                            4
(Pulasthya was the son of Brahma and father of Vishravas)
 
After this One Rakshasi called Eka Jata(single haired one) with blood red eyes due to her anger called Sita who had a belly as soft as the palm  and told her thus about this aspect:-   5
 
“The famous Pulasthya is the spiritual son of Brahma and among the Prajapathis (leader of men) and fourth in rank.”                                                                                         6
(Sanaka, Sanatkumara and Sounaka are the others)
 
“This Pulasthya who had the spiritual son who is a very  great sage with famed penance  and is called by the name of Vishrawas and had the same luster as Lord Brahma himself.”                     7
(The Rakshasis are trying to convince Sita that Ravana was after all a son of a great man in other words born to  a man and a Rakshasi and therefore it is all right for her to become the wife of Ravana.)
 
“Hey Broad eyed one, Ravana who is the chief of Rakshasas  is his son and you better like to become  his wife. Hey lady who is all over pretty, are you going to obey, what I advice you or not?”                                                                                                            8
 
Then a Rakshasi called Harijata(green haired one)  rolled her two  very angry eyes and showing her cat like eyes uttered these words:-.                                                           9
 
“You better like to become wife of  that chief of Rakshasas who has won over the thirty three deva chieftains  as well as their king Indra.”                                                         10
 
At that time a Rakshasi called Praghasa bullying her forgetting herself in anger and told the following hard words, “ Are you going to accept the role of wife of the strong one who is ebbing with heroism, who has never retreated in a battle and who is very strong. That very strong king Ravana would leave his queen ,who  needs to be respected and would consider you as the most lucky one among all. Ravana would desert his harem which is filled by thousands of ladies and which is decorated by gems and come near you.”                                                                                                                  11-14
(She is telling her that he would leave his wife and concubines and get attached to her)
 
Another Rakshasi called Vikata asked her thus, “ That great one who has won Nagas, Gandharwas and Dhanavas in fights and war, is coming in front of you and begging you. Hey lady who is depressed, are you going to agree  now itself to become the wife of Ravana who is a great one with all riches and who is the king of Rakshasas ?”       15-17
(She is emphasizing more on the valor of Ravana.)
 
After that a Rakshasi called Durmukhi(bad faced one) told her the following words,”
Hey lady with long eyes, are you not going to come under the control of him, for whose sake the Sun  is afraid to emit heat and  wind is afraid to blow harshly? Hey pretty one , who has beautiful eye brows, are you going to give your strong consent to be the wife of Ravana, for whose sake trees shower flowers always and the black clouds pour out rain whenever he chooses? Hey bewitching lady who has a very attractive divine smile, you better be clever and obey this good advice given to you, otherwise you will not be definitely alive.”                                                                                                18-22
(This Rakshasi harps about how even the divine ones dread Ravana)
 
     Thus ends the twenty third chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Songs sung of twenty-fourth to forty-seventh chapters of Sundara Kanda by Lava and Kusha in front of Sri Rama at the place where AswaMedha sacrifice was being performed on eighteenth day . The total verses sung on that day were 932.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:09:47 AM
Twenty fourth Chapter
 
                       Twenty fourth Chapter
                           Bullying by the Rakshasis
 
(This chapter describes the various ways ,the Rakshasis tried to bully Sita)
 
After this the ugly looking hard hearted Rakshasa ladies came near Sita and told the following harsh and undesirable words:-                                                                  1
 
 “Hey Sita, why are you not consenting to the life in Harem which is liked by all beings and which has very special beds? “                                                                              2
 
“You think a human lady should only be the wife of another human being but that is not going to happen to you and so drag away your mind from Sri Rama.”                          3
 
“Accept being the wife of Ravana who enjoys the greatest pleasures in all the three worlds  and engage in pleasant love play.”                                                                    4
 
“It is strange for you who is  a lucky human being without any defects, wanting  to rejoin Rama who has been driven away from his kingdom, who is dejected and who is suffering because of sorrow.”                                                                                                      5
 
Sita who had eyes similar to the lotus , after hearing the words of Rakshasis . with tear- filled eyes, told the following words:-                                                                             6
 
“All the words told by you jointly are against the percepts of the world and are sinful and is not acceptable to me.”                                                                                                   7
 
“A human lady should not become the wife of a Rakshasa, Even if all of you are going to eat me away, I am not going to listen to your words.”                                                     8
 
“Though my husband has been driven away from his kingdom and though he is  in dire straits, he is always one who is respected by me and like the Lady Suvarchala  is always with the Sun God, I will  always be with him.”                                                           9
( This simile is strange , because Suvarchala being hurt by Sun’s harsh rays, left her shadow instead of her to be his wife.)
 
“I would never part from my husband Rama  who is the prince of Ikshuvaku clan ,  like the very lucky Lady Sachi devi  from Indra, like Arundathi from Vasishta, Rohini from the  moon god, Lopamudhra from Sage Agasthya, Sukanya from Sage Chyavana, Savithri from Prince Sathyavan, Madayanthi from Soudasa, Kesini from Sagara and the great Bhima princess Damayanthi  from the great King Nala.”                            10-12
(here she lists the various great virtuous ladies of her time. Since each couple represents a famous well known story, they are not related here. She also indicates that like Damayanthi and Madayanthi, she will also rejoin her husband.)
 
Those Rakshasis appointed by Ravana, hearing the words of Sita, became livid with anger and uttered the following harsh words and bullied her.                                 13
 
Hanuman the monkey who was silently hiding atop the Simshuba tree carefully watched Sita and those Rakshasis.                                                                                          14
 
Those angry women surrounded her who was trembling by fear on all the four sides licked and bit their dry and elongated lips.                                                              15
 
They who were very angry took the white axe in their hands and told, “ This lady does not deserve to be  the wife of Ravana who is the king of Rakshasas.”                       16
(Till this time, the Rakshasis were trying to convince Sita logically.)
 
Terrorized by the   hateful Rakshasis, she who had a pleasant face wiped away her tears and reached the Simshuba tree.                                                                                   17
 
Surrounded by the Rakshasis that broad eyed Sita drowned in her sorrow  reached the Simshuba tree and stood there.                                                                                   18
 
Those Rakshasis surrounded on all sides Sita who was thin, who had a faded face and who wore dirty cloths and started bullying her.                                                       19
 
Then a Rakshasi called Vinatha who was having all signs of being angry, who was having a hateful look, who was having a pot belly and who was ugly to look at addressing Sita told: -                                                                                                                         20
 
“ Madam Sita, you have till now shown that you love  your husband sufficiently and doing anything more than this necessary leads to sorrow.”                                    21
 
“Hey princess of Mithila, I am very much satisfied by your proper observation of the duty of human beings   and let all  good come to you . Be pleased to obey me who is telling you what is good for  you.”                                                                      22-23
 
“You please accept Ravana who is the king of all Rakshasas, who is handsome, who is valorous, who is like Indra, the king of devas, who is powerful, who has the sense of sacrifice and who tells sweet things to every one as your husband.”                          24
 
“Hey pretty lady who is the daughter of Videha, leave  the poor unstable Rama and accept Ravana as husband  and from today wear very costly make up and ornaments and become a queen of  the three worlds. You would be then like Sachi Devi to Indra and Swaha Devi for the God of fire.”                                                                             25-26
(Swaha is the wife of Agni, the god of fire)
 
“Hey daughter of Videha, what is the use of your having the mortal Rama who does not have any support whatsoever? If you are not going to obey these words of mine to   you, immediately all of us would eat you completely .”                                                      27
 
Then A Rakshasi called Vikata  who was having stooping breasts  became very  angry and with fists held up  roared and told the following words to Sita.                                28
 
“Hey very ignorant princess of Mithila,  We have been tolerating several of your illogical words due to mercy towards  and because of our peaceful nature.”                                29
 
“You are not obeying our words which are the only suitable ones  to the present circumstances.”                                                                                                      30
 
“Hey princess of Mithila you have been brought to the other shore of the ocean which cannot be crossed by any one and you have also come in to the horror filled harem of Ravana.”                                                                                                                           31
 
“Stop those tears and give away your sorrow which is going to cause problems to you.”   32
 
“Leave out this permanent bad feeling and  take as your share  yourself happiness and love.”                                              33
 
“Hey Sita, enjoy yourselves by   passionate love with the king of Rakshasas. “   34
 
“Hey, coward, you seem not to know that the youth in ladies is not a permanent  and so it is necessary to enjoy all pleasures till youth is there with you.”                                   35
 
“Hey, lady with a pretty eye, along with the king of Rakshasa  see many flower gardens  and mountain parks.”                                                                                                      36
 
“Hey pretty one, under your control there would be seven thousand ladies to obey you.”           
                                                                                                                                         37
 
“Hey princess of Mithila, if you do not act according to my words, I would definitely tear open your heart and eat it.”                                                                                               38
 
After that a Rakshasi called Chandodhari with cruel looks and rotating a huge spear, told  her the following words:-                                                                                                 39
 
“Seeing this lady who was abducted by Ravana, who is having with shaking breasts due to fear and who has doe like eyes, I am getting a great desire.”                                      40
 
“ It is my wish to bite away and eat her liver. Pancreas, the fleshy part above that, her fleshy bones, heart , intestines, and head.”                                                                       41
 
Alas, after that a Rakshasi called Praghasa told, “Why are we keeping quiet? Let us strangle this bad lady’s neck and tell our king that that human lady is no more. Then he will tell us” You can eat her” and “I do not have any doubt about his telling like this..”             
                                                                                                                                 42-43
 
Then another Rakshasi called Ajaamukhi(sheep headed one) told “Let us cut her in to small pieces and divide them equally among us and let us all take part in that. I do not like to go on arguing with her without doing this. Go and swiftly bring several type of drinks and several chutneys.”                                                                                 44-45
 
Then a Rakshasi called Surpanaka (lady having very broad nails) told, “ I am in agreement with what Ajamukhi has told us .Go bring wine which makes us forget all sorrows. Let us eat the human flesh and dance in the grounds of Nikumbila.”      46-47
(Nikumbila is the ground outside the city where Ravana used to carry out his fire sacrifices.)
 
Terribly bullied thus by all the Rakshasis, Sita who is like a divine lady lost her courage and started crying.                                                                                                  48
 
 
     Thus ends the twenty fourth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:10:11 AM
Twenty fifth Chapter
 
                      Twenty fifth Chapter
                                       The sorrow of Sita   
 
(The terrible picture of the sorrowing Sita and the very sad thoughts that ran through her mind are given in this chapter)
   
When those disturbed Rakshasis were talking to her with anger and hate, the daughter of Janaka wept and cried a lot.                                                                                        1
 
She making wet  her broad breasts with the copious tears, was immersed in thought l and still did not reach the end of her sorrow.                                                                       2   
 
She with a very disturbed face was trembling because of the bullying of the Rakshasis , and fell like a banana plant caught in the storm.                                                     3     
 
Her long broad hair, which was moving hither and thither, moved along with Sita who was trembling because  of fear and appeared as if it was a serpent, which moved here and there.                                                                                                                         4
 
That daughter of Videha, who was terrorized by the Rakshasis, who was very much full of fear and who had firm conviction of virtue towards her husband told the following words with eye full of tears:-                                                                                      5
 
“ A human lady is not entitled to become the wife of a Rakshasa and since I am not going to obey your words, you can eat me all together.”                                                            6
 
Alas, that princess of Mithila having been drowned in sorrow, exceeded the limits of sadness and was heart broken and with heavy breath  and  cried aloud accompanied by tears.                                                                                                                                7 
 
“The proverb that “Death is difficult to attain  except in the fated time to males or females” told by learned people is very true , because in spite of the fact that  I am mentally wounded and sad because of cruel Rakshasis and  also because I am not with Rama,  I continue to be  alive ,at this moment.”                                                    8-9
 
The sorrowing Sita who was like a deva maiden and who was cruelly treated by Ravana, did not find any other alternative.                                                                                 10
 
Sita like the strayed deer attacked by wolf, started  shivering uncontrollably like her soul was piercing deep inside her body.                                                                                    11
 
During that time,  becoming depressed by sorrow, she caught hold of a flowering branch of an Asoka tree and started thinking of her husband.                                                   12
 
That great lady cried “Hey Rama”, “Hey Lakshmana”. “Hey mother in  law Kausalya”, “Hey Sumithra”:, being luck less, and being ignorant of my duties. “I ,  like a fully loaded ship shaken by cyclone in the middle of the sea am going to die like an orphan.. I am melting down by my sorrow similar to the eroding shore by the speedy tide of water,
because I am not able to see Him who is my husband and am in the custody of these Rakshasis, All  lucky (blessed) people are able to see him ,who has eyes like the fully open lotus flower, who has the majestic gait of a lion, who is thankful ,  who utters only sweet words and who alone is my master”.                                                          13-16
 
“My life without Rama is terrible similar to  the one who has consumed very potent poison. I do not know what great sin , I have committed to merit this terrible sorrow that is eroding me. I being in the custody of  Rakshasis am not able to see Lord Rama. Since I am suffering this extreme sorrow, I wish to give up this life. Human life is not all good, especially one under the custody of others for one does not have independence to end even one’s life.” Such thoughts made her further sad.                                       17-20   
 
     Thus ends the twenty fifth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:10:44 AM
Twenty sixth Chapter
                            Sita’s decision to commit suicide
 
(Sita who is extremely sad lists out logical reasons for her to commit suicide and decides on that course)
That wailing daughter of Janaka, with a bent head, eye full of tears and crying like a child was similar to the one who is mad, who has lost her wisdom and who is fear struck and started wailing like a mare rolling in mud to get rid of her tiresomeness.               1-2
 
“When Raghava (One who belongs to the clan of Raghu) was ignorant and away, this rakshasa called Ravana, who can assume any shape he wants, attacked me and abducted me and brought me here, when was crying.”                                                                   3
 
“Being in the custody of Rakshasis and being bullied by them terribly, I have become very sad and very much worried and so I am not interested in living further.”             4
 
“Without Rama the great charioteer and being in the custody of Rakshasis, there is no purpose in my living even with riches and ornaments.”                                                   5
 
“My mind must be a very hard granite stone or a thing which does not erode or die, because even with all this sorrow, it is not breaking.”                                              6
 
“Being with less of virtue and not being a lady, I should have been destroyed and in spite of being not in the company of Rama this sinner is protecting her life for this small period.”                                                                                                                          7
 
“What interest have I to look after my body and continue to live after parting from my darling, who is the lord of all land surrounded by the sea and who has such a sweet desirable speech?”                                                                                               8
 
“I would not like to tolerate this great sorrow of being away from him for a long time and I do not mind even if I am cut in to pieces or eaten alive.”                                  9
 
“I would not even touch this base thief Ravana by even by my left feet and where is the question of my making love to him?”                                                                        10
 
“That cruel one, who desires to request me to be his wife does not understand when he is being rejected by me with aversion, nor does he understand his stature nor his family.” 11
 
“I would not accede to Ravana , even if I am crushed  or cut or put in a raging fire. What is the point in this waiting?”                                                                                             12
 
“I doubt that Sri Rama who is very knowledgeable, grateful, shows mercy to those in danger, well behaved and very famous, is devoid of any pity towards me due to my lack of luck.”                                                                                                                     13
 
“Why is he, who exterminated fourteen thousand Rakshasas all alone in Janasthana not interested in saving me?”                                                                                                 14
 
“This Ravana with very little valor has imprisoned me and I do not have any doubt that my husband is capable of winning him in war.”                                                          15
 
“Why is it that Rama who killed that great Rakshasa Viradha in Dandakaranya not freeing me from this custody and taking me back?”                                                16
(Viradha was a Gandharwa who was cured by his master Kubhera.He fought with Rama and Lakshmana and was killed)
 
“It is true that this Lanka is in the middle of the ocean and prevents the entry of outsiders but I do not think that it is capable of preventing the arrows of Raghava.”                     17
 
“What could be the reason that a very stable hero like Sri Rama does not come here and release his darling wife, I do not understand.”                                                     18
 
“I believe that the great valorous one who is the elder brother of Lakshmana does not know that I am here, for once he knows about it he will not tolerate this insult.”           19
 
“That great king of hawks who would have rushed to Raghava and informed him that I have been abducted by Ravana fell in the battle.”                                                      20
(She is referring to Jatayu, the hawk son of Varuna, who fought with Ravana and died in the battle. However he was alive till he told Rama that Ravana had abducted her. Rama cremated him in the forest with all honours. Sita was ignorant of this story)
 
“In spite of the fact that the Jatayu, who no doubt is old was defeated in the wrestling fight against Ravana and was defeated though he did a very great job.”                   21
 
“ If that Raghava knows that I am here, immediately with great anger using his arrows he would make the world devoid of Rakshasas , he would blow Lanka away , dry the great ocean and even destroy the name and fame of Ravana.”                                      22-23
 
“Afterwards, similar to my crying and wailing, in every house of Sri Lanka, these Rakshasis who have become widows would cry and possibly cry more.”           24
 
“Rama accompanied by Lakshmana would search and find out Lanka, and it is definite that the enemy, once found out by them will not even live for a second more.”      25
 
“Soon, this Lanka is going to be filled with the smoke emanating from burning coffins  and would be like a cremation ground filled with crowds of hawks.”                       26
 
“Within a short time my desire would be fulfilled and definitely and this bad conduct of yours would lead to the destruction of you all.”                                                           27
 
“Within a short time this Lanka is going to loose its luster and very many bad omens are visible even now.”                                                                                                          28
 
“When the great sinner and the worst among Rakshasas is killed then this Sri Lanka which is impregnable , is going to get weakened like a lady who has become a widow.”29
 
“This fertile and rich Sri Lanka which has lots of holy festivals and the Rakshasas would become leaderless like a lady who has lost her husband.”                                              30
 
“In this place, I am going to hear soon the wailing of Rakshasis who are sad and pained from every house.”                                                                                                       31
 
“Once the red eyed valorous Sri Rama knows that I am alive and in the house of Ravana, then definitely, Lanka would be burned by the arrows of Sri Rama and would become dark by losing its luster and would be filled with dead Rakshasas.”                      32-33
 
“The limit of time which has been fixed by this cruel and base Ravana is approaching near.”                                                                                                                             34
 
“These Rakshasas, who are sinners do not know that they are performing acts which should not be done and would as a result, danger would definitely come to all those who live in this town.”                                                                                                          35
 
“These flesh eating Rakshasas do not understand what is just action and it is definite that they would fix me for breakfast.”                                                                                    36
 
“ Without seeing Rama, who has eyes with red corners and who is pleasing to the eye, what can I   who am very sorrowful do?”                                                                    37
 
“If it happens that any one here, would give me poison, I being without my husband would go and see the God of death.”                                                                               38
 
 
 “Rama who is the elder brother of Bharatha must be   ignorant of the fact that I am alive for if not they both would not spare any effort to find me in this earth.”                      39
 
“That valorous elder brother of Lakshmana due to the sorrow because of me, must have left this body and must have reached heaven.”                                                               40
 
“How lucky are those devas, Gandarwas, Siddhas and sages  because they are able to see the lotus eyed Sri Rama who is my lord.”                                                                      41
(Assumes Lord Rama has reached the heaven)
 
“Possibly there is nothing I can do as a wife to Sri Rama who is very wise, who is very charitable, who is like a royal sage and who is the personification of God.”                42
 
“Thankless people show love towards you when you are near them and do not show love when you are not near, but Rama is never like that.”                                                     43
 
“Is it because I do not have desirable traits or is it because that I am not lucky, that I, in spite of being a woman, is suffering because of the absence of Rama.”                       44
 
“I think it would be better for me to die rather than live away from Rama  who is a great man, who has a faultless character, who is heroic and who is capable of destroying his enemies.”                                                                                                                      45
 
“Or is it that those two brothers who follow just action and who are sterling among men have decided to throw away their ornaments and live in the forest eating only fruits and roots.?”                                                                                                                            46
 
“Or is it possible that those heroic brothers have been killed using deceit by Ravana who is the king of Rakshasa and a bad one?”                                                                           47
 
“In this state I wish to die but I do not get a suitable death even in this very sad state.”    48
 
“Those who do not have likes and dislikes are very great souls , for they have won  over their senses , they are very lucky, they are really sages, they are recognized by the world and are the ones who should be  really applauded.”                                           49
 
“When pleasures come , mind is not having sorrow. When sadness comes there is pain in the mind. My salutations to those who stand separately from both these states.”            50
 
“I who am not able to achieve such victory over mind have got away from my husband Rama who lives according to law  and am in the custody of Ravana and so I am going to commit suicide.”                                                                                                        51
 
 
     Thus ends the twenty sixth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:11:55 AM
Twenty seventh Chapter
 
                      Twenty seventh Chapter
                                       The dream of Trijata
 
(This chapter is about the dream of Trijata-one of the guards of Sita, who is the daughter of Vibhishana, which foretells good tidings for Sita  and Rama and very bad happenings to Ravana and other Rakshasas.)
 
Having been told like this the horrible Rakshasis  became livid with anger  and some of them went to tell it to the bad soul Ravana.                                                                         1
 
Then the terrible looking Rakshasis surrounded Sita and told the following words, which lead to the same result and which are hurting to the ears.                                                  2
 
“Hey ignorant Sita who has decided upon to do sinful act , today and now itself we the Rakshasis are going to eat your flesh.”                                                                              3
 
Seeing the methods of bullying  used by them  which are  not lady like, a very elderly and wise Rakshasi  called Trijata[17] spoke the following words:-                                               4
 
“Hey sinners, you can eat me and please do not kill Sita who is the daughter of Janaka, who is the daughter in law of Dasaratha and who respects all others.”                            5
 
“Just now I saw a dream and truly I saw it. When thinking about it I am upset , my hairs stand upright  for the dream is about the fall of Rakshasas  and the victory of her husband.”                                                                                                                          6
 
Thus informed by Trijata, those Rakshasis who had lost their senses due to anger were suddenly full of fear and asked Trijata, ”What is the type of dream that you have seen at night? Please explain it in detail.”                                                                                     7
 
Once she heard the words emanating from the mouth of Rakshasis ,Trijata started talking to them about her dream.                                                                                                   8
 
“Raghava clothed in white silk and wearing white flower garland arrived  happily along with Lakshmana in a palanquin made of  ivory and carried by thousand swans  and traveling in the sky.”                                                                                                          9
 
“I saw in my dream Sita also clothed in white silk who had reached the White Mountain surrounded by the sea and being happy with Sri Rama like the sun light with the sun.” 10
(please note that dressing in white was considered as auspicious during the time of Ramayana)
 
“I Saw Rama along with Lakshmana arriving ,riding on a mountain like , four tusked great elephant.”                                                                                                        11
 
“Then those two human heroes clothed in white silk and wearing white flower garland , shining in their own luster approached the daughter of Janaka.”                                     12
 
“Then Janaki from that mountain itself climbed on to the neck of the elephant which was looked after by her husband.”                                                                                         13
 
“Then she rose from the lap of her lotus eyed husband and stated patting the moon and the sun”.                                                                                                                          14
 
“Then the elephant ridden by those two princes and the broad eyed Sita came and stood on the sky just above Lanka.”                                                                                         15
 
“Then accompanied by Sita and Lakshmana, Rama  climbed on a chariot drawn by eight pairs of bulls and reached here on his own .”                                                             16
 
“I saw Sri Rama,  who is capable of  exterminating  problems swallowing all the three worlds along with several globes and its moving and not moving inhabitants.”              17
 
“From the middle of the waters of the ocean of milk, one white mountain rose up. On the top of the mountain was a very big white elephant with four tusks. And on the top of it the lotus eyed Sri Rama, his brother Lakshmana and his wife Sita were seated.”   18-20
 
“Sita arose from there and embraced the pretty, full moon with both her hands and was there as a part of her husband.”                                                                                  21
 
“After that in another place, the lotus eyed Rama who was born in the Kakustha clan and who was a gentleman, sat on a wonderful seat facing east and was anointed by all the holy waters by the group of great sages ,I also saw him being worshipped by all devas.” 22-23
 
“There she who is the daughter of Janaka, who was having a very pretty middle part, clothed in white silk, wearing white flower garlands and also anointed by scents from several holy flowers shined greatly.”                                                                         24
 
“After this Devas accompanied by Gandarwas, sages and Sidhas keeping Lord Brahma in their front saluted Sri Rama.”                                                                                     25
 
“The great Sri Rama who was expert in pleasing every one became himself Lord Vishnu and sat on a holy seat. I also saw him like this.”                                                          26
 
“The red eyed gentleman Sri Rama who was the lord of all worlds and who was a descendent of Raghu, shined there as the ultimate truth, as the ultimate essence, as the personification of ultimate knowledge,  as the ultimate mediation, as the ultimate cause, as the  ultimate place, as the ultimate cause of everything, holding conch, holy wheel and mace in his hands , with very long eyes, with Sri Vatsa[18] on his chest  , as the kingdom leading to ultimate deliverance , as somebody who can never be defeated, as some body who is permanent, as somebody who is perennial, as Vishnu the abode of peace and  as some one who was glowing greatly.                                                                      27-29
 
“Then the king of devas, manes, great sages, gandarwas, Vidhyadaras, the chief of Pannagas surrounded Rama , who was crowned  and with folded hands sang his praise.”                                                                                                                              30
 
“Then all the Apsaras (Deva dancers) joined together  sang with happiness and danced accompanied by necessary musical instruments. Along with them instruments like Veena, Muraja[19], drums and conches together made pleasant royal music.”                               31
 
“After this I also saw the real hero Rama ,in another place. That prince among men with Lakshmana ,his brother and his wife Sita was riding the sun like holy Puspaka Vimana and was traveling towards the north.”                                                                     32-33
(In the Northern side of India,  Gods used to reside and was considered holy)
 
I saw like this in my dream the valorous Sri Rama who was very similar to Lord Vishnu along with his brother Lakshmana  and with Sita.                                                       34
 
“That resplendent Sri Rama who cannot be won over either by Devas or asuras or rakshasas or any body else is  similar to the fact that heaven cannot be won over by sinners.”                                                                                                                      35
 
“Not only this, I saw the head shaved Ravana who had applied  oil all over , clothed in red cloths, tipsy being drunk and wearing KaraVira flowers.                                        36
(Here red colour is indicative of bad. This stanza also indicated shaving of head indicates miserable state.)
 
“At another time I saw the  head shaved Ravana who has fallen to the earth from Pushpaka Vimana being forcibly dragged by a lady wearing black dress.”             37
 
“He wore a red garland and red Thilaka and was traveling to the south riding a chariot dragged by donkey and was drowned in a hole in the mud.”                                     38
 
“I saw a black lady laden with mud all over her body    wearing a cloth smelling of blood dragging the ten headed one  holding him tightly on the neck towards south.”          39
 
“He was riding fast towards the south on a donkey having lost his senses by drinking oil, laughing, tottering, with dulled senses  and with weak body”                                     40
(God of death and hell were supposed to be in the Southern direction)
 
“I also saw the king Ravana falling from the donkey with head down wards and stunned by fear and ultimately falling on earth.”                                                                        41
 
“That Ravana suddenly got up, was caught by fear, started trembling, was shaking because he was drunk, was shouting many meaningless words like a mad man and fell in a intolerable, very dark, hell like shit pit and went down in to that.”                       42-43
 
“I also the very strong Kumbhakarna[20]  in there. I also saw all the sons of Ravana applied with oil and head shaved in side  there.”                                                                      44
 
“Ravana riding on a pig, Indrajit riding on a crocodile and Kumbhakarna riding on a camel went towards south.”                                                                                       45
 
“But I saw in my dream only Vibishana carrying a white umbrella clothed in white silk, wearing a white garland , anointed with white sandal paste  and accompanied by music of Dndhubhi[21]  and honoured by dance and music.”                                                         46
 
“There I saw Vibishana along with four ministers riding on a holy four tusked elephant which was equal to a cloud and which was roaring like a cloud  reaching Sri Rama.”                                                                                                                     47
 
“I also saw huge crowds of drunk Rakshasas in blood drenched cloth , wearing blood red garlands along with sound of drums and music.”                                                     48
 
“I saw the pretty city of  Lanka which has horses, chariots  and elephants drowning in the sea with its towers and decorations broken down.”                                              49
 
“I saw in my dream, the city of Lanka which is well protected by Ravana being burnt
down by a monkey who was the emissary of Rama.”                                                 50
 
“All the Rakshasis were loudly crying and dancing after drinking oil and in the city of Lanka which had turned in to ashes, all Rakshasa chieftains like Kumbhakarna , all dressed in red ,were getting drowned in a pit of cow dung.”                               51-52
 
“Raghava who cannot tolerate crimes is going to kill Ravana along with all his people and is going take back Sita. You will see this and you better run and hide yourself.” 53
 
“Raghava will not forgive you all for terrorizing and bullying his wife who is his darling, who is honoured by him and who accompanied him to live in the forest.”                    54
 
“So let your cruel words stop, talk to her and console her .Let us all beg the daughter of Videha and I feel that is only the good decision.”                                                   55-56
 
“ This very sad lady about whom this dream was seen, is going to get out of the different kinds of sorrow and is going to join back her very great husband.”                               57
 
“Hey, Rakshasis, what  is the use of  hesitating, go and beg the forgiveness of her who has been terrorized.”                                                                                                   58
 
“All the Rakshasas are going to suffer grave danger from Raghava.”                         59
 
“Hey, Rakshasis, there is no doubt that the princess of Mithila who is the daughter of Janaka would get quickly pleased with you as soon as you bow to her. She alone is sufficient to save us all from this grave danger.”                                                         60
 
“Not only that, I do not see even a bit of anything which is not a  good  omen in all parts of her body.”                                                                                                                61
 
“The only sorrowful state which had happened to her ,  who attained the Vimana in my dream and who should not have got all this sorrow is her being dulled by the dirt”  62
 
“I am seeing that, the downfall of the king of Rakshasas, victory of Rama and the fulfillment of desires of the daughter of Videha has come very near.”                     63
 
“Good omens are happening to her who is going to hear pleasant news. I am seeing that her long left eye, which is like a lotus petal, is beating about. Apart from that only the left arm of Vaidehi is throbbing because of pleasure .Also her left thigh, which is like the trunk of an elephant, is throbbing. All this indicates that Raghava is standing in front of her eye.”                                                                                                                     64-66
 
“Not only that, the bird living on the branches with great zest and happiness  is making lovely soft sound  indicating the safe arrival of some one  again and again and appears as if it is helping her by its song.”                                                                                67   
 
 
Thus ends the twenty seventh chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:12:18 AM
Twenty eigth Chapter
 
                      Twenty eighth Chapter
                             Trying to hang herself by her hair
 
(After reflecting her sad state of affairs Sita decides to commit suicide by hanging by use of her rope like hair. At that time she saw some good omens.)
 
That Sita, hearing the intolerable words of the Rakshasa king Ravana, became dejected and sad and shivered like a young she elephant caught in the clutches of a lion.           1
 
That Sita who was caught between the Rakshasis and hence terrified, being bullied by Ravana’s harsh words started crying like a young girl who has been left in the middle of a solitary forest and started wailing again.                                                                         2
 
“”Sages say that in this world, you cannot die except at the appointed time. How true the saying is, for in spite of being terrorized like this and in spite of being a sinner, I am kept alive for more than a second.”                                                                                   3
 
“May be my heart which is devoid of pleasures and filled with sorrow is immortal? Because even at this time it is not breaking in to thousand pieces like the peak of a mountain hit by Vajarayudha.”                                                                                 4
 
“I would commit suicide immediately and there would not be any sin for me in this. I should not agree to the desire with intolerable intention of Ravana, like A Brahmin should not teach Vedas to those who are not Dwija[22].”                                                5
 
“If he who is the chief of the world does not come at this time, the ungentlemanly Ravana would cut all the parts of my body by sharp weapons like an animal caught in the womb is taken out after cutting it in to pieces.”                                                                       6
 
“Like a thief punished by death and kept in custody finds it difficult even to spend a night, for me who is  sorrowful  , these two months are very long. Alas what a  great sorrow it is.”                                                                                                                 7
 
“Hey Rama, Hey Lakshmana, Hey Sumithra, Hey mother of Rama, I am filled with sorrow like a boat caught by cyclone in the middle of the sea.”                                  8
 
“Because of me those two sons of the king of men (Dasaratha) should have been killed by the Rakshasa who came there as a deer like two great lions being killed by thunder.”      9
 
“Possibly the God of death himself came in the form of a deer and tempted me who is  unlucky  and due to this only I parted company  with the gentleman Rama who is the elder brother of Lakshmana.”                                                                                       10
 
“Hey Rama who has taken truth as a penance, hey long armed one, hey Rama who is similar to the full moon, hey Rama who is dear to all animals, hey Rama who does only good, are you not knowing that the rakshasas are going to kill me.”                              11
 
“My conviction that there is no god except you, my patience, my sleeping on the floor, my standing firm on my resolve of  doing just actions,  and my virtue as a wife, are going to go waste , like the help done to ungrateful people.”                                                     12
 
“I being away from you, being famished and thin, being pale and being not at all sure that I would see you again, am not able to see any way to see you, So this just conduct that I have been observing is of no use and also my determination to be with only one husband is also of no use.”                                                                                                           13
 
“I desire that at least you should complete the desire of your father strictly, return from the forest and become elated at having being done so, leave out all sorrow at having completed the penance and be relaxed under the careful service of the women. there.” 14
(Though” women” is the word used, commentators feel it only indicates his mothers and other elderly woman.)
 
“Hey Rama, I have served you with all my mind but at last, having decided to commit suicide,  am going to sacrifice my life at last ,being unlucky and having observed meditation and penance without any use.”                                                                     15
 
“I should have ended my life by poison or by use of a sharp sword but I do not find any one in the palace of Ravana to give me poison or the sword.”                                        16
 
Thus thinking, wailing , trembling and with a dry throat Sita approached a big flowering tree with the thought of Sri Rama in her mind.”                                                              17
 
Thinking thus in various ways, being extremely upset by sorrow, that Sita took her singly made up hair in her hand and deciding that ”Immediately I am going to hang and die by tying this hair to my throat and travel to the place of the God of death.”,  she  who had a with soft and tender body , stood catching the branch of that tree. At that time when continuous thought of Rama and Rama’s brother were passing through the mind of that holy lady, some omens which are not the cause of sorrow, which contribute to strengthening of the mind and which were world famous as indicating good tidings happened to her.                                                                                             18-20
(Her though process indicates she was not willing to embrace such a sinful way of death, which was unsuitable to the greatness of her family.)
 
       
Thus ends the twenty eighth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:12:42 AM
Twenty ninth Chapter
                                 Twenty ninth Chapter
                                                   Seeing of good omens
 
(Good omens occurred to Sita who was consoled by those omens and gained more confidence)
 
Good omens approached her who is faultless; who does forever good, who was mentally perturbed and who because of lack of happiness was terribly depressed like the helpless people approaching a generous man.                                                                       1
 
That long haired lady’s very pretty left eye which is surrounded by curved eye brows , which  is black ,  which is broad   and which is  bright white colour,  surrounded by red colour started throbbing  like the lotus flower shaken by a fish.                              2
 
Her pretty long round arms which merit the application of dark sandal paste and which were caressed by her darling, started throbbing fast for quite some time.                   3
 
Not only that apart from these two, her left thigh which was round and fat like the elephants trunk throbbed giving initial signals to her of the coming back of Sri Rama.     4
 
Also the gold coloured dress which was coated with dust,  of that very pretty standing  woman ,who had teeth which are like the buds of jasmine and  who had very clear eyes ,  slightly loosened indicating good things are bound  come.                                  5
 
Getting more confidence by these good omens and others , which were indicative of  fulfillment  of desires from very ancient times , that pretty lady became very happy similar  to  the  wind and sun dried seed when it received rain.                                 6
 
Her face with lips which were similar to the red guava fruit, her pretty eyes and eye brows , her long hair, her curved eyelids  and her teeth which were white  started shining again  like the moon  which got its freedom from the serpent Rahu.                             7
(Hindus believed that at the time of lunar eclipse the serpent Rahu swallows the moon )
 
Face of that lady with her sorrow removed, with no thoughts in her mind, with her worries quenched and , with more strength due to more happiness glowed like the night lit by the cool moon.                                                                                                   8
 
 
     Thus ends the twenty ninth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 17, 2008, 03:13:08 AM
Thirtieth Chapter
 
                          Thirtieth Chapter
                            Thinking about how to console Sita
 
(Hanuman then analyses the situation and thinks what he should do? He decides that he should see and console Sita. Then he comes to the conclusion that he should sing the praises of Rama so that she would pay attention to them and not get startled.)
 
That heroic Hanuman observed with attention the bullying of Sita by the Rakshasis, Sita’s reply, and Trijata’s words .                                                                                   1
 
Afterwards that monkey  having seen  Sita,  who was like a deva maiden in the garden of Indra,  before his eyes, started thinking in various ways.                                                   2
 
“That lady whom thousands and ten thousands monkeys were searching in all directions has been  seen by me.”                                                                                                       3
 
“I .who am an emissary was able to know all  this  , because with an intention of knowing the strength of the enemy  with enthusiasm  , I moved without catching anybody’s eye ”                                                                                                       4
 
“I was able to know especially about the rakshasas, the fame of this king of Rakshasas and about this city.”                                                                                                      5
 
“This is the proper time to console the wife of the all merciful man with great character,
whose only desire is to see her husband.”                                                                      6
 
“Let me console her, who has a face like full moon, who did not know what is sorrow, who at present is full of sorrow and who does not find the means to end her sorrow any where nearby.”                                                                                                                 7
 
“If I go without consoling her ,who has a mind ebbing with sorrow., my going would cause  lot of bad results.”                                                                                                   8
 
“If I return now , this  Janaki the princess  with lot of fame  would not find any way to get out of her sorrow and would definitely give up her life.”                                                    9
 
“Apart from that I also have to console Rama who has a face like the full moon, who is a great hero and who only wants to see Sita.”                                                                      10
 
“This necessary meeting with her cannot be done at present in front of the Rakshasis and how is it possible? I am not able find any solution.”                                                      11
 
“I should console her during the remaining part of the night only , for if not she would definitely commit suicide.”                                                                                               12
 
“ When Rama asks me as to what message did Sita send, if I do not meet her, what reply would it be possible for me to give?”                                                                               13
 
“Suppose I hurriedly return without any message from Sita, he who belongs to the clan of Kakustha would get angry at me  and burn me , with his intolerably angry look itself.”  14
 
“Also If Sugreeva tries to gather an army for the cause of Rama, his coming along with the army would be without any use.”                                                                              15
 
“I would continue to be here and wait for a proper time for Rakshasis and at that time I would slowly console her who is steeped in sorrow.”                                                 16
 
“Especially since I am  a monkey with a very small stature, at this time I will speak the language of the  ordinary men.”                                                                                17
(The common man of those times spoke a colloquial version of Sanskrit language called Prakrit. The tribals spoke a version called Paisachi and the learned Brahmins only spoke Sanskrit.)
 
“If I speak Sanskrit like Brahmins, Sita would think how a monkey like me got that power to talk like that  and she would be scared of me,  assuming that I am Ravana.”                             
                                                                                                                        18-19
(This indicates that Ravana spoke to her in Sanskrit.)
 
“Since She who is faultless should be consoled by me, I should certainly talk in the
language of ordinary men as there is no other way.”                                         20
 
“She who has already been bullied and terrorized by the Rakshasis would again be scared if she sees my form and hears my language.”                                           21
 
“Then the sad broad eyed one would become more scared and thinking that I am Ravana who can assume any form he likes would start shouting.”                                       22
 
“As soon as she starts shouting, those horrible Rakshasis who are similar to the God of death, would come along with various weapons.”                                                   23
 
“Then those with wrongly shaped faces, would surround me from all the four sides, and would make efforts to catch and kill me.”                                                                 24
 
 “Seeing me running and jumping all over the branches  and sticks, one after another they would start shivering out of fear.”                                                                                   25   
 
“Not only that, seeing my big form traveling through the forests , those Rakshasis with misshaped faces would start shivering out of fear.”                                                      26
 
“Then those Rakshasis will summon the Rakshasas appointed by the king of Rakshasas in his palace.”                                                                                                                       27
 
“They armed with spears, sword and other arms would come and join this crowd creating more fear.”                                                                                                                        28
 
“Surrounded on all sides by them, I would blow away the strength of Rakshasa and possibly in that state would loose the strength to reach the other shore of this great ocean.”                                                                                                                           29
 
“Some of those very active ones may possibly be able to catch me and I would get imprisoned and Sita would not be able to know any news.”                                        30
 
“Those of them who are interested in violence may possibly kill the daughter of Janaka and if that happens, then the job entrusted by Rama and Sugreeva would end dangerously.”                                                                                                                  31
 
“Janaki being here is a  secret, which is impossible to find out as this place  is guarded by Rakshasas and  is surrounded by the sea.”                                                             32
 
“I also am not able to think of another one  to do the job of Rama, if I am defeated  in war or imprisoned by Rakshasas  .”                                                                                 33   
 
“If I am killed,,  in spite of hard thinking,  I am not  know of another monkey who can cross this great sea which is one hundred Yojanas broad.”                                            34
 
“I am definitely capable of killing thousand of Rakshasas fighting alone but I am doubtful whether I would be able to reach the other shore afterwards.”                                        35
 
“This danger I may face in the uncertainty of war is not suitable to me at this time  and no intelligent individual would enter a dangerous act without suspicion.”                           36
 
“If I do not see and talk to her, death will happen to Vaidehi and by talking to her this great danger would happen.”                                                                                        37   
 
“Even jobs which can have good results, would fail to get any result, similar to the vanishing of darkness at Sun rise by employing an emissary without the strength of thoughtful analysis.”                                                                                         38
(An inefficient thoughtless emissary will not be able to complete any job.)
 
“It is not clear to me as to what should be done by me and what should not be done and I feel jobs are spoiled by those emissaries who think that they know everything.”             39
 
“What is to be done so that the job is not spoiled? How to ensure that there is no dearth of right decision? What to do to ensure that this crossing of the ocean is not wasted?        40
 
“How will she hear my words with careful attention and not only that how to ensure that my words do not make her tremble?” Thinking like this Hanuman arrived at a decision, which was really without any flaws.                                                                          41
 
“By singing the praise of Rama who can get any job done without any danger and who is close to her, I can keep her, whose mind is firmly fixed on her husband, not startled.”42
 
“I would make her hear those words which describe the just and good actions Of Rama who is all knowing and who is the greatest among Ikshuvaku clan. I would tell these by singing his praise and also do things in such a way that she will believe in them.”   43-44
 
That great Hanuman thinking thus in various ways about the wife of the king of the world, sitting in the middle of the branches of the tree spoke the sweet words which would lead to positive result.                                                                                        45
 
 
        Thus ends the thirtieth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:42:05 AM

                      Thirty-first Chapter
                            Narration of the story of Rama
 
(Hanuman narrates the story of Rama up to that point in brief manner after the Rakshasis have slept. Sita hears the story, becomes happy and locates Hanuman.)
 
After thinking like this in various ways and having decided on what to do, he sweetly narrated in a clear manner the following:-                                                                  1
 
“There was a king called Dasaratha  ,Who had an army consisting of chariots, horses and elephants, who was greatly resplendent, who was truthful and who was famous all over”.               
                                                                                                                                        2
(Dasaratha’s original name was Nemi .He undertook to fight with Shambara to help his friend Indra. Shambara took ten different forms all sitting on chariots and attacked him from ten different directions. With a single chariot, Nemi efficiently fought and killed him. Afterwards he was known as Dasaratha-The ten-chariot man)
 
“He was greatest among the kingly sages, was equal to sages by his penance, was born in the family of emperors and was equal to Indra in strength.”                                          3
 
“He was non violent, was having a great mind, was charitable, was truly a hero, was the head of Ikshuvaku clan, was lucky and was responsible for increase in the clan’s wealth.”            4
 
“He was a king in all respects, was very rich, who was famous in the world, which surrounded by four oceans and was one who does good and was also one who is good.”                              5
 
Rama was his eldest and darling  son who was having a face like moon, who was a specialist and who was the greatest among the archers.”                                           6
 
“Rama was a protector of  his  just actions(dharma), was a protector of his people, was a protector of  all animals and the nation’s  Dharma and was one capable of giving pain to his enemies.”                                                                                                               7
 
“Due to the promise given by his father who was firm in his belief of  truth and who was an elderly man, he adorned himself with sagely dresses and was sent to the forest along with his wife and brother.”                                                                                             8
(The promise was given to Kaikeyi. She was with him in the chariot when he fought Shambhara. While fighting was in progress,  the wheel axle got loose. Kaikeyi tightened it by using her thumb and as a result Dasaratha was able to kill Shambhara. Pleased with his wife’s daring, he gave her two boons. But she made him promise to give her those boons at any time she wants.)
 
“Rama  who was hunting in the deep forest killed many Rakshasas who could assume any shape they wanted .”                                                                                                  9
 
“Hearing the destruction of Janasthana and killing of Khara and Dhooshana, Ravana deceived Rama by illusion of a deer and Janaki was abducted by him with great passion for her.”                                                                                                                10
(Maricha who was his uncle played the part of the deer.. Janasthana was a area of Dandakaranya forest where Rama stayed for a long time.)
 
“Rama who was searching the virtuous and innocent Sita in the forest , met a monkey called Sugreeva and became his friend.”                                                                  11
 
“Sugreeva took a vow to find out the place where Sita was living and Rama assured him of him being made the king of the country of monkeys.”                                       12
 
“Because of that,  the very strong and great hero Sri Rama killed Bali and gave the country of monkeys to Sugreeva.”                                                                             13
(Bali was the elder half brother of Sugreeva)
 
“Appointed by Sugreeva , several thousand monkeys who are very attractive are searching for her in all directions.”                                                                          14
 
“I being enthused by the words of Sampathi jumped and crossed this great ocean which is one hundred Yojanas broad for the sake of that broad eyed lady.”                            15
(After a hopeless search for Sita, the monkeys decide to commit a mass suicide. While discussing, they happen to mention about the valiant fight of Jatayu with Ravana. Sampathi , who was the  elder brother of Jatayu(both were sons of God Aruna), who had  earlier tried to protect his younger brother from the harsh sun rays ., was living in a cave nearby, having lost his wings ,He was shocked by the news of Jatayu’s death and by his far sighted vision, was able to locate Sita in the island of Lanka)
 
“I  as is well known to Raghava , found out that lady  of whom I have heard with the specified appearance, with specified colour, with specified glitter”                            16
 
After telling thus the great monkey observed silence.                                                  17
 
Janaki  after hearing the above words was greatly wonderstruck..                               18
 
Then that lady who had very pretty hair, which had a curved ends, lifted her face, which was partially covered by her hair and examined the Simshuba tree.                                19
 
That Sita whose soul was filled with only Sri Rama’s thought , examined all directions and places  and after well grasping the words of the monkey said to herself, ”So be it”, and became very happy.                                                                                                     20   
 
She after searching round, up   and down her saw Hanuman who was extremely wise, who was the minister of the monkey king, who was the son of God of wind and who looked like the rising son from behind the mountains.                                      21
 
 
        Thus ends the thirty-first chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Val
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:42:30 AM

 
                                Thirty-second Chapter
                                                  Sita seeing Hanuman
 
(Sita becomes confused on seeing a red copper coloured monkey because she thinks it is a bad omen. She analyses the situation and prays God that whatever has been narrated by Hanuman should be true)
 
Seeing him who was hiding in the branches, who was attired in white and who was copper coloured like streaks of lightning she was very much confused.                 1
 
She saw there,  the monkey who had eyes like molten gold, who had the luster of the body like the fully opened Asoka flowers, who was very soft and who was speaking lovable words.                                                                                                               2
 
Maithili wondered greatly and thought like this.                                                          3
 
Seeing the horrible and unusual features of the monkey she thought that it was bad omen and unfortunately  started to get worried.                                                                      4
 
That fear struck Sita wailed in a pitiable manner and that pretty and good natured Sita muttered  “Rama, Rama” and “Lakshmana” often while crying.                                        5
 
That pretty princess of Mithila seeing in front of her that Monkey chief who was standing with humility, thought that “It was definitely a dream.”                                      6
 
She saw the son of wind God, who was the minister of king of monkeys, who always obeyed the order of his king, who was foremost among intelligent beings , who was having a  misshapen face and saw him as very thoughtful.                                           7
 
As soon as the wide eyed Sita saw him properly  she almost fainted and took to the appearance of a dead woman but at lat she woke from her stupor and started thinking.  8
 
“I am seeing in my dream this monkey with a misshapen face , which is agreed upon  by the sciences as not boding good. Let good happen to Rama with Lakshmana  and my father,  the king Janaka.”                                                                                                9
 
“This is not a dream also, because I who has been affected by sorrow and sadness do not sleep at all. I have a  parting from Rama  who had the face of the full moon  and after that I do not have anything pleasant happening to me.”                                                        10
 
“Because I am within my mind always thinking of Rama  and by my words always praising him , I also always hear the story suitable to  him and possibly thought that I am hearing his story.”                                                                                                         11
 
“As of now I am full of thoughts in my mind about him , I have offered my mind fully to him  and I always meditate on him  and naturally I think , I see him and also think that I hear about him.”                                                                                                               12
 
“I think what happened was only a feeling in my mind  but in spite of that I am able to think and analyze about it. Thought will not have a form. But What I see has a clear form and is talking to me.”                                                                                                       13
 
“My salutations are to Indra, Brahaspathi[23] and Brahma.. Let whatever has been told by this monkey come  true and let it not be false.”                                                           14
 
           
        Thus ends the thirty-second  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:42:54 AM
                              Thirty-third Chapter
                         Starting of conversation by Hanuman with Sita.
 
(Hanuman enquires with Sita, whether she is actually Sita and She confirms it)
 
That hanuman who was having a face like coral, who was the son of God of wind and who was greatly resplendent got down from the tree, went near Sita and fell at her feet with a sad and humble face . Then he started talking to her with sweet praises with both his hands clasped in salutation over his head.                                                  1-2
 
“Hey , lady who wears ruffled silk cloth, hey, Lady who is having eyes like lotus flowers, hey, lady without any defects, who are you and why are you  holding the branch of a tree?”                                                                                                                          3
 
“Why are tears flowing from both your eyes like drops of water falling from two lotus flowers?”                                                                                                                    4
 
“Hey very good lady, who are you among Asuras, Nagas. Gandharwas. Rakshasas, Yakshas and Kinnaras?”                                                                                            5
 
“”Hey lady who is great and  pretty , to me you appear as if you are a Deva maiden. Who are you among Rudras, Maruths and Vasus?”                                                  6
(various types of demi gods)
 
“Are you the most holy Star Rohini enshrined with all good characters, who has parted with the moon and fallen down on earth?”                                                                  7
 
“Hey lady who brings only good and who has eyes without any blemish, who are you?    8
 
“He lady with black eyes , who is harbinger of good, are you by chance Arundathi who has deserted and angered your husband  Vasishta because of anger or passion?”        9
(Arundathi the sage wife of her great Sage husband Vasishta occupies the constellation of great bear along with her husband. She is possibly one of those extremely rare ladies who has been promoted as a star.)
 
“Hey lady who has a pretty waist, who is your son or your father or your brother or your husband? From which world have you fallen down to this world and have become so  sad?”                                                                                                                        10
 
“Because you are crying and  you are taking painful breaths and  because your feet is touching the earth and because you have taken one lord’s name as your everything. I do not think that you are a deva maiden? “                                                                     11
(Devas are not supposed to blink  and their feet does not touch the earth.)
 
“From your form and features which I have seen, I think that you are a princess or a queen of a great king.”                                                                                                     12
 
“If you are Sita ,  who has been abducted by Ravana from Janasthana, please tell me clearly , who is enquiring about you,  because by your telling ,  good things will happen to you.”                                                                                                                         13
 
“Your beauty is greater than any human beauty, your features shine because of penance and your sorrow is indescribable. Because of this I feel that you are the queen of Rama.”    14
 
That daughter of Videha becoming happy because of the praise of Rama thus replied to Hanuman who was standing leaning on a tree.                                                          15
 
“I am the daughter in law of Dasaratha who was first among the great kings of the world, who use to defeat enemy soldiers and who is famous.”                                            16
(Please note that Hanuman , Ravana and other Rakshasis used to refer her as Daughter of Janaka, and Sita introduces her as daughter-in-law of Dasaratha.)
 
“I am known as Sita and am the daughter of King Janaka who is great and who is the king of Videha, I am the wife of Rama who is a great hero..”                                    17   
 
“I enjoyed life for twelve years in the palace of Rama with all my wishes fulfilled and was enjoying all pleasures which are proper for human beings.”                                  18
 
“After that in the thirteenth year,  the king along with elders ordered the coronation of Rama who belonged to the Ikshuvaku clan.”                                                               19
 
 “When arrangements were under progress for the coronation, the queen Kaikeyi told about his promise to her.”                                                                                             20
 
“If Rama is going to be coroneted, I would not eat my food from now, I would not drink either and this is the last day of my life.”                                                                       21
 
“Hey great among the kings, if the loving promise made by you to me in olden days should not be made a lie, then Rama should go to the forest.”                                 22
 
“That truthful king remembering the promise he had given to his queen hearing Kaikeyi’s words which were cruel and undesirable became very much worried.”                23
 
“Then that old king standing firmly on justice and truth requested with tears, his eldest son Rama for the kingdom.”                                                                                          24
(Kingdom was still Dasaratha’s.He wanted him to forsake the poison of Yuva Raja)
 
“That great one considering his father’s orders as greater than the coronation, thought it as a great good deed  in his mind and by words agreed to the request.”                        25
 
“Sri Rama who considers truth as his greatest valour would always give but never take and even if he looses his life , will not tell anything that is harsh and hurting.”               26
 
“That famous one then removing his costly robes , sacrificed the kingdom willingly  and gave me in the custody of his mother.”                                                                            27
 
“But I prepared myself for the journey to the forest faster than him for even living in heaven without him is not liked by me.”                                                                           28
 
Lakshmana, the son of Sumithra, who is a great holy one and a friend to those who are  friendly became ready before everyone  and dressed in bark  with a determination to look after his brother.”                                                                                                     29
 
“Then all the three of us, considering the orders of elders as more important took to the life in forest which was strange to us and which creates seriousness.”                        30   
 
“I , .who am the wife of him who was having great valour and living in  the Dandaka forest was abducted by the Rakshasa Ravana who was a bad soul.”                           31
 
“I have been given the blessing of lease of life  for two more months by Ravana , and so only after two months I would sacrifice my life.”                                                         32
 
            Thus ends the thirty-third chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:43:21 AM
                              Thirty-fourth Chapter
                  Informing about the news of well being of Rama and Lakshmana
 
(Though initially Sita becomes glad on seeing Hanuman, she gets confused when he starts going near her and decides that he is only Ravana. Slowly by his actions and sweet words, Hanuman tries to dispel this misunderstanding.)
 
Hearing her words, which are, steeped in sadness after sadness, that monkey chief Hanuman, gave the following mind pleasing reply.                                                        1
 
“”Holy lady, I am the emissary of Rama, sent by him here and have come here to inform you about news pertaining to him.”                                                                                     2
 
“Hey Godly one, that Rama who is the son of Dasaratha, who is the greatest among those who knows Vedas and who has knowledge of Vedas and Brahmasthra, enquired about your well being.”                                                                                                           3
 
Lakshmana who is dear to your husband, who is always with him, who is suffering due to sorrow, and who is greatly resplendent has offered salutations by his head to you.”     4
(Hindus as an extreme sign of respect prostrate before those whom they respect with their head at their feet.)
 
That lady hearing the news about the well being of those two lion among men was pleased all over her body, and addressed Hanuman in a different way as follows?       5
 
“The proverb that “Happiness comes to the living man even after one hundred years” which is normally told appears to be true in my case. How happy I am!”                      6
 
She got wonderful confidence in Hanuman whom she has seen face to face. And they with confidence between them started mutual conversation.                                         7
 
Hearing her words, that monkey chief Hanuman, started going near Sita who was wilting with sorrow.                                                                                                                       8
 
The nearer and nearer he approached her, Sita started more and more suspecting him as Ravana.                                                                                                                               9
 
“ This must be Ravana who has changed his appearance and how foolish it is that I and he had conversed with each other. What a great tragedy.” , she thought.                  10
 
 She who had all the holy qualities and who was being pained by extreme sorrow left the branch of the Asoka tree which she was holding and sat firmly on the floor.                 11
 
The great hero Hanuman, seeing her afraid of him due to the misunderstanding, saluted Sita who was afflicted by sorrow by falling at her feet. But she, who was totally scared of him, did not see him by opening her eyes.                                                                       12
 
The sweet voiced and moon faced Sita seeing that he was bowing to her for a long time, gathered little courage and told him thus. -                                                                    13
 
“If you are indeed Ravana who is bent upon violence, you are causing me intense sorrow and that is not good for you.”                                                                                             14
 
“You are the same Ravana whom I saw in Janasthana as the one who has taken the form of one who has given up the world by hiding his own form.”                                    15
 
“Hey Rakshasa,  who is personification of passion, you are troubling me who is starving, shivering and in anguish and this is not good.”                                                              16
 
“Or perhaps, what I am doubting about you is not right, for just by looking at you my mind is peaceful.”                                                                                                            17
 
“If you are indeed the emissary of Lord Rama, let good happen to you.  Hey , monkey chief, I am  requesting you  to narrate the story of Rama. Hey peaceful monkey, you have attracted my mind like the banks of the river. Please describe the qualities of my Lord, Rama.”                                                                                                                 18-19
 
“Hey, what is this, why this pleasant dream to me. Why am I , who has been abducted by force , assuming that this monkey has been sent by Rama ?”                                    20
 
“Even in my dream, if I see the valorous hero  Lord Rama with Lakshmana then I would not be scared. Has dreams also have become my enemy?”                                       21
 
“I do not think that this is a dream that forebodes good  for good would not happen by seeing a monkey in a dream. And I have received only good news.”                          22
 
“This could be self deceit or could be the action of some evil spirit or a lunacy created by intense longing. Perhaps this is possibly the mirage.”                                           23
 
“No, this is not madness or mental state created by madness, for I am clearly recognizing myself and this as a monkey.”                                                                                 24
 
Analyzing in various ways thus about the strengths of her various thoughts, she concluded that the monkey as indeed the king of Rakshasas who can assume any form he wanted.                                                                                                                      25
 
Then Sita who was the daughter of Janaka and who had a very thin waist, assuming thus in her mind, did not utter anything to the monkey.                                                   26
 
Hanuman the Son of God of wind, understanding her sorrow  started pleasing her by words, which were sweet to her ears.                                                                         27
 
“He is resplendent like the sun god, pleasing to the world like the moon god and a king to all the world like Lord Kubhera. “                                                                               28
 
“He is one with great fame, one who has extreme valor like Maha Vishnu and one who tells sweet truth like Lord Brahaspathi.”                                                                      29
(Brahaspathi is the official teacher of all Devas. He is the planet Jupiter in the sky)
 
“He attracts the eyes like the God of love , who is reborn, he is handsome, he is a gentleman, he is capable of anger where required, he punishes his enemies, he is a great charioteer and he is the best in the world.”                                                                 30
 
“Hey lady, you will soon see that, he who took the form of a stag and removed that great one ,on whom the whole world depends  , far away from the hermitage and abducted you, when nobody was there would get the punishment he deserves.”                       31-32
 
“I am the emissary  who has been sent to your presence by that great hero who would soon kill Ravana by sending burning arrows  which are like fire and which would be sent with anger. Because of your parting he is drowned in sorrow  and told me to tell you about his welfare.”                                                                                                 33-34
(It is an Indian custom to inform your welfare firsat and then ask about the welfare of those whom we meet.)
 
“That Lakshmana , who increased the happiness of  his mother Sumithra, who is a great hero, who is resplendent is sending news of his well being along with his  salutations.” 35
 
“Hey , holy lady, That monkey Sugreeva, who is the friend of Rama and who is the king of monkeys also told me to inform you good tidings.”                                                 36
 
“Rama along with Sugreeva and Lakshmana always think about you .Hey, Vaidehi, by the grace of God, you also are alive in the custody of Rakshasis.”                               37
 
“You are soon going to see  Rama, the very strong Lakshmana and Sugreeva with immeasurable power  surrounded by crores of monkeys.”                                           38
 
“I who have crossed the great ocean and reached in the city of Lanka am named as Hanuman and am the minister of Sugreeva.”                                                              39
 
“I am the one who has come here for keeping my feet on the head of Ravana and show my valor  and also to see you.”                                                                                    40
 
“Hey lady, I am not what you think .Leave out this doubt and please keep faith in me.”   41
 
        Thus ends the thirty-fourth  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:44:03 AM
                              Thirty-fifth Chapter
                     Description of the body parts of Rama and Lakshmana.
(To convince Sita, Hanuman described in detail about Rama and also told  her the story of the meeting of Rama with Sugreeva as well as killing of Bali and consequent successful search for her. Sita is at lat convinced that he indeed is Hanuman)
 
Once she heard about the story of Rama from Hanuman ,Sita with a sweet voice started telling  the following friendly words.                                                                          1
 
“Where did you get to know of Lord Rama? How do you know Lakshmana? How did the friendship between men and monkeys develop?”                                                  2-3
 
“Hey , monkey, be pleased to tell in  detail once again the bodily signs of Rama and Lakshmana .By this no sorrow will ever reach me.”                                                    4
 
“ How is the bodily appearance of Rama and Lakshmana? How are their features? How are their thighs? How are their hands? Please describe these in detail for my sake.”         5
 
Thus requested by Vaidehi, Hanuman the son of Wind God, started telling in detail about Rama.                                                                                                                          6
 
“Hey , lady with lotus leaf like eyes, Hey broad eyed one, Hey Vaidehi, it is extremely lucky that you asked me to describe the features of Rama and Lakshmana. Be pleased to hear the features of Rama and Lakshmana as is known to me.”                            7-8
 
“Hey daughter of Janaka, Rama has eyes like the lotus leaf, he steals the mind of all beings, and he was born with beauty and pity.”                                                       9
(The word “Rama” means “He who is handsome.”)
 
“He is equal to Sun in the resplendency, equal to earth in his patience, equal to Brahaspathi in wisdom, and equal to Indra in fame.”                                                  10
 
“He is the protector of animals, protector of his own people, protector of beliefs and just action   and killer of his enemies.”                                                                            11
 
“Hey pretty one, Rama is the protector of the four castes of the world, author of just practices of the world and he is the one who makes others obey such practices.”     12
 
“He is one with luster, he is always being worshipped, he is very firm in continence, he is an expert in doing service to the poor and he knows the best methods of doing any action.”                                                                                                                          13
(Tilaka t the famous commentator ranslates “He is one with luster” as “He is being worshipped as Sun God by Brahmins”.)
 
“He is an expert in royal administration and hence he worships Brahmins, he understands science and practices it, he is by nature of a very good character, he is humility personified and in spite of that a valorous hero.”                                                            14
 
“He is an expert in Yajur Veda, he is one who is respected by great Vedic scholars and he is an expert in science of war, Vedas and Vedangas.”                                                    15
 
“ Hey , Devi,  he has high shoulders, he has long hands, he has neck like a conch, he has a smiling face, he has shoulder bones hidden by flesh, he has red eyes and he is the one who is addressed as “Rama” by all people.”                                                                 16
 
“He has a musical booming voice of a trumpet, he is of soft shade, he is one with fame, he is one with ideal height and girth, he has proportionate organs and he is of black colour.”                                                                                                                             17
 
“Three of his are firm ( chest, wrist and fist), three of his are long(eye brows, hands and Andas[24]) three of  his are equal( ends of hair on the head, knees, Andas)three of his are high(stomach, belly and chest), three of his are red( ends of the eye, nails, and bottom of the feet), three of his are shining( hair, lines on feet and penis)  and three of his are having a regal look(sound, stride and overall looks)                                                       18
(What are mentioned in the bracket in this and later stanzas are views of expert commentators. The slokas do not contain them.)
 
“He has three folds in his belly and neck, three of his are depressed( breasts, nipples and lines on his feet), four of his are short(neck, penis, back side and knee joint), he has three whorls on his head, , he has four lines on the thumb of his feet, , he has four lines on his forehead, he is four hands tall(one hand is one and a half feet) and he has four organs equal( hands, knee joints, thighs and cheeks)”                                                              19
 
“He has fourteen parts as equal( eye brows, nasal orifices, eyes, ears, lips, nipples, arm joints, wrists, knee joints, hips, hip joints, back sides, hands and legs). He has four sharp teeth, he has the combined gait of four animals (lion, tiger, elephant and bull), he has pretty lips, jaw bones and nose, he has five organs soft( hair, eyes, teeth, skin and feet) and he has eight organs long( back bone, body, hands, nose, eyes, penis, fingers  and legs) .”                                                                                                                      20
 
“He has ten  organs like lotus flower( Face, mouth, eyes, toungue, lips, cheek bones, breast, nails, hand and feet), he has ten big ones (  Chest, head, forehead, neck, shoulders, hands, belly, sides, back and voice) , He is spread throughout by three ( fame, riches and renown) , he has two of them white(teeth and eyes), six of them standing out( arm pit, belly, chest, nose, hands and forehead), Nine of the ones are very sharp ( hair on the head, moustache, nails, hair on the body, skin, fingers, eyes, penis and knowledge)and he observes three aspects of life(charity, wealth and passion) , three times a day(morning, noon and evening)”                                                                                                         21
 
“He is interested in truth and justice, He is very lucky, he is interested in charity all over the world, he knows the differences brought about by time and place, and he tells only those words which are good to all beings.”                                                                    22
 
“Sumithra’s son Lakshmana who is his younger mother’s son and also one who  cannot be defeated by anybody and is equal to him in  affection and features.”                        23
 
“Those two great men , who were going round and round the world with the intention of finding you out, were seen by us.”                                                                                24
 
“Those two men who were  wandering throughout the out the world  in search of you, had a friendly meeting with Sugreeva, who was insulted by his elder brother, who was extremely sad because of the fear towards his brother , who was the king of animals and who was in hiding to take revenge of his brother  in the thickly wooded forest of Rishya Mooka.”                                                                                                                   25-26   
(Bali was the king of monkeys and hisyounger brother was Sugreeva .Once they chased a giant called Dundubhi , who entered a tiny cave. Bali went in chase of the giant inside the cave and requested Sugreeva  to keep guard in the mouth of the cave. Since Bali did not come out for a long time,. Sugreeva thought that he is dead and crowned himself as the king of monkeys. But Bali did return and thought that  Sugreeva was insulting him, Chased by Bali, Sugreeva hid along with some of his friends , in the Rishya Mooka mountains where Bali cannot set foot because of a curse by a sage.)
 
  “We a few people , served Sugreeva who was truthful, who was driven out by his brother and who was the king of monkeys.”                                                               27
 
  “While things were like this, those two wearing the bark of the trees and holding huge bows neared the Rishya Mooka Mountains.”                                                               28
 
“That monkey chief  seeing those two great souls who were great warriors was fear stuck and ran away to the upper parts of the mountain.”                                                         29
(The fact that Sugreeva was a coward is brought out in this stanza)
 
“Then that monkey chief sitting on the peak of the mountain immediately sent me  as an emissary to those heroes.”                                                                                           30
 
“Under the orders of Sugreeva I went and informed them, who were two handsome and powerful  Lords,  with folded hands  about the situation in the mountain.”                  31
 
“Understanding the situation  and getting pleased , those two rode on my back and were brought to the place of Sugreeva.”                                                                                    32
 
“Both of them were introduced to the great soul , Sugreeva  and by mutual conversation both of them developed faith in each other.”                                                               33
 
“The Chief of the monkeys and Chief of men, were told during the conversation  about things past, and being convinced about each other became happy.”                          34
 
“Because of that  that elder brother of Lakshmana , consoled Sugreeva who was driven out by his elder brother and a great hero, Bali because of a woman.”                   35
 (There are differing versions of this story. One of them is that Sugreeva was driven out because while he became a king instead of Bali, he married one of the wives of Bali)
 
“This time Lakshmana who can get any job done  without effort  informed the monkey king Sugreeva about the sorrow caused to Rama because of parting with you.”          36
 
“Hearing the words of Lakshmana, that monkey chief became dull similar to the Sun affected by Rahu and Kethu during eclipse.”                                                           37
 
“That time the monkey warriors brought out  all those ornaments , which were shining on your body , which were thrown by you on earth ,while you were being abducted and exhibited them before Rama but the monkeys  were not knowing the place where you have been taken.”                                                                                                  38-39
 
“When Rama was benumbed by sorrow, we gave him those ornaments which fell down and broke  with tingling sound”                                                                            40
 
“Your husband  who is like a God,  kept those very pretty ornaments on his lap and wept several times.”                                                                                                      41
 
“The son of Dasaratha’s  sorrow went up and up seeing those ornaments  again and again and the fire of his sorrow was burning more and more.”                                                42
 
“Drowned by his sorrow , he lay  down silently  and I using several words of consolation  with great difficulty made him stand up.”                                                              43
 
“That Rama accompanied by Lakshmana  saw those very great ornaments again and again  and pointed them out several times and gave them to Sugreeva for safe keeping.”  44
 
“Hey holy lady, that Raghava because he was not able to see you  , internally burns like a volcano burning in huge fire.”                                                                               45
 
“Because of you he was sleepless and worries and thoughts also   were burning that Raghava like the fire burns  the fire place.”                                                                46
 
“He was shattered because of the sorrow in not being able to see you  like a huge mountain was shattered by an earth quake.”                                                                  47
 
“Hey princess, he did not get an iota of happiness because he was not able to see you after he wandered round and round  the streams, gardens  and springs.”                       48
 
“Hey daughter of Janaka, that Raghava who is a  lion among men , is going to kill Ravana along with all his relations soon.”                                                                 49
 
“That time Rama and Sugreeva together signed a treaty for killing Bali and undertaking a thorough search for you.”                                                                                          50
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:44:26 AM
“Because of that  Bali was killed by those two princes in a war near Kishkinda.” 51
 
“Sri Rama killed Bali by his valor  and after that appointed Sugreeva as the king to all monkeys and bears.”                                                                                                  52
 
“Hey holy lady, the unity in purpose between Rama and Sugreeva happened like this  and I am an emissary sent by both of them because of that.”                                          53
 
“Once Sugreeva got his kingdom back , he sent the very powerful monkey chiefs for searching for you in all the ten directions.”                                                                  54
(below and above has also been included along with eight directions.)
 
“Ordered by the king of monkeys , those monkeys who are very strong and equal to the Himalaya Mountains started their search in all parts of the earth.”                            55
 
“From then onwards , we as well as the other monkey groups , interested in carrying out the orders of Sugreeva , traveled throughout the world in search of you.”                56   
 
“The monkey chief Angadha who is blessed by Lakshmi , who is very strong  and who is the son of Bali  started his search assisted by one third of the armies.”                      57
 
“We spent several nights on the Vindhya Mountains  without getting any result and as a result became very sad.”                                                                                                  58
 
“We,  because we were not able to get the job done in the time stipulated and also because of the fear of the  monkey king, decided to give up our life.”                            59 
 
“After searching for the divine lady in forests, mountains, caves, streams and being  not able to find her place of residence , we decided to give away our life.”                          60
 
“Hey, Vaidehi, Angadha seeing that all monkeys have decided to give up their life by starvation, drowned in great sorrow, related the stories of Jatayu’s death, killing of Bali and how we were not able to find the divine lady  and our consequent decision to give up our life and  became extremely sad.”                                                                         61-62
 
“A heroic great hawk, seeing us who were about to commit suicide because we were not able to complete the instructions of our boss, came near us with an intention of helping us to complete the job.”                                                                                                   63
 
“This hawk king called Sampathi who  was the elder brother of Jatayu  on  hearing the death of Jatayu , came near us very fast and told the following words.”                   64
 
“Hey, monkey chiefs, who defeated and killed my younger brother   Jatayu and where was it done? I am interested in knowing it from you.”                                               65
 
“Then Angadha related to him the war that was done for saving you with the horrible Rakshasa  at Janasthana and the  consequent death of the great soul, as it happened.”  66
 
“Hey pretty lady, that son of Aruna hearing the story of Jatayu’s death became very sad and told us that you are living in the house of Ravana.”                                                67
(Hawks has the ability to see for long distances.)
 
“Hearing the happy tidings from Sampathi, we all , who were led by Angadha started from there.”                                                                                                                    68
 
“Those monkeys with the extreme exuberance   for locating you , happily  and without any thought  reached the northern shore of the  great ocean.”                                        69 
 
“Those monkey chiefs led by Angadha  with great wish to see you after reaching the sea shore, became filled with fear (because of difficulty in crossing the sea) and became very sad .”                                                                                                                              70
 
“Then I after seeing the sea, removed the fear from the minds of those very sad monkeys and crossed the one hundred yojanas.”                                                                           71
(Initially even Hanuman was filled with fear ,But Jambhavan told him that he was the only has the capacity and he is underestimating his own strength because of a curse during his  childhood. Once he realized his strength, Hanuman crossed the sea.)
 
“Within a night I searched all over Lanka  filed with Rakshasas, saw Ravana  and needless to say, also you who is filled with sorrow..”                                                 72
 
“Oh, holy lady, please know me as the son of wind god, minister of Sugreeva , the one who is enthused by Lord Rama and the one who has come here because of you.”          73
 
“Oh lady, who is devoid of any blemishes, I have just narrated to you every thing as it happened. I am the emissary of the son of Dasaratha and so please recognize me as such.” 74
 
“ Your Kakustha (descendent of Kakustha) who is foremost among all archers is all right. Similarly that Lakshmana who is interested in serving his elder brother and who is symbol of all that is good is also all right.”                                                                   75
 
“Hey holy lady, I , who am interested in the well being of your valorous husband  have reached here alone as per the orders of Sugreeva.”                                                      76
 
“I who can assume any shape I want, with a deep wish to find out the path that you have traveled and who can travel any where without any help  have reached this southern side.”                                                                                                                            77
 
“I because of my luck am going to console the monkey army who are all sad because they are not able to locate you , by informing them  about my meeting with you.”       78
 
“Hey , holy lady, it is indeed lucky that my crossing of the sea has not gone waste and because of my great luck , I am going to get the fame of locating and meeting you.”    79
 
“That great hero Raghava, is going to exterminate Ravana along with his friends and relatives and is going to take you back.”                                                                        80
 
“Hey, Vaidehi, Malyavan is the most holy among the mountains and from this mountain , a monkey called  Kesari reached the mountains of Gokarna.”                                        81
 
“He , the great monkey chief  ,  who is my father , under the orders of Devas and Rishis  killed an Asura called Sambasadhana in this holy waters of  Varuna”                         82
 
“Hey, Maithili, I was produced in the wife of this monkey chief by the wind God and I became famous as  Hanuman by my work.”                                                                83
(There are lot of stories of Hanuman’s birth. One story says that he was produced by Shiva and Parvathy when they were playing in the forest as monkeys. Parvathy did not want to bear this child and the child was entrusted to the wind god. He put the child in the womb of Anjana the wife of Keasari).
 
“Hey holy lady who has done only good deeds, Hey Vaidehi, to gain your complete belief I told you all about Rama. That Raghava is going to take you from here very soon.”   84
 
Famished by sorrow that Sita  seeing the reasons and proper information, believed in Hanuman  and decided that he is indeed the emissary of Rama.                           85
 
That Janaki having attained immense happiness and  due to extreme happiness shed happy tears from her eyes, which had curved eyelids.                                           86
 
That broad eyed one’s,  incomparable pretty  face which was blessed with red , white long eyes  appeared as if it was the moon who has escaped from Rahu.                       87
 
She decided without any doubt that indeed it is Hanuman for there was no other reason to decide otherwise. At that Hanuman seeing the holy lady with friendly eyes, told the following:-                                                                                                              88
 
“Hey Maithili, I have told you all that is to be told in its entirety .So please take courage  and give me leave. What do you think , I should do now?                                     89
 
“Hey Maithili, I was born as a monkey to the god of wind , when according to the wishes  of sages, Sambasadana was killed by a monkey in war and I am equal in power to the God of wind.”                                                                                                          90
 
        Thus ends the thirty-fifth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:44:54 AM
Thirty-sixth Chapter           
                                              Presentation of the ring
(To prove his bonafides, Hanuman presents the royal ring of Rama to Sita .She is convinced by this memento .She then realizes her mistake and praises Hanuman. She sounds hopeful about her being saved by Rama ,She is also perplexed because Rama does not appear to her anything to save her. Hanuman tries to dispel her misunderstanding and tells how sad Rama is.)
 
The son of wind god and the greatly resplendent Hanuman with an intention of increasing Sita’s faith in him told the following  words with all humility.                                         1
 
“Hey holy lady, I am the monkey who is the emissary of the great Hero Rama. And so to dispel any misunderstanding that you may have and to increase your faith, please see here, the signet ring of Rama in which his name is inscribed , which was given to me by him and which was brought here by me. You would remain safe. You would soon see the end of your sorrow.”                                                                                                     2-3
 
After telling like this he presented the ring to Sita.                                                       4
 
That Sita after receiving the ornament of the hand of Rama examined it closely and became as happy as if she saw her husband in person.                                                  5
 
Then that lady becoming a little shy and also  becoming pleased by hearing the story of Rama, being mentally happy and  understanding that the monkey chief has done her a great help started praising him.                                                                                     6
(According to Tilaka she became shy because she felt that her husband was near by and another commentator feels that she became shy because she suspected the great Hanuman instead of trusting him.)
 
“Hey great monkey, you are a great hero, you are greatly wise and you are greatly intelligent and only because of those qualities you were able to see this place of Rakshasas all alone and without any help.”                                                              7
 
“You, who can be described as a great hero, have crossed this ocean which is one hundred yojanas broad and which is the home of sharks, in one jump and made it equivalent to the hoof mark of the cow. “                                                              8
 
“Hey monkey chief, I do not think that you are an ordinary monkey for you do not have any fear for Ravana and you  also are not nervous.”                                               9
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, due to the fact that you have been sent by Rama, who knows the mind of others , you are definitely  fit to hold conversation with me.”                  10   
 
“That matchless Hero Rama would not send an emissary, without knowing his valor and without examining him especially to me.”                                                             11
 
“That very just votary of truth,  Sri Rama is luckily all right and it is also lucky that the greatly resplendent Lakshmana who increases the happiness of Sumithra is also all right.”  12
 
“Because the Kakustha is all right, possibly he would burn all the earth surrounded by the sea by his anger, which is similar to the fire that will engulf the world during deluge.”   13
 
“I know that both of them are capable of even punishing the Devas but I think there is no end in sight for  my sorrow.”                                                                                            14
 
“I think that Rama is not mentally upset and would do what remains to be done now without being affected by sorrow.”                                                                                 15
 
“I think that prince Rama is not broken down and is not committing mistakes because he is perplexed and also is doing the duties of a man.”                                                   16
 
“He who gives pain to his enemies,  I hope is using two approaches (peaceful affectionate advice (sama) and by bestowing help, riches etc (Dhana)) with love towards his relatives and three approaches (bribery (dhana) creating rift and confusion (Bhedha) and punishment (Dhanda)) towards enemies with a view to win over them.”                   17
 
“I believe that he is being visited by his friends, he is hospitable towards them and he is respected by them.”                                                                                             18
 
“I believe that Rama who is the son of an emperor is praying Gods for blessing and has faith in the fact that physical effort is God’s blessing.”                                             19
 
“I believe that though he is far away from me, his love towards me has not diminished and Hey, Monkey, I also believe that he is taking appropriate action to free me from this sorrow.”                                                                                                                      20
 
“I believe that Rama who always deserves to be happy and who does not deserve to be sad is not becoming very feeble because of this intense sorrow.”                                   21
 
“I believe that he gets news about Kausalya and Sumithra frequently and that he gets news   about Bharatha also.”                                                                                       22
(Please note that she is not asking about news of Kaikeyi)
 
“I believe that because of the sorrow caused by me , he has not lost his pride and is listless. I also believe that Rama would save me from this misery.”                          23
 
“I believe that Bharatha would send one great Akshouhini army protected by ministers for the sake of me.”                                                                                                     24
(21,870 chariots, 21870 elephants, 65, 610 horses and 1,09, 350 infantry is termed as Akshouhini army)
 
“ I believe that the great monkey chief Sugreeva would come surrounded by monkeys who have claws and teeth as weapons for my sake.”                                                 25
 
 
 “I believe that the great hero and great archer Lakshmana who increases the happiness of Sumithra would exterminate all the Rakshasas by his rain of arrows.”                      26
 
“I believe that very soon, Rama using burning arrows would kill Ravana along with his friends and that I would be able to see him very soon.”                                           27
 
“I believe that that golden face of Rama who has a perfume similar to the lotus flowers would not wilt because of my separation, similar to the lotus flower being wilted by torrid Sun light.”                                                                                                                   28     
 
“ I believe that courage permanently resides in his heart which neither had sorrow, fear or worries even when he forsook the kingdom for the sake of just action or when he brought me by walk in to this forest.”                                                                            29
 
“Hey emissary, for me, because of my love towards him, my great father is not equal to him, nor my mother nor any one else and so I wish to continue this life only till I hear about his actions.”                                                                                                      30
 
That all knowing holy lady, after telling these very meaningful and pleasant to hear words halted with a view to hear the reply of Hanuman which were aimed at attaining Rama and which was about Rama.                                                                             31
 
That great hero Hanuman hearing the words of Sita, keeping his hands in salutations over his head told the following words.                                                                             32
(Salutations with hands opposite to the chest is done for persons of equal stature and over head to God and to persons who are much above your stature)
 
“That lotus eyed Rama does not know that you are here and that is why he is not taking you back like Indra took back his queen Sachi Devi.                                                  33
(Anuhlada abducted Sachi Devi,  the queen of Indra. Indra after killing the Rakshasa took back his queen)
 
“As soon as Raghava hears my words, he along with a great army consisting of only monkeys and bears is going to reach here soon.”                                                   34
(Hanuman’s reply indicates that he would not ask for armed help from Bharatha as indicated by Sita)
 
“That Kakustha is going to freeze the ocean which cannot be moved and going to make Lanka devoid of Rakshasas.”                                                                                    35
 
“If the god of death or Asuras along with Devas are going to block his way,  he would kill them immediately.”                                                                                               36
 
“Hey, holy lady, that Rama because of his sorrow in not being able to see you, is suffering like an elephant attacked by a lion and does not know what is pleasure” 37
 
“Hey, holy lady, I am taking an oath with witnesses the  Malaya mountain, the Vindhya mountain, the Meru mountain, the Mandhara mountain ,the  Durudhura mountain and on the vegetables and fruits , that you are going to see and enjoy the handsome face of Rama, which has very pretty eyes, which has lips like the red guava fruit, which has wonderful ear rings and which is like the rising full moon.”                               38-39
(Note that Hanuman being a monkey is taking an oath on things, which he considers as
Important)
 
“Hey, Vaidehi, you are going to see immediately Rama who is on Prasravana mountain and who resembles Indra on Naga Prashta[24] in heaven.”                                        40
 
“Raghava is daily not taking either the edible portions of fruit or drinking honey and takes food in the fifth part of the day that too only cooked vegetables and roots as ordained for people who are about to forsake the world (Vana prastha ashrama).”                      41
(1.The words used can also be translated, as “Raghava is daily not taking meat or drinking wine.” There is nothing wrong in this translation also because Lord Rama is a King and is permitted to take these Rajasic foods.
2. It is believed by Hindus that after leading a complete family life, at a particular stage the husband and wife retire in to the forest and lead a life of partial renunciation called Vana prastha Ashrama. It is believed that they should take only one-fifth portion of food that they usually took earlier.)
 
“ Because he has already given his heart to you, Raghava is not driving away the flies which sit on him, nor mosquitoes nor worms and nor insects that crawl.”               42
(Here the lovelorn Rama is described in the state of “ Arathi” i.e. loosing of the senses due to parting from the beloved.)
 
“That Rama due to extreme love is always drowned in sorrow and is always thoughtful and does not know any other thing.”                                                                         43
 
“That great man ,  Rama is always without sleep and even if he is asleep wakes up immediately muttering sweetly “ Hey Sita””.                                                              44
 
“If he happens to see either fruits or flowers or any other thing dear to ladies, with very great sorrow, he remembers  you as “My darling””.                                                   45
 
 
“Hey holy lady, that great soul and prince Rama who believes firmly in just action, is always unhappy and always keeps on muttering “Hey Sita” and keeps on trying to find you.”                                                                                                                               46
 
That Sita who is the daughter of king Videha got rid of her sorrow due to hearing the praise of Rama and  became equally sad when she came to know that Rama is drowned in sorrow and looked similar to the night lit by early autumn moon hid by dark clouds.    47
 
     Thus ends the thirty sixth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:45:24 AM

                          Thirty seventh Chapter
                                   Hanuman showing his mega form
 
(When Hanuman sees that Sita is miserable, he offers to carry her on his back immediately to the presence of Rama. Sita refuses to believe him because he is too small and would not be capable of doing it. Hanuman then shows her very big form. She is wonderstruck by his strength but tells him that as a woman she many not be able to undertake such a risky journey. She also tells him of her owill she has never touched any other male except Rama. She concludes by saying that unless Rama himself frees her, a bad name would come to him.)
 
That princess Sita who had a full moon face  after hearing the news, told the following meaningful words containing essence of  justice.                                                       1
 
“The words  told by you that “Rama is not paying attention to any thing”, is like nectar and the words that ”He is drowned in sorrow”, is like poison.”                                  2 
 
“Though full of complete riches or very horrible sorrow, man is tied and dragged by  the  effects of  actions his previous birth , similar to be being tied and dragged by a rope.”   3
 
“Hey chief of the monkeys, it is indeed true  that the effects of fate cannot be prevented by all living beings, This is aptly illustrated by the example of the son of Sumithra, myself and Rama.”                                                                                                            4
 
“When is Rama going to swim to the other shore of sorrow, similar to the one who after breaking of the ship in the ocean, swims with difficulty to the other shore.”                  5 
 
“When is my lord  going to kill Rakshasas , kill Ravana, destroy Lanka  and see me?     6
 
“I can be alive only that number of days when the year of my captivity lasts, and so he has to be told that  “He has to complete the job with care and speed.””                            7
 
“This is the tenth month in the period set for me to be alive by Ravana  and the remaining period is only two months.”                                                                                                8
 
“Ravana has been told about returning me back to Rama to the best of his ability by his brother Vibishana by good and sweet words but his brain does not accept it as proper.”  9
 
“Ravana does not like to return me back because , he is caught in the web of time and is being searched by death.”                                                                                                  10
 
“Hey monkey, this has been told to me  on great detail personally by Anala, the eldest daughter of Vibishana who has sent here by her own mother.                                         11
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, I am definitely sure that my lord would get me back soon, for my mind is pure and he has several good qualities.”                                                           12
 
“Hey monkey In Rama there is a great combination of enthusiasm, masculinity, strength, mercy, gratefulness, chivalry and fame.”                                                                   13
 
“Which enemy will not shiver in fear of him who alone without the help of his brother killed fourteen thousand rakshasas in Janasthana?”                                                   14
 
“That great man is one who cannot be shaken by sorrow  and I know him like Indra’s wife knows Indra well.”                                                                                            15
 
“Hey , monkey, Rama who is the sun with net of arrows as his rays would soon dry the water which is full of Rakshasas.”                                                                             16
 
“Seeing Sita who was afflicted by sorrow because of  Rama  and who was telling like this with eyes full of tears, Hanuman told the following words.”                                      17
 
“Sri Rama is going to reach here along with the army of monkeys and bears as soon as he hears my words.”                                                                                                         18
 
“Hey lady without any blemishes. If this is not agreeable, you climb on my back and I would definitely free you from the clutches of insufferable Ravana.”                       19
 
“ I would safely cross the ocean along with you , if you climb on my back for I definitely have the strength to carry the entire Lanka along with Ravana.”                              20
 
“Hey princess of Mithila, I would immediately present you to Raghava  who is atop the Prasravana mountains like the God of fire delivers the sacred offerings to Indra”   21
(God of fire acts as an agent to deliver offerings made by human beings to Devas and Pithrus)
 
“You would be able to immediately see Raghava  who is similar to Vishnu in killing of Rakshasa, who is similar to Indra who sits on a seat called “Naga Rajam” , who lives in a hermitage  doing all possible efforts to see you soon, who is very strong, and who is with Lakshmana .”                                                                                                            22-23
 
“Hey Lady who does only good, climb on my back. Do not hesitate.  You would be able to attain and live with Rama like Lady Rohini with moon God, Lady Suvarchala with Sun God. You sit firmly on my back and cross the sea and the ocean .”                 24-25
 
“No body who lives in Lanka, have the strength to follow my speed , when I take you and travel fast. Oh holy lady.”                                                                                            26
 
“Hey Vaidehi, I would go high up in the sky carrying you without any difficulty  similar to the fashion by which I came here  , be please to see.”                                              27
 
Maithili hearing these wonderful words of the monkey chief , became extremely happy because of this and became wonderfully alert, and told Hanuman the following words in a different way.                                                                                                                 28
 
“Hey monkey who is the army-commander in chief of the monkeys, the fact of your desire to carry me through this very long route makes me feel that it is your monkey like conduct.”    29
 
“Hey Chief of monkeys, how do you propose to take me from her to the presence of my husband with the frail body of yours?”                                                                         30
 
That wonderful hero and son of wind God Hanuman, after knowing the opinion of Sita thought about her apprehension as follows.                                                                    31             
 
“This black eyed damsel Vaidehi does not about my inborn strength or fame. Let her see my that aspect which I can assume  at will that will impress her.”                                32
 
After thinking thus that monkey  chief Hanuman who has won over enemies like passion anger etc  assumed his natural aspect and made Vaidehi see it.                                     33
 
That great hero and monkey chief to show Sita his real form jumped far away from the tree and assumed his mega form.                                                                                   34
 
That monkey chief standing before Sita became equal  the Meru and Mandhara mountains and shined like the raging fire.                                                                       35
 
Then that monkey who was having a red face , who was extremely strong, who had nails and teeth like Vajrayudha  and who was like a mountain told the following to Vaidehi.  36
 
“I have sufficient strength to carry this city of Lanka along with its mountains, forests , buildings, spires , towers  and also its chief.”                                                               37
 
“So, Hey Vaidehi, make your brain stable, leave out all doubts. Hey lady and make Rama along with Lakshmana devoid of all sorrows.”                                                             38
 
That daughter of Janaka who was having broad eyes like the lotus leaf  looking at Hanuman who was adopted son of God of Wind and who was like  the mountain spoke as follows.                                                                                                                               39
 
“Hey great monkey, I am seeing your great qualities, strength of your body, your speed which is equal to that of wind god and the power which is equal to that of the fire God.” 40
 
“Hey chief of monkeys , how can an ordinary being have the strength to reach this unthinkable beach and this city?”                                                                                    41
 
“I can visualize your great strength by which you can carry me back but the great ones but we have to also consider the certain and speedy completion of his duty of the great one .”                                                                                                                            42
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, it is not possible for me to accompany you  for I may faint by the great speed by which you go.”                                                                                      43
 
“I may perhaps fall down because of trembling induced by fear from your back when you are traveling in the sky far far above the ocean.”                                                            44
 
“I would then perhaps fall and die in the ocean and become good food for beings like whales and crocodiles living in the sea.”                                                                        45
 
“Hey destroyer of foes,  Not only that it is not possible for me to go with you. For danger may without doubt happen to you who is carrying me.”                                                  46
 
“For once the bad soul Ravana comes to know that I have escaped, those great valorous asuras ordered by him would catch up with us.”                                                             47
 
“Hey valorous one, you would be surrounded by those heroes armed with iron rods and spears and you carrying me who has to be saved would attain lot of danger.”              48
 
“Those Rakshasas would be too many and well armed you would not be armed and how can you fight with them in the sky and that too how is it possible for you to save me?”   49
 
 “Hey chief of monkeys, while you are fighting  with those Rakshasa who are capable of cruel deeds , I may tremble because of fear and fall down.”                                        50
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:45:46 AM
“Hey chief of monkeys, there would be too many rakshasas who are all very powerful and they somehow will attain victory over you in war.”                                              51
 
“Otherwise also when you are fighting with lot of difficulty, I may fall down and those sinner Rakshasas would take me away.”                                                                         52
 
“Perhaps they may snatch me from your hands or even perhaps kill me  for in war victory or defeat is never certain.”                                                                                                53
 
“Or it is possible that insulted by those Rakshasas I may give up my life  and even that way , Hey monkey chief, all your efforts will culminate in getting no result.”               54
 
“I realize that you are quite capable of killing all of them  but in spite of that Rama’s fame will decrease  when it is known that all Rakshasas were killed by you.”               55
(She implies that People will talk that Rama was not able to kill his enemies without depending on others.)
 
“Otherwise also , once the Rakshasas recover me they would hide me in a place from where no one can locate me and because of that monkeys will not be able to find me out nor would Rama and Lakshmana be able to find me out. Even like this all the efforts put by you would be wasted.”                                                                                               56
 
“Would it not be better if Lord Rama also comes with you?”                                         57
 
“Hey great hero, is it not true that the soul of Rama, his brothers , you and all members of the princely dynasty lies in me.”                                                                                       58
 
“Those    two once they realize that I cannot be saved would become weak with sorrow and would sacrifice their lives along with all monkeys and bears.”                                59
 
“Hey greatest of all monkeys, having observed chastity as my ideal, I never had at any time ,  any desire to even touch another male.”                                                              60
 
“But in case of the touch of Ravana, it was done in spite of  my chastity because I was not free, I did not have any other go, I  was completely enfeebled and  was done by force because I fell in to his hands.”                                                                                       61
 
“It would be proper for  Rama , if he kills the ten headed Rakshasa along with his relatives  and takes me along with him.”                                                                       62
 
“I have heard nay seen the great valour of that great man in killing his enemies in war  and I know  that neither devas nor Rakshasas nor Pannagas are equal to Rama in war.”63
 
“Who will think of fighting with  that Raghava who holds the great bow called Kodanda, who is very strong, who is equal to Indra in valor  , who is like the fire kindled by wind in war  and who is with Lakshmana , after knowing him.”                                                 64
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, Who would think of opposing that Raghava who is like the elephants guarding the directions, who kills enemies in war, who is with Lakshmana and who stands unperturbed like the Sun at the time of deluge with arrows as his rays.”       65
 
“Hey great monkey, please make my lord surrounded by  Lakshmana and the several army chieftains arrive here. Hey valorous monkey, make me, who is drowned in sorrow because of forever thinking about Rama, happy.”                                                             66
 
  Thus ends the thirty  seventh chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:46:17 AM

                          Thirty eighth Chapter
                                       (Giving of Choodamani[25])
(Hanuman appreciates Sita  for her noble words. She then tells him about the story of a crow attacking her and how Rama sent a Dhurba grass with manthra of Brahmasthra to kill him. She wonders why he is not doing it now.She gives her Choodamani as a memento to Hanuman so that Rama will have faith that Hanuman has indeed seen her.)
 
That chief of monkeys hearing this and being one who can analyze and understand words, became happy on hearing these words and told the following to Sita.                               1
 
“Hey holy lady who tells that which is good, whatever you have told is extremely suitable to your character  and also suitable to the humility and womanly character  of virtuous  ladies.”                                                                                                                               2
 
“Because the character of ladies is not capable  to cross the ocean of one hundred yojanas broad , making me as a vehicle.”                                                                                        3
 
“Hey lady who wears humility as an ornament, your words that, ”you would not allow the touch any other male except Rama”, which you told as your second reason  is very suitable to you who is the wife of that great man. Hey holy lady, who else except you  can tell such a sentence?”                                                                                           4-5
 
(“Inspite of the pitiful sorrow state  without bothering about her release from the clutches of Ravana, thinking only of just duty, only you can tell “I would not come with you”)
 
“Hey holy lady, whatever you have told and did in front of me , all those things would be informed immediately to Rama.”                                                                                6
 
“Hey holy lady, I told you like this with a loving and merciful mind, with a intense desire to do good to Rama in various ways.”                                                                         7
 
“I told you like this because of the difficulty in crossing the wide ocean, because of the difficulty in entering the city of Lanka and because of the faith in my strength.”       8
 
“I wanted you to be rejoined with Rama immediately  and because of intense devotion and love I told you like this and not with any other intention.”                                   9
 
“Hey holy one, because you do not have an intention of accompanying me, please give a memento so that Rama would understand the truth without any doubt.”                    10
 
Thus told by Hanuman that Sita who was like a divine lady started slowly telling the following with words mingled with tears.                                                                   11
 
“Please inform whatever I tell , which is true and which is known to him ,using the same words to my lord. “In the Chitra Koota mountains  , in the north west valley, in the shore of river Mandakini, in the hermitage blessed with fruits, roots and water , after spending time with different flowers and the aroma filled gardens and thus getting tired you were lying down with your head on my lap.””                                                                   12-14
 
“At that time one crow which was attracted by flesh attacked me with his sharp beak and I drove it away using a piece of mud .”                                                                          15
 
“But that flesh eating crow desiring for food did not leave the meat and went on attacking me and remained around there.”                                                                                   16
 
“I got angry with the bird and when I removed my  dress belt , my dress got unloosened and in that state I was seen by you.”                                                                            17
 
“I who was tired due to anger  because I was  pecked by the crow which was desirous of food was teased by you. Because of this I was very shy but in spite of that I came nearer to you and sat on your lap as you were sitting. You became happy and I was slowly consoled of my anger by you.”                                                                              18-19
 
“Oh, Lord I who was slowly wiping away the tears which made all my face wet , was understood by you as having been made very angry by the crow.”                         20
 
“Due to tiresomeness I slept on the lap of Raghava and the brother of Bharatha in turn sleep on my lap. Again the same crow reached there.”                                                    21
 
“That crow seeing me completely recovered due to my sleep on the lap of Rama suddenly came near me and wounded my breasts.”                                                                     22
 
“Like this that crow came near me several times and inflicted severe wounds and Lord Rama was made wet by the flowing drops of blood.”                                                 23
 
“That lord who was deep asleep , terror to his enemies and  very pretty even then was woken up by me who was severely attacked by the crow.”                                      24
 
“That great one seeing that my breasts were wounded became very angry and hissing like a serpent asked as follows.”                                                                                       25
 
“Hey lady who has thighs like the trunk of an elephant, who inflicted that wound on your breasts and who is playing with the very angry five headed snake?”                       26
 
“Seeing all round he saw just opposite to me that crow whose sharp nails are coated with blood.”                                                                                                                       27
 
“That crow was the son of Indra, foremost among birds and in speed was equal to the God of wind and due to this he disappeared in to the earth immediately.”              28
 
“That great one who was foremost among the intelligent with rotating angry eyes due to the crow , took a very cruel decision.”                                                                       29
“He took one Durbha from the Durbha mat on which he was sitting chanted the manthra for Brahmasthra  and that which was aimed at the bird lighted like the fire of hell.:   30
(Brahmasthra was the ultimate weapon during those times .It was got as a blessing from Lord Brahma. It was believed that once it is sent and failed no other weapon will work. Also it was believed that without inflicting an wound it cannot be recalled .Rama was blessed with Brahmasthra by Viswamithra.)
 
“He then sent the burning Durbha towards the crow. What to say, from that time that Durbha started chasing the crow in the sky.”                                                              31                             
 
“At that time that crow which was chased   went in search of protectors all over the world and what to say visited several places.”                                                                        32
 
“In spite of  wandering and searching in all the  three worlds  and being forsaken by sages, devas and its own father , it again came back to Rama.”                                  33
 
“That Kakustha who is a protector seeing the bird lying on the earth seeking his protection, though it was fit to be killed, with mercy gave protection to it.”              34   
 
“Seeing that shamed one who was lying there without  any other option, he said “Brahmasthra cannot go waste and so tell me what to do?” “                                   35   
 
“It said, “If it is so , let it take away my right eye.” And that arrow took away the right eye of the crow.”                                                                                                     36
 
“It saved itself by sacrificing its right eye and from that time the fact that crows have only one eye became well known.”                                                                                     37
 
“It offered salutations to Rama  and the king Dasaratha  and being permitted to depart by that hero , it went to its home.”                                                                                    38
 
“Hey Lord of the earth, for my sake , in case of the crow, you used Brahmasthra and why have you tolerated him who has stolen me from your custody?”                               39
 
“Hey great man, you who are greatly enthusiastic like that , take mercy on me. Hey Lord I who have taken as my Lord(protector) can be seen by you  as an orphan (i.e. without protector) “                                                                                                               40
 
“I have heard only from you that the greatest Dharma(just action)  is to remove the sorrow of others “                                                                                                   41
 
“Being my Lord, I have understood  him as as a great hero, great enthusiast, very strong man, man capable of limitless action, one who cannot be rattled by others, one who is similar to sea in looks, one who is like Indra to this earth surrounded by the sea.”       42
 
“In spite of being like this  and being greatest among archers, truthful and very strong, what is the reason for his not sending his arrows against the Rakshasas.”                43
 
“There are no Nagas nor Gandarwas  nor Asuras nor Marutganas who have sufficient strength to face a war with Rama.”                                                                           44
 
“If that great hero has at least slightest belief in me why is he not destroying the Rakshasas with his arrows.”                                                                                     45
 
“Why is it Lakshmana who is very strong, who gives pain to his enemies and who is a hero  not take me back after seeking permission from his brother.”                        46
 
“Why are both these who are like lion among men, who are as powerful as Vayu(Wind God) and Agni(Fire God) and who cannot be faced by even the Devas disregarding me?”  47
 
“Since both these two capable  and victorious ones are  not even bothered about me,   
there is no doubt that a great sin which is not known to me should have been committed by me.”                                                                                                                      48
 
Hearing these words which were told by Vaidehi with tearful eyes and which were capable of melting the mind, the great Hanuman who was the son of God of wind told the following words.                                                                                                        49
 
“Hey holy lady, I am telling you after taking oath on truth that Rama is not interested in any thing because  of the sorrow about you. Because Rama is drowned in sorrow Lakshmana also is sorrowful.”                                                                               50
 
“Hey lady without blemish, you who are a great lady was seen by me due to blessings of God  and this is not the time for sorrow for just now you are going to see the end of your sorrows.”                                                                                                                51
 
“Those two princes who are both very strong and who both are lion among men in the great wish for seeing you  are going to make the city of Lanka in to ash.”              52   
 
“Hey broad eyed lady, Raghava is going to kill the cruel Ravana along with his relatives  and take you back to his own city.”                                                                           53
 
“Please tell me those words which  should be told to Raghava, the indomitable Lakshmana, the great hero Sugreeva  and the assembled monkeys.”                     54
 
               
Thus told by Hanuman that goddess like Sita who has wilted by sorrow thus replied to Hanuman, the monkey.                                                                                              55
 
“Please give my salutations  to that great one who was given birth by the great minded Kausalya  for the good of the world and enquire about his welfare.”                    56
(Sita implies that since Kausalya gave birth to Rama for the good of the world he would not disregard her and save her)
 
“That great holy one who was born as a good son of Sumithra sacrificed because of his devotion to Rama all his garlands, his jewels , ladies who used to love him, that wealth which cannot be earned in spite of great effort in this  earth and incomparable pleasures and followed Rama after worshipping his father and mother and taking their permission and accompanied  the great Kakustha in the forest protecting him.”                     57-59
 
“That great minded , handsome great warrior who was like a lion was doing service to me like his mother and to Rama like his father.”                                                             60
 
“When I was being abducted the great hero Lakshmana was not near me Lakshmana serves the elders well and he is  Very lucky and intelligent , a prince who is similar to my father in law  and one who serves Rama constantly more than me.”                         61-62
(Sita without telling plainly expresses her anguish for sending Lakshmana to help Rama in spite of his unwillingness. She also acknowledges the fact that he worships Rama and constantly serves him.)
 
“That hero seeing whom Rama did not even remember his father is fully capable of completing any job entrusted to him.”                                                                     63
 
“That Lakshmana who is always dear to Rama , who obeys him always  who is very careful and who is a relation without any guile is one to whom enquiries of welfare should be made on my behalf.”                                                                            64
 
“Hey chief of monkeys  similar to the fact that Rama would be the cause of ending my sorrows, you are responsible for me to complete this job.”                                          65
 
“Raghava because of your effort should take all necessary steps in my case and so please tell  again and again  my Lord who is a hero, the following.”                               66
 
“I am telling on oath , hey son of Dasaratha, I would be alive for one more moth and afterwards I would not be alive.”                                                                           67
 
“Be merciful to save me from the clutches of Ravana who is a bad person and who is a base soul similar to how Kousiki was saved from Patala.”                                   68
(Kausiki was abduced by God Varuna when she was taking bath  and kept in Patala. Uchathya , her husband went to Patala and brought her back.) 
 
Then she removed her hair brooch(Jata Valli or Chooda mani) tied in her cloth and gave it to Hanuman saying, “Give this to Rama.”                                                                                   69
 
That hero Hanuman received that Jewel made of pearls from Sita and put it on his fingers and that ornament fitted to his fingers.                                                                      70
 
After wearing that pearl jewel he saluted Sita and circumbulated her and stood near silently with folded hands.                                                                                          71
 
Being present there only bodily. That Hanuman because of the great joy in seeing Sita mentally traveled to the place of Rama.                                                                     72
 
He understood that the  very precious jewel was got by super human efforts  and of inestimable value and started thinking of returning back  with full of joy like a mountain after shaken by a tempest.                                                                                          73                     
 
      Thus ends the thirty eighth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:46:44 AM
Thirty ninth Chapter
                          Thirty ninth Chapter                       
                                           (Consoling Sita)
(Sita tells him about her complete faith in him. She also is heart broken and Hanuman consoles her. She wonders how other monkeys and Rama would cross the ocean. Hanuman consoles her).
After giving the ornament to Hanuman Sita told the following,” This is a proof which is well known to Rama.”                                                                                                  1
 
“As soon as that hero Rama sees this hair brooch he would remember the three people viz. me, my mother and King Dasaratha.”                                                                    2
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, you who have been specially ordered in the beginning of this effort should think about what is to be done in the future.”                                         3
 
“Hey great monkey, even in completion of this effort you are the chief. Your capacity to carry out well thought out action would become the end of sorrows. Hey Hanuman do the job carefully and become one who ends all sorrows.”                                                  4
 
That great hero who is the son of wind God, told Vaidehi”So be it” and after saluting her by the nod of his head waited for hearing the permission to go.                                    5
 
Sita understanding that the monkey has started his journey back, told the following with wet eye lids and shaking voice.                                                                                       6
 
“Hey Hanuman , inform about my welfare to Rama and Lakshmana who are non separable.”                                                                                                                       7
 
“Hey, chief of monkeys please inform about my news to Sugreeva along with his ministers and the other great monkey chiefs in a way which is suitable to them.”         8
 
“You please try to do everything so that the great Hero Rama would pull me out of this lake of sorrow.”                                                                                                           9
 
“Inform  the famous Rama in such a way that he would see me alive  and hey Hanuman by spending only one sentence get lot of  blessings.”                                               10
 
“After hearing the happy tidings that you will inform , the son of Dasaratha’s effort in attaining me would become permanent and intense.”                                                11
 
“The great hero Raghava immediately after hearing the message that you deliver  would think of all aspects of using his valor  and would order.”                                           12
 
After hearing the above words of Sita, that monkey chief Hanuman with folded hands over his head  replied as follows.                                                                                13   
 
“That Rama(Kakustha)  who is going to win over his enemies and remove your sorrows from you    would arrive here immediately surrounded by monkey chiefs and bear chiefs.”                                                                                                                         14
 
I do not see anybody who is capable of staying alive in front of him  who  would be sending arrows like rain among men or among Asuras.”                                           15   
 
“Specially for your sake he is capable of defeating in war the Sun, the Fie God and  the God of death all alone.”                                                                                               16
 
  Hey daughter of Janaka, , it is well known that victory for Rama is due to you  and that is why he is considered fit to rule the entire earth surrounded by water.”                   17     
(“Sradhaya devo devathwam asnuthe” meaning the Gods get their godliness through their consorts is a well known saying, which is being referred by hanuman.)
             
 
Janaki after hearing the timely , wise and firm words of Hanuman respect him and told him the following words.                                                                                            18
 
Sita clearly understanding the words of Hanuman were told because of his intense devotion to his master and due to the liking she got because of that and told the following words to Hanuman was about to leave.                                                                        19 
 
“Hey hero who is capable of winning over his enemies, , if you like, please take rest in a secluded place for one day  and start your journey tomorrow.”                                  20
 
“Hey monkey by your being near to me the great sorrow of the ill fated me would get consolation for at least some time.”                                                                             21
 
“Hey chief of monkeys, even though you are going with an intention of returning back, I do not have any doubt that by that time some danger will happen to my life.”               22
 
“Hey monkey, the sorrow in not seeing you would increase a lot and would make me who has been slightly consoled more sorrowful.”                                                      23
 
“Hey hero who is the lord of monkeys , there is one doubt in me  about the monkeys and bears who are going to help you  , which should have arisen first and which is important.” 24
 
“How will that army of monkeys and bears cross this great ocean? How will the two sons of Dasaratha do it?”                                                                                                     25
 
“The power to cross this ocean is only available to the three of you who are equal viz. the God of wind, you and Garuda.”                                                                                   26
 
“Hey hero, you are the foremost among those who plan to complete a work and what trick are you going to use in this case?”                                                                       27
 
“Hey killer of the enemies, You are the only one who can achieve this job  and the fame of avenging over  the enemies would only become yours.”                                        28
 
“Coming with sufficient army , winning in war with Ravana and taking me back to my kingdom after being victorious  would bring laurels to me and him.”                           29
 
“If the great killer of enemies Kakustha can  tear to pieces Lanka by using his arrows  and take me back, that would be suitable to him.”                                                                 30
 
“So please try do all actions which are  matching to the valour  and as per the wishes of that great soul who is war hero.”                                                                                  31
 
Hanuman after hearing these words which are meaningful , suitable  and which are as per the norms of justice, as a reply told what remains to be told.                                      32
 
“Hey holy lady, Sugreeva who is the chief of armies of monkeys and bears, who is the best among monkeys and who has a stable mind, has already decided what is to be done in your case.”                                                                                                              33
 
“Hey Vaidehi, he is going to come immediately surrounded by crores of monkeys with an intention of destroying Rakshasas.”                                                                            34
 
“Those monkeys who are under his order are valorous, truthful, very strong and people who achieve what is in their mind.”                                                                             35
 
“Their travel cannot be stopped either above or below or by the side ways. They who are very strong will not wilt doing difficult tasks.”                                                         36
 
‘They who are very powerful and capable of traveling  as per the wind currents have gone round the world with its mountains and oceans several times.”                              37
(Hanuman is exaggerating to please Sita. All the monkeys with him expressed their inability to cross the ocean.He himself before entering the city has told only three monkeys are capable of entering it.) 
 
“In the court of Sugreeva  there are many more monkeys greater or equal to me. There are none there who are inferior to me.”                                                                    38
(Again an exaggeration to console Sita)
 
“Ordinary people are normally sent as emissaries. Great ones are not sent. If I have reached this place what to say about the others who are much stronger.”              39
 
“So do not be sad. Let your sorrow be removed. The monkey soldiers would reach Lanka in one jump.”                                                                                                           40
 
“Those two lion among men  who are like the risen Sun and Moon, and are very strong, would climb on my back and would be reaching near you.”                                 41
 
“Rama and Lakshmana who are great  heroes  , who are great among men and  who never separate from each other will come here and are going to make this city fly using their arrows.”                                                                                                                  42
 
“ Hey pretty one who is blessed,, that Raghava who is of the clan of Raghu, would kill Ravana along with his crowd , and is going to return to his city along with you.”     43
 
“So be consoled. Good would happen to you. Wait for the proper time. Within a short time you would be able to see Sri Rama wo is like a burning fire.”                          44
 
“When this chief of Rakshasa is killed along with his sons, ministers and relatives, you would join Rama like Rohini joins Chandra.”                                                           45
 
“Hey, Maithili, Hey holy lady , you wold soon reach the other shore of this ocean of sorrows. And soon Ravana would be killed by Rama himself.”                              46
 
That Hanuman who is the son of Wind God thus consoled Vaidehi  and with an intention of the journey spoke further to Vaidehi.                                                                    47
 
“You are going to see soon, Raghava who is very courageous and who kills his enemies and Lakshmana who stands at the gatesd of Lanka along with his bows. “              48
 
“Hey, holy lady, You would soon see several companies of monkeys who  roar in the valley of Malaya mountain in Lanka and  who are themselves equal to mountains and clouds.  And also see here assembled many monkeys who are as valorous as tiger and lion., who are like the king of elephants, who would fight using their claws and teeth and who are very numerous .”                                                                                         49-50
 
“That Rama pained iraw spots by the very strong arrow called love  does not know any pleasures like the elephant attacked by lions.”                                                           51
 
“Hey holy lady, please do not cry. Let your mind be not troubled by sorrow. Like Indrani who is with Indra You would be with your lord and loved by him.”                          52
 
“Who is there greater than Rama and equal to Lakshmana? Those two brothers who are like fire and wind are your protectors.”                                                                       53
 
“Hey, holy lady you need not live for a long time  in this horrible country which is peopled by crowds of Rakshasas  . There is not much time left for your Lord’s arrival.. Please be patient till I reach back.”                                                                          54
 
            Thus ends the thirty ninth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 18, 2008, 09:47:06 AM
Fortieth Chapter
                          Fortieth Chapter
                         (Giving leave for Hanuman to depart)                       
( As Hanuman prepares to go Sita becomes further sad, tells him abut one more incident which happened between her and Rama and breaks down.Hanuman further consoles her and is given leave to go by Sita)
 
That Sita who is like a divine maiden  , after hearing that great ones words , told the following words which were good for her.                                                          1
 
“Hey monkey, after hearing your dear words, I am as happy as the dry land with half germinated seeds when it receives a rain.”                                                       2
 
“Please take mercy on me  and do suitable steps so that I who is terribly tired because of sorrow can fulfill my wish and be able to touch the greatest among men.”                 3
 
“Hey best among the group of monkeys, after informing as a sign the fact that due to anger he send a graa to remove one eye of the crow, please also tell Rama the following.”  4
 
“When my Tilaka(dot applied in the forehead by married woman) was erased , you playfully put on my forehead a Tilaka with a laterite stone>Please remember this.”  5
(Unlike the story told earlier , this is a fact known only to Rama and Sita and has romantic overtones.So Sita gives only indication so that Rama will understand that the  message comes from Sita. Another version of the story is that when Sita misplaced her Tilaka making set, both of them started searching for it with a bet that the one who finds it will get a fondling by the other.)
 
“How are you who is equal to Devendra and Varuna able to bear the fact that I have been abducted and am living amidst Rakshasis?”                                                          6
 
“Hey holy one, this Choodamani has always been protected with love by me  and whenever I am sad I use to look at it and get consoled as if I saw you.”               7                   
                                                             
‘This Choodamani which had its origin in water and which gives happiness  is being sent to you by me and I cannot live now with sorrow.”                                                 8-9
 
“I was tolerating sorrow which cannot be borne and heart breaking words of cruel Rakshasis for your sake.”                                                                                      10
 
“Hey , killer of enemies, with great deal of pain, I would hold on to my life for one more month. After one month I would not live without you.”                                        11-12
 
“This king of Rakshasa is a cruel one and his intentions towards me are not good. If I see that you are making delay , I would not live for one more second.”                        13
 
After hearing these words of Vaidehi narrated  with tears flowing from her eyes  and full of self pity ,the resplendent Hanuman who was the son of Wind God told as follows.  14
 
“Hey holy lady, I am truly telling on oath to you that Rama because of the sorrow caused by your separation, has forsaken everything. Due to the fact that  Rama is plunged in sorrow. Lakshmana also is sad.”                                                                               15
 
“Hey queen among ladies, I have been fortunate in seeing you and so this is not the time for sorrow for you would be seeing the end of sorrow immediately.”                     16
 
“Those two blessed princes who are lion among men, with the anxiety to see you are going to turn Lanka in to ashes.”                                                                            17
 
“Hey broad eyed lady, those two belonging to the clan of Raghu, are going to kill Ravana and his relatives in war and are going to take you back to their city.”                    18
 
“Hey lady without blemishes. Suppose you have some more  memento which would make Rama remember his love , please give it to me.”                                           19
 
Sita addressing Hanuman told. “Hey valorous one, the memento given by me is the best among what I can give. , Hey, Hanuman, immediately on seeing this my ornament of hair, Rama would consider your words as believable.”                                           20
 
That monkey chief Hanuman understanding that it is a great ornament, after saluting her by his head, waited for his time to depart.                                                                  21
 
That daughter of Janaka with face wet with tears and who was in a sorrowful state seeing the monkey chief  who was interested in jumping up and consequently increasing the size of his body told the following words with tears and a stuttering voice.                     22
 
“Hey , Hanuman, please inform my welfare to those two brothers who are similar to lion, to Sugreeva and his ministers and all others without fail.”                                        23
 
“Hey chief of monkeys , as soon you reach in front of Rama inform inform him of my very great sorrow  and my being troubled by Rakshasas .Let your path be without any problems.”                                                                                                                24
 
That monkey having been recognized as an emissary by the princess, having completed the job he intended, and very happy because of that,  and understanding that very little is left to be done,  reached the northern direction mentally.                                      25
 
 
 
            Thus ends the fortieth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:03:33 PM
Forty first Chapter
 
                          Forty first  Chapter
                                  (Destruction of Asoka forest)
 
(Hanuman decides that having come to Lanka he should gather about the strength and weaknesses of the enemy before going from there. This would nmean attracting Ravana to send his powerful troops at him. With this end in view he destroys the Asoka forest)
 
Thus praised by Sita and worshipped and respected by her that monkey started to depart but moving away from that place started thinking.                                                   1
 
“This black eyed lady has been visited  and very little is left for the things to be done. It is time now to leave out the first three methods and I feel that the fourth method is the best.”                                                                                                                           2
(The four methods are Sama(peaceful), bhedha(creating differences) , Dhana (trying to bribe) and Dhanda(violent physical fight)
 
“In case of Rakshasa Sama(peace) will not work and Dhana (bribe) will not work against people who are very rich and these strong people would not fall prey to Bheda(splitting) and I feel at this stage only my heroism is the better option.”                               3
 
“In this case there is no other option apart from fight for if by war some of the Rakshasa die other Rakshasas would become soft.”                                                                  4
 
“If one is ordeder to do a job necessary to be completed if he does many other jobs without conflict to the job ordered to do , then he is the person who is to be employed.”    5
 
“In this world just one method would not work in simplest of jobs and so he who knows several methods to complete a job  is the one who is expert in doing it.”                   6
 
“When I am here if I gain knowledge about the strength of the enemy  and the tricks that they employ in war and return pleased with myself to the place of the king of monkeys  then only I would have been deemed to have completed the job thoroughly.”           7
 
“I should think , how I should easily engage myself in war with the Rakshasas for then only the ten headed one would make me fight with his army.”                                   8
 
“If that happens  then I would be able to meet   Ravana along with his ministers and chieftains  and judge about his strength and understand his wishes and return back happily.”                                                                                                                  9
 
“ This garden resembling divine garden which is attracting the mind and the eye , which has several trees and climbers  and which is a great forest belongs to that sinner.”    10
 
“Like the fire destroying dried wood  I should destroy this  and once it is destroyed the ten headed one would become very angry.”                                                              11
 
“Then only the chief of Rakshasas would send an army consisting of horses, chariots and elephants armed with three headed spears, long spears and deadly chains and this would turn n to a big war.”                                                                                                   12
 
“I who has intolerable (by the enemies) prowess would engage myself in war with the very powerful Rakshasas , destroy that army and would return back happily to the place of the monkey king.”                                                                                                 13
 
That son of god of wind exuding with great power  then became agitated like wind and by the speed of his great thighs started breaking the trees.                                    14
 
That heroic Hanuman then destroyed that private ladies garden  which was full of several exuberant birds and several trees.                                                                          15
 
That garden with the broken trees, filled up fountains and powdered peaks became a place one would not like to see.                                                                           16
 
That forest filled with cries of several types of birds , lakes made out of shape and  faded red leaf buds became filled with dried trees and climbers  as if it was attacked by forest fire.                                                                                                                         17
 
Those climbing plants with the broken fences  looked like women trembling out of fear. 18
 
With destroyed houses made of climbers, broken art museums, with crushed big snakes, with many violent animals and  with broken granite stone houses that great forest looked as it had lost its normal appearance.                                                                         19
 
That very special enclosure  of the garden made by the climbing Asoka plants meant for the enjoyment of women of the ten faced one  was full of broken and weeping plants. 20
 
After doing an intolerable act to the mind of heroic and rich Ravana that monkey , full of valor sat on the main gate expecting to fight a war alone with several very strong Rakshasas.                                                                                                                         21
 
        Thus ends the forty first chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:04:05 PM
Forty second Chapter
 
                          Forty second  Chapter     
                                (Killing of the Rakshasa Kinkaras)
    (Rakshasis enquire with Sita about Hanuman but she refuses to tel any thing about him ,They then inform Ravana who sends the eighty thousand strong army of Kinkaras. Hanuman kills them all with an iron rod. Ravana then sends the son of Prahastha  to catch Hanuman.)
 
Then because of the loud shrieking of birds and sound of breaking of trees all those who Lanka were fear struck.                                                                                                    1
 
The animals and birds which were running made horrible noise and because of that bad omens happened to the Rakshasas.                                                                               2
 
That time those bad looking Rakshasis lost their sleep and saw the garden which was destroyed as well as the great monkey hero.                                                             3
 
Hanuman who was very courageous, who was very strong and who had bid arms seeing them assumed a very big form so that the Rakshasis become afraid.                       4
 
Then those Rakshasis seeing that the monkey was very strong  and having a very big body asked the daughter of Janaka as follows.                                                        5
 
“Who is this? Whose is this? Where from is it coming? For what purpose has it come here? It would be nice if we know. Not only that how did you converse with like we converse with you?”                                                                                                6
 
“Hey broad eyed one. Hey lady withblack tipped eye, is it not true that this talked to you?
Hey lucky one, please tell us truthfully. You would not get in to any problems.”     7
 
Then Sita who is of good character and who is pretty all over replied as follows.” Why should I enter in to the affairs of Rakshasas who can assume any form they like?”      8
 
“You yourself should understand What action this one is going to do. It is no doubt that only thief can without mistake find out the intentions of a way farer.”                          9
 
“I understand that this one who has come here has the ability to assume any form which is the character of Rakshasas. I do not know about his ability. I also am afraid in his case.” 10
(The stanzas 8-10 above are one of the controversial parts of Ramayana. All the commentators agree that Sita told a lie to protect Hanuman. By one of the very famous saying of  Sanskrit, it is all right to tell a lie to save ones life. Some others have commented that she has done this out of fear. But stanzas in other parts of Ramayana clearly indicate that she is fearless. Then why did she do it , is another question which is very difficult to answer)
 
Hearing the words of  Vaidehi the Rakshasis were aghast  and some ran hurriedly and some went to meet Ravana to inform him.                                                                 11
 
Those ugly faced Rakshasis started describing about the monkey, who can take different forms, in front of Ravana.                                                                                             12
 
“Hey king, in the middle of Asoka forest there is a monkey which is greatly valorous and which has a great form , which is talking to Sita.”                                                        13
 
“That doe eyed Sita who is the daughter of Janaka did not like to tell about him to us, in spite of our enquiring in various ways.”                                                                        14
 
“Is he an emissary of Indra? Is he an emissary of Kubhera? Is it possible that he has been send by Rama to search Sita?”                                                                                      15
 
“Your forest of the harem, which is surprisingly pretty and thus a stealer of hearts, and which is filled with many animals was completely destroyed by it.”                          16
 
“There is no place in that forest which has not been destroyed by it. But it has not  even touched  the place where Sita the daughter of Janaka is sitting.”                               17
 
“ Has it been done to protect Janaki or has it been done because he became tired, we do not know. But where is tiresomeness to that  monkey  and the fact is she has been saved by the monkey. “                                                                                                              18
 
“That luxuriously growing  Simshuba tree alone below which she sits of her own accord has been left without touching by that monkey.”                                                            19
 
“Kindly be pleased to accord a severe punishment to that terrible one which talked with Sita and which destroyed the forest.”                                                                             20
 
“Hey lord of Rakshasas, who would dare to talk with that Sita who has been brought by you out of desire? Can the life stay for long with such a one?”                                       21
 
Hearing the words of the Rakshasis, Ravana the king of Rakshasas , rolled his eyes in anger and burnt like the sacrificial fire.                                                                         22
 
From the two eyes of the angry one tears dropped as if oil drops mixed with flames dropped from two lit lamps.                                                                                          23
 
That shining one gave order to destroy the pride of Hanuman to Rakshasa called Kinkara who are similar to him and are valorous.                                                                      24
(“Kinkara” means lowly servants)
 
Those valorous Kinkaras  who had very big belly . ,  who had very big teeth and who were horrible looking were eighty thousand in number . All of them with a desire for war  and with a desire  to catch the monkey left the house armed with thorny sticks and an arm called “Kotta”.                                                                                                             25-26
 
They moved very fast  and reached the monkey who was  sitting on the tower and waiting and opposed him like insects oppose the fire.                                                             27
 
They hit the monkey chief with strange maces, gold bordered pestles and arrows similar to the sun.                                                                                                                     28
 
They holding spears and Thomara stood strongly surrounding Hanuman armed with thorn sticks, long spears and tridents.                                                                                    29
 
The mountain like Hanuman with immeasurable power  beat his tail on the floor  and made war like sound.                                                                                                 30
 
Hanuman the son of wind-god  made his body to a very big size  and made Lanka shake by his voice  and clapped his hands with enthusiasm.                                               31
 
In the resounding echo of the sound of clapping of Hanuman , birds fell on the floor out of fear and Hanuman announced loudly as follows.                                                  32
 
“Victory to the very strong Rama and similarly  victory to the very strong Lakshmana. and victory to the king Sugreeva who is protected by Raghava.                                 33
 
“I am Hanuman, the son of wind god, exterminator of enemies  and the servant of Rama
who is the king of Kosala and who can carry out any job without effort.”                   34
 
“Even thousands of  Ravana cannot face me who fights wars with stones  and trees  and hits in thousand ways.”                                                                                                   35
 
“Even when all the Rakshasas are staring , I can shake the city of Lanka , salute the princess of Mithila and return back after achieving my wish.”                                     36
 
Because of his loud announcement those Rakshasas became fear struck  and they saw Hanuman high above like the dark clouds in the sky.                                                  37
 
Those Rakshasa became bold by thinking about the order of their lord  and beat Hanuman using different type of weapons from different directions.                                          38
 
That very valorous Hanuman was surrounded by those heros in all the four directions. He took huge iron rod  the tower and using the same iron rod killed those Rakshasas.       39
 
That valorous son of wind-god taking that rod circled the sky and like Garuda , the son of Vinutha holding the snake and rising in the sky.                                                           40                     
(Garuda on whom Lord Vishnu rides is the son of sage Kashyapa and his wife Vinutha)
 
That hero who was the son of wind-god after killing Kinkaras who are Rakshasa heroes  desiring for more war  again went near the tower.                                                        41
 
Then some of the Rakshasas who were far away from the danger  informed Ravana about the killing of all Kinkaras.                                                                                            42
 
That Ravana ,who was the king of Rakshasas  , hearing that his great army has been destroyed , blinked rolling his eyes and sent the son of Prahastha who was valorous, who cannot be faced by any one  and who cannot be won over in war.                             43
 (Prahastha is one of the great ministers of Ravana)                           
      Thus ends the forty second chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:04:38 PM
Forty third Chapter
 
                          Forty third  Chapter     
                            (heralding  the victory of Sugreeva)   
(Having destroyed the aska forest, Hanuman decided to destroy a very huge stage nearby. The hundred guards of the stage wage a war against him and are killed.. He then heralds the arrival of Sugreeva along with his monkey army who are going to destroy the city of  Lanka and the Rakshasas living there.)       
 
After killing the kinkaras Hanuman started thinking.                                               1
 
“I have destroyed this forest. But I have not destroyed this stage which is like a tower. So I will destroy this stage also. “ Deciding like this in his mind, Hanuman who was the son of wind-god and a monkey chieftain showing his strength ,  on the  jumped and climbed  on the great stage which was as tall as the peaks of Meru mountain.                           2-3
 
That monkey chief Hanuman in spite of having climbed on the mountain like stage was as lustrous like another rising sun.                                                                               4
 
Having reached the great stage which cannot be even neared by others , Hanuman became  lustrous like Lakshmi(Goddess of wealth) and appeared like the Pari Yathra mountain.                                                                                                                     5
 
That son of Wind-god assumed a huge body because of his power and beat the floor with his tail as if he was filling Lanka by his sound.                                                    6
 
Because of Hanuman’s great sound  of enthusiasm which was ear splitting , birds became afraid and fell down and the guards of the stage became dumb struck.                     7
 
“Victory to the great archer Rama and Lakshmana who is very strong. Also victory to the king Sugreeva who is protected by Raghava.”                                                             8
 
I. Hanuman, the son of wind-god  who is the destroyer of enemy soldiers  has the job of taking away problems and am the servant of Rama , who is the king of Kosala.”       9
 
“Fighting with stones and trees in the battle field , for me even thousands of  Ravana are not equivalent enemies.”                                                                                              10
 
“Even while all the Rakshasa are staring ,  I would create turmoil in Lanka , salute Mythili and return back after fulfilling my desire.”                                                      11
 
The chief of monkeys who was on the top of the stage heralded like this to the guards of the stage  and roared with horrible noise so that the Rakshasa are fear struck.             12
 
Hearing this great declaration one hundred powerful guards of the stage came out. They surrounded Maruthi and they rotated and threw at him several arrows , spears , swords , axes.                                                                                                                              13
 
They beat the monkey chief with several types of maces, gold edged pestles  and thunder like arrows.                                                                                                                    14
 
That crowd of Rakshasa surrounding the monkey chief appeared as if they are a whirlpool in the river Ganges. Angry because of this that son of wind-god assumed a very horrible form.                                                                                                             15-16
 
That Hanuman who was the son of wind-god  and who was very strong  suddenly broke away a golden sculpted pillar of that stage. He rotated that pillar in several ways and because of this fire was produced and the stage caught fire.                                   17-18
 
Seeing the stage which has caught fire that monkey chief rotated that pillar still faster  in several ways.                                                                                                             19
 
Similar to Indra killing Asuras by his Vajrayudha  he killed several Rakshasas and becoming very pleased he heralded victory as follows.                                               20
 
“We as well as several monkeys who are similar to me and some who are stronger than me  and thousands  powerful monkey soldiers who are working under Sugreeva  have been sent  and they are searching throughout the world.”                                      21-22
 
“Some of them are as strong as ten elephants, some ten times more powerful than that and some as powerful as thousand elephants.”                                                         23
 
“Some of them are as strong as the tide of great flood and some ten times more powerful Some of them are as strong as Garuda  and some of them as strong as wind.” 24
 
“There are also some monkey chiefs among them whose strength is immeasurable.”   25
 
“These people who use their teeth and nails as weapons ,  are  followed by lakhs and crores of monkeys who surround the king Sugreeva who is the killer of all of you and are going to arrive here.”                                                                                                      26
 
“Having sought the enmity of the great one belonging to the Ikshuvaku clan , this city of  Lanka will not be there, nor you will be there and nor Ravana.”                                   27
 
 
        Thus ends the forty third chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:05:03 PM
Forty fourth Chapter
 
                          Forty fourth  Chapter     
                                        ( killing of Jambu Mali)
(The very valorous and powerful Jambumali (son of Prahastha) who could wound Hanuman in several places was killed with lot of effort by Hanuman)
 
The very strong Jambu Mali who was the son of Prahastha  who has very big teeth having been sent by the king of Rakshasas started armed with bows and arrows.      1
 
He , who wore a red cloth in which flowers were drawn, who wore garlands, who had round rolling eyes, who was difficult to defeat in war, who was burning like the Trikoota mountains, who was like a very big cloud, who had huge hands, head and shoulders, who had very big teeth, who had very big face, who was very fast, who had lot of enthusiasm, who was very strong, who was greatly heroic  who had sound similar to thunder and Vajrayudha and who had pretty arrows similar to the arrows of Indra, came very fast holding and twinkling a bow which made sound like Vajarayudha and thunder.  2-5
 
The royal twang made by his bow suddenly filled all sided  and the sky.              6
 
He who was like mars by his luster , who was like the rising sun, and who was protected by a chain coat made of copper , shouted , “ Stop, stop”.                                          7
 
Hanuman seeing him in his front,. coming forward  riding  in a chariot drawn by zebras , Hanuman became happy and roared like a lion.                                                          8
 
That Jambumali who had very long arms  wounded that great monkey  who was sitting on the top of the entry gate  with his sharp arrows.                                                    9
 
He pierced that Monkey chieftain  in the hand by ten arrows, in the head by one burning arrow and in the face by crescent like arrows.                                                           10
 
That red face of Hanuman pierced by the arrows  looked like a red hibiscus flower opened by the rays of the autumn sun.                                                                         11
 
That red face of hanuman became more red by the blood and shined like a big red hibiscus flower existing in the sky and made wet by the drops of red sandal wood drops. 12
 
That great monkey being wounded by the arrows of Rakshasa became very angry.       13
 
Then the great soldier Hanuman saw a very broad  and big stone near by and he uprooted it and threw it with great force.                                                                                       14
 
The Rakshasa became angry and destroyed it using ten arrows.                                    15
 
That very powerful and great hero Hanuman seeing that his effort was wasted uprooted a huge sala tree and started rotating it.                                                                            16
 
Seeing that the monkey rotating the sala tree as a strong one , that very strong Jambumali send several arrows at him.                                                                                            17
 
He pierced the sala tree with four arrows, wounded the hands of the monkey with five arrows, his chest by one arrow and middle of his chest by ten arrows.                        18
 
Wounded all over the body  by those arrows, Hanuman became very angry and took the same pestle and started rotating it .                                                                              19
 
That very fast and very strong Hanuman rotated the pestle with great speed  and beat at the broad chest of Jambumali.                                                                                    20
 
Because of this his head disappeared and so did his arms , knees , bows, chariot and horses. His arrows also disappeared.                                                                          21
 
Beat strongly by Hanuman, that great warrior Jambumali after loosing his limbs and ornaments fell dead on the earth.                                                                               22
 
Ravana hearing about the death of Jambumali  and similarly about the killing of the very strong Kinkaras became very angry with blood shot eyes.                                       23
 
That king of Rakshasas after the death of the very strong Jambumali , rotated his eyes due to anger  and immediately ordered the very valorous ministers sons to go.                     24
 
        Thus ends the forty fourth  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:05:30 PM
Forty fifth Chapter
 
                          Forty fifth  Chapter     
                              Killing of the seven ministers sons
(Hanuman killed the seven sons of ministers who waged a war against him along with a huge army. Rivers of blood was seen all over Lanka and citizens of Lanka became very sad.)
Those seven sons of ministers who shined like the seven tongued fire, who were very strong, who has leaned the art of archery properly, who were great among archers and who were greatly valorous started from their homes because they were ordered to, surrounded by a very large army  in chariots which  had golden windows, which had flag poles full of flags and which made sounds like the cloud. Each of them wanted the victory to be theirs   and were holding bows made of molten gold which appeared as if they were lightning and made sounds from the m.                                          1-4
 
Their mothers , relations and friends ,  knowing that Kinkaras have been killed ,were terribly upset because of sorrow.                                                                          5
 
Each of them competing with each other to be in the front and wearing ornaments made of gold prepared themselves for was and neared Hanuman sitting near the gate.     6
 
Those cloud like Rakshasas  coming with the thundering sound of chariots, send rains of arrows like thick clouds.                                                                                              7
 
At that time Hanuman covered by the raining arrows  looked like a mountain hidden by rain.                                                                                                                              8
 
The fast moving monkey rose and traveled in the clear sky  and wasted the arrows as well as the speeding chariots.                                                                                                 9
 
That hero playing in the sky with those great archers  appeared as if he was god of wind  in the cloud filled sky.                                                                                                     10
 
That heroic Hanuman by making horror stricken sound made that great army shiver and soon showed his valor against that army.                                                                      11
 
Hanuman, the winner of enemies , killed some by beating with his hand, some by legs, some by fists, some by tearing with nails some by crushing with his chest and legs and some died by simply hearing the roar of Hanuman.                                                 12-13
 
When they fell on the earth after they were killed the entire army full of fear ran in ten different directions.                                                                                                    14
 
Elephants trumpeted making ugly sound, horses fell down on the earth , and the platform of chariots, flags  and umbrellas of broken chariots covered the entire earth.           15
 
Then by the blood shed every where on the way rivers of blood were noticed  and the entire Lanka cried heartbroken with several sounds.                                                  16
 
That monkey who was a great hero  and a great warrior  after killing the roaring Rakshasas went and sat on the tower with a wish to fight with more Rakshasas.        17
 
 
        Thus ends the forty fifth  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:05:58 PM
Forty sixth Chapter
 
                          Forty sixth  Chapter     
                                 Killing of the five army-commanders
(Ravana who was perturbed send his five army army-commander advising them to be careful to catch and bring Hanuman. He told them that he knew several warrior monkeys but none of them equaled this monkey in prowess. Those five army-army-commanders along with their army was killed by Hanuman)
 
Hearing about the killing of the sons of ministers , Ravana without making others know about his thoughts  took a very suitable decision.                                                         1
 
That ten headed one,  facing the five army-army-commanders Virupaksha, Yupaksha , Praghasa,  Durdhara the Rakshasa and Basakarna , who were all greatly learned in the art of war, who had enthusiasm in biding and bringing Hanuman, who had the speed of wind in their war, ordered as follows:-                                                                                             2-3               
 
He told, “Hey, Army-commanders, You please start along with a huge army accompanied by horses, chariots, elephants. Let that monkey be punished.”                                      4
 
“When you near that monkey you should definitely be  careful. Not only that you also should use proper techniques to suit the time and place.”                                           5
 
“Thinking by his actions, I do not consider him as an ordinary monkey. Whatever way you think , it is a huge devil with lot of strength. It should have been created by Indra through incessant prayer just to oppose us.”                                                                 6
 
“When all of you join together with me, Nagas, Yakshas, Gandarwas, Devas, Asuras and Sages have been defeated.”                                                                                             7
 
“It is possible that they would play some trick against us.This definitely is that. There is no doubt about it. Use all your strength and catch hold of it and tie it.”                          8
 
“Do not make a poor estimate of  that Monkey who is very heroic a. For I have seen other very great warrior monkeys like Bali with Sugreeva, the very strong Jambhavan, their army-commander Neela, and others like Dwividha. But none of them have this great speed. nor do they have this luster, nor heroism, nor wisdom , nor the strong capacity and nor the power to assume any form.”                                                                         9-11
(In Uttara Kanda, there is a story that Bali simply caught hold of Ravana and took him along with him once.It seems he tied Ravana to the rope holding cradle of Angadha.Later at the request of Brahma , he released him .It is mentioned that the only other man who defeated Ravana was Kartha Veeryarjuna, who was in turn killed by Parasurama.)
 
“I think it is a very great devil which has assumed the shape of monkey. You have lot of effort and stop its jumping.”                                                                                 12
 
“All people among Devas, Asuras an men including Indra cannot stand before you in war. This is definitely true.”                                                                                   13
 
“In spite of that the expert who desires victory in war , has to take great efforts to protect his soul, because in war victory is never definite.”                                                  14
 
All  of them who had luster like fire , who were very intelligent and  who were greatly valorous accepted the advice of their master and started for war with chariots, vigorous elephants, very fast horses, and other army armed with several types of  weapons .  15-16
 
Then those warriors saw that great monkey who was shining like the rising sun with its natural rays.                                                                                                               17
 
All of them as soon as they saw him, who was exuberant , who was very courageous, who was very strong, who was very intelligent , who had assumed a very big form . who was very wise and who was sitting at the entrance of the tower, surrounded him from all sides  and opposed him with several great weapons.                                             18-19
 
Durdhara shot At the head of Hanuman, five  arrows made of steel  which were hurting, sharp, black like Uthpala(black plant) and  having red ends,                                    20
 
Hurt by the five piercing arrows, he rose in the sky with a roar which could be heard in all the ten directions.                                                                                               21
 
Then the very strong and great warrior Durdhara who was sitting in a chariot and who had connected arrows in his bow neared continuously shooting very sharp arrows at him.      22
 
That monkey approached him who was raining arrows from the sky, like the wind at the end of rainy season nears the raining cloud.                                                                   23
 
Then that clever son of wind-god , who was attacked by Durdhara, increased in size more than before  and roared with a huge sound.                                                                    24
 
That very intelligent monkey rose up to a very great height in the sky and suddenly jumped on the chariot of Durdhara like the fire of thunder.                                            25
 
Then that Durdhara left his chariot with eight dead horses and whose axle was broken and fell out lifeless.                                                                                                        26
 
Seeing him lying dead on the floor , Virupaksha and Yupaksha , who are unperturbed and who can destroy their enemies became very angry  and attacked him.                         27
 
Those two who were raising very fast in the clear sky  hit the Big handed monkey who was standing , with thorned maces.                                                                               28
 
He who was very strong  and equal in valour to Garuda , became very angry  and after clearing them away jumped on the earth.                                                                      29
 
That monkey who was the son of wind-god saw a Sala tree , uprooted it and hit those two warriors with it and killed them.                                                                                    30
 
Then Praghasa seeing that the strong monkey has killed all the three of them , opposed the monkey with great anger and force.                                                                          31
 
The great hero Bhasakarna from one side took a spear and became very angry at the unperturbed and famous monkey chief.                                                                        32
 
Bhasakarna pierced the great monkey by his spear  and Praghasa pierced him with a long handed sharp spear.                                                                                                       33
 
That monkey wounded by those two was angry with all his hair getting blood soaked  and looked like the shining young sun.                                                                                34
 
That monkey chief and great warrior Hanuman uprooted a peak of mountain which was full of animals, snakes and trees and killed the two rakshasas.                                     35
 
After killing those five army army-commanders  , then destroyed their remaining army.      36
 
Like the thousand eyed Indra opposing the rakshasas  that monkey killed horses by  horses, elephants  by elephants , soldiers by  soldiers and chariots by chariots.             37
 
Covered fully by the dead elephants , dead horses , axle broken big chariots  and dead Rakshasas  , the earth became path less.                                                                         38
 
Then the monkey chief  after killing those chiefs of army  along with their soldiers  returned back to the gate  and waited there similar to the God of death waiting to kill the people.                                                                                                                           39
 
         
        Thus ends the forty sixth   chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:06:30 PM
Translated by P.R.Ramachander
 
                          Forty -seventh  Chapter     
                                      Killing of Aksha Kumara
(This chapter deals with the ferocious war of Aksha Kumara, the second son of Ravana and Hanuman, in which Aksha Kumar is ultimately killed)
 
Then that king Ravana seeing that Hanuman has killed five army-commanders and army along with vehicles, saw in front of him, with affection his son Aksha who was enthusiastic for war.                                                                                                           1
 
Enthused by the eye examination of Ravana he stood up in the assembly holding a special bow made of gold and appeared as if he was the sacrificial fire kindled by the offerings of Brahmins.                                                                                                                  2
 
Afterwards he, who was a valorous Rakshasa hero climbed up a huge chariot which was covered all over with gold and which had the luster of young sun and departed to fight the great monkey.                                                                                                      3
 
He who was equal to Devas climbed in the fully complete chariot, which was got by him by rigorous prayers, which was pretty because of the covering by molten gold, which had flag poles, which had flag inlaid by precious stones, which was pulled by eight very fast moving horses, which could not even be attacked by devas or asuras, which could travel anywhere without being blocked, which was shining like sun, which could travel in the sky, which had several quivers, which had a platform in which eight swords were hung, which had been stored properly with spears and thomaras, , which was equipped with all necessary things, which was shining like sun and which  was pulled by golden rope similar to sun and moon, and departed from there.                                                 4-6
 
He who filled the  sky and the mountain clad earth , with the sound made by horses, elephants and very big chariots   along with a unified army neared the intelligent monkey who was sitting on the tower gate.                                                                                7
 
That Aksha who had lion like stare, nearing that monkey who had the stability of the fire during deluge in killing people, out of respect to him born because of wonder, raised his head and looked at the monkey  with respect.                                                             8
 
That very strong prince, understanding the great monkey’s speed and valour towards his enemies and estimating his own strength, started increasing in size like the sun at the end of winter.                                                                                                                     9
 
Aksha who was standing opposite the monkey, well understanding his stable valour which cannot be prevented from any one, became angry but set his attention properly, and kindled Hanuman  by three sharp arrows.                                                    10
 
Taking the arrows in his hand and holding the bow, that Aksha seeing that the monkey is not tired at all and that he was capable of defeating his enemies ,  started thinking with a perturbed mind.                                                                                              11
 
That great warrior, wearing medallions, armlets and pretty ear studs made of gold attacked the monkey. The fight between those two was unequal and made even the devas and Asuras nervous.                                                                                                     12
 
Witnessing the fight between the prince and the monkey the earth rattled, Sun faded, wind did not move, mountains trembled, sky roared and ocean churned.                  13
 
Then that hero who knew how to find proper aim, how to place the arrows on the bow and how to send them send again three arrows which had very sharp points, which had golden handle, which were dipped in poison and which were guided by feathers aimed at the head of the monkey.                                                                                                  14
 
That Hanuman not in the least affected by those arrows send at the same time, aimed at his head which was decorated by   the ray like arrows, with eyes from which blood was dripping and  with the luster of just emerged sun, appeared as if he was really the sun along with its rays.                                                                                                        15
 
Afterwards Hanuman who was the minister of the king of monkeys staring at the darling son of the king who was in the field of war armed with several sharp weapons as well as several bows, got ready for the war and roared greatly.                                                16
 
Then that strong and valorous Hanuman with increasing anger and appearing like the Sun atop the Mandhara mountain burnt Aksha Kumara who was accompanied by the army and who was having several vehicles to ride, by the fire of his eyes.               17
 
Because of that, he who was a Rakshasa cloud along with a rainbow like bow used to shoot arrows, rained several arrows like a cloud raining on a mountain, on the mountain like monkey chief.                                                                                    18
 
 Seeing Aksha kumara as of great valour in the war and as increasing heroism and power with passage of time, the monkey who was as powerful as the cloud roared with happiness in the war.                                                                                                  19
 
That Aksha becoming proud of his valour because of childishness, became very angry and with red shot eyes, fell on the monkey who does not have any one equal to him as if he was falling on a well covered with grass.                                                                20
(He fell for him out of ignorance of real facts.)
 
That Hanuman hurt by the arrows sent with great force by him (Aksha) roared like a royal thunder. That son of wind god spreading his palms and thighs jumped on to the sky in his fearful form.                                                                                                     21
 
He who is very strong, who is the best among Rakshasas, who is filled with fame and who is the greatest among those who drive in the chariot, ran and opposed him showering arrows at Hanuman who was jumping and this was like a rain of stones on the mountain.  22
 
That monkey chief, who was a great warrior and who had the speed of the mind, kicked off the arrows and entered within the arrows , like wind and came out and traveled in the sky and was in the path of the sky like the wind.                                                    23
 
That son of wind God stared with respect at Aksha, who was using the bow, who was desirous of war and who was covering the sky with sharp and great arrows and thought in his mind thus.                                                                                                         24
 
That monkey, who was capable of analyzing the result of actions and having a chest severely wounded by the arrows shot by the valorous prince who was great ,roared and thought in his mind about the actions to be done in the war.                                  25
 
“This one is very strong, and he has the luster of the baby sun, and does all great deeds like a grown up man. My mind does not allow to kill him (Aksha)who is an expert in all aspects of war, now, itself.”                                                                                    26
 
“There is no doubt that he is extremely strong, great in his valour, does not get rattled in adversity, patiently opposes even in war and not only that he is fit for praise by the efficiency of his work by Nagas, Yakshas and even sages.”                                   27
 
“He is the one whose mind is elated by enthusiasm and valour and he opposes me and stares at me. His valor which is fast paced would even make the minds of Asuras and Devas tremble.”                                                                                                       28
 
“Even if he is disregarded, there is no guarantee that he will not oppose, for in war his valour increases greatly. I feel it is proper for me to kill him now itself for the spreading fire should not be disregarded. “                                                                              29
 
That very strong abode of valour thinking and estimating the great speed of the enemy and the need to complete his work took an important decision. And decided in his mind in killing the bad souled one.                                                                                 30
 
That monkey hero who was the son of wind god killed the eight horses, which were having great speed, which never knew tiredness and which could carry the chariot easily in the windy sky by hitting them with his open palm.                                                   31
 
Then his big chariot having hit by the palm, having been broken by the minister of the monkey king, having its horses killed, having its roof broken, and having its axis separated fell in to the ground from the sky.                                                           32
 
That great hero and the great char rioter Aksha left the chariot and holding the bow and with sword in his hand rose in to the sky, like a sage raising to the heaven after leaving his body because of the power of his penance.                                                         33
 
Then that monkey, who was equal in valour to the God of Wind, neared him who was moving in the sky, which was used by Garuda, wind and sages and caught him strongly between his two legs.                                                                                                  34
 
That monkey who was one of the greatest monkeys and who was equal in valour to his father, caught him in the battlefield like Garuda, the king of birds catching a snake, rotated him thousands of times and threw him on the floor with lot of force.           35
 
Because of the son of wind that Rakshasa fell dead on the earth with broken hands, thighs, waist and neck, with eye balls coming out due to shattered bones, with blood flowing all over, with joints separated and with unsettled ties.                               36
 
Felling him on the earth, that great monkey created great fear to the king of Rakshasas.    37
 
Once that prince was killed He was seen with great awe , by sages who travel in the sky and who do great penance, by Bhoothas who included Yakshas and Pannagas and Devendra surrounded by Devas.                                                                               38
 
After killing Aksha kumara who had the dazzle of the son of Indra, and who had blood red eyes, that hero Hanuman, started waiting for suitable occasion like the God of death waiting for the death of the beings, and again reached the gate of the tower.               39
 
        Thus ends the forty seventh   chapter of Sundara Kanda which
          is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:06:58 PM
Forty eigth Chapter
 
                          Forty -eighth  Chapter     
                                Tying of Hanuman by Brahmasthra.
(Indrajit the eldest son of Ravana is sent to capture Hanuman. He puts in lot of fight and at last sends Brahmasthra, which ties Hanuman. The rakshasa soldiers tied Hanuman by rope, which makes Hanuman, free of Brahmasthra but still, with a wish to see Ravana in person, he submits to the Rakshasas. Ravana asks his ministers to question him. Hanuman replies that he is the emissary of Sugreeva.)
 
After Hanuman killed Aksha Kumara that famous Rakshasa king, gained mental composure somehow and after that gave the following order to Indrajit who was equal to Indra and who was very angry.                                                                                        1
 
“You are the one who knows the science of archery, you are the one of the greats among those who carry weapons, you are the one who can give even Devas and Asuras sorrow, you are the one who has shown great valour against Devas including Indra and the one who has worshipped Brahma and got special arrows.”                                               2
 
“Neither Asuras, nor devas, nor those who are helped by Indra are capable of facing the power of your arrows in war.”                                                                                           3
 
“There is no one who does not get tired in war in all the three worlds, but you are protected by the power of your penance .Not only that,  you are protected by your own valour and also you are capable of acting as per the needs of time and place. You are also greatly intelligent.”                                                                                                           4
 
“There is nothing in the war that cannot be achieved by your effort. Nothing is impossible to you in jobs that need the use of brain and thought. There is no one in all the three worlds who does not know the power of your arrows and intelligence.”                          5
 
“The power of your penance, valour and the strength of your arrows are equal to me. After getting you (as son), who would definitely achieve victory in war, my mind had never experienced any effort.”                                                                                    6
 
“All the Kinkaras, the Rakshasa called Jambumali, the sons of ministers who were valorous, and the five commanders have been killed. Similarly the great army consisting of horses, elephants and chariots has been killed. Your dear brother Aksha Kumara has also been killed.”                                                                                                       7-8
 
“Hey, killer of enemies, I do not definitely have the faith that I have you in them.”   9
 
“Hey, intelligent one, after estimating and understanding this great strength, power and valour of the monkey, use your strength properly and do effort equal to your strength.” 10
 
“Hey greatest among those who know archery, You who has the strength to conquer enemies, take further action such that, you use as much of your strength as required to destroy the army and take further action  after judging your as well as the enemies strength.”                                                                                                           11
 
“Hey heroic warrior, it (the monkey) has got capability of exterminating crowd by crowd and so army is useless against it. Further you should not near it depending on Vajrayudha, because even God of wind does not have its speed. Since it is equal to fire war of deceit does not help to kill it.”                                                                   12
 
“Please go, after thinking clearly about all the points mentioned, having great confidence in the stability of your actions, after well remembering the bow and the power of arrows given by devas. Complete the job without failure.”                                               13
(Ravana seems to be of the opinion that without the use of holy god given arrows the monkey cannot be defeated.)
 
“The fact that I am sending you is contradictory to  the fact that I love you, but this decision is proper for the king and the dharma(just action) of the king.”                      14
 
“Hey, killer of enemies, in war it is essential to show the expertise learned in a careful manner, and what should be wished in war should only be victory over the enemy.”  15
 
That hero who had the strength equal to devas and who had untiring ability, after hearing the words of his father, decided on going to war mentally, and went round his master (father).                                                                                                                16
 
After a respectful farewell by his own friends and with interest in war, Indrajit with an intention to be careful decided to depart.                                                                     17
 
That resplendent Rakshasa prince who had eyes like the petals of lotus who was a gentleman ebbed out like the sea during the full moon and new moon.                        18
 
That Indrajit who was equal to Indra then climbed in to a chariot capable of traveling anywhere, drawn by four tigers that were comparable to the king of birds, who were comparable to each other and who had white sharp teeth.                                       19
 
He who was greatest among archers who knew the science of war, who was an expert in the war with arrows and who was great ,reached quickly ,riding on his chariot, to the place where Hanuman was sitting.                                                                              20
 
Hearing the sound made by his chariot and the twang of the bow, the famous Hanuman who was a great monkey hero became very happy.                                                   21
 
Indrajit who was an expert in war went near Hanuman carrying his bow and very sharp arrows.                                                                                                                        22
 
When he was going with a bow and with interest in war all the directions rattled and wild animals made various types of sounds.                                                             23
 
During this time Nagas, Yakshas, Sages and Sidhas who traveled in the sky assembled there, besides the several species of birds hid the sky completely and shouted loudly. 24
 
That monkey seeing Indrajit coming fast riding in the chariot roared loudly and increased the size of his body speedily.                                                                                          25
 
Riding on a miraculous chariot Indrajit who could complete any job in an artistic manner, made thunderous sound by his bow.                                                                           26
 
Then that very strong monkey who was equal in prowess to Indra and the Rakshasa king, and who was not afraid of war, fought with  the son of the king of Rakshasas  and they faced each other like born enemies and with great anger.                                          27
 
That monkey who was beyond sight destroyed the speed of arrows of Indrajit, who had won laurels in war, who was great archer, who was a great charioteer and who was a great hero. He increased further and further and traveled in the sky, which was the path of his father.                                                                                                                      28
 
At that time, he who was capable of killing the opposing warriors shot arrows which were long and sharp, which had been attached with good feathers, which had ends decorated by gold and feathers, which were capable of being drawn well and which were as fast as the thunderous fire.                                                                                                      29
 
That Hanuman hearing the huge sound made by his chariot, the sound made by drums Beri and Pataha (types of war drums)and the sound made by the well drawn bow again jumped up.                                                                                                                 30
 
That brown coloured great monkey traveled fast in between several properly shot  arrows by him who was capable of shooting arrows correctly and made them all useless.         31                                   
 
Hanuman, the son of wind god stood in front of him giving him facility to shoot him but spreading his hands jumped away from the arrows that he shot.                                 32
 
Those two who were very fast and who were experts in war carried on a war that attracted and surprised all beings.                                                                               33
 
That Rakshasa did not know the Achilles heel of Hanuman and the son of wind God did know the weakness of the courageous one. Thus those two fought opposing each other an intolerable war similar in valour to the devas                                                               34
 
The great one who had firm capacity to shoot arrows without missing his aim seeing that his arrows which never go waste, were going waste not able to hit his aim, became extremely thoughtful then.                                                                                          35
 
That son of the king of Rakshasas understanding that the monkey was deathless took a decision on how to tackle and catch him after great thought.                                     36
 
At that time, that great hero who was very learned in archery sent the Brahmasthra against the monkey.                                                                                             37
 
Indrajit who knew the essence of archery and who was a great hero decided, “This one should be killed only by Brahmasthra ”and tied him, who was the son of wind God by Brahmasthra.                                                                                                     38
 
That monkey tied by the Rakshasa using that arrow (asthra) became incapable of moving and because of that very sad.                                                                                        39   
 
Then that monkey chief understanding that his speed was reduced by the power of Brahma and understanding that he was tied by the arrow (asthra), remembered the blessing of Brahma to him.                                                                                          40
 
Hanuman thought in his mind about the Brahmasthra, which was sent with the Chant of Brahma and also the boon given to him by Brahma.                                                 41
 
“This arrow has been sent with an understanding that “I who am under the control of the arrow do not have strength to tie myself loose because of the power of the universal teacher.”  And so I have to respect the tie of the arrow of Brahma and obey it.”         42
 
That monkey understanding the power of that arrow and also remembering the blessings of Brahma permitting him to tie himself loose decided to obey the order of Brahma.    43
 
“Even though I am tied by the arrow, I who am protected by Brahma, Indra and Vayu, do not have any sense of fear.”                                                                                           44
 
“Even this coming under the control of Rakshasas, I have the great benefit of having a meeting with the king of Rakshasas and so let the enemy carry me.”                        45
 
That Hanuman who destroyed the valour of his enemies, who could take the right decisions and one who could guess the future course of events, did not move his limbs.  Because of this he was caught by the enemies who neared him and acted as if he was bullied by all those who came there and made sounds like a weakling.                    46
 
At that time, they finding him who could destroy is enemies as still, strongly tied him by strong jute threads and pieces of tree hides.                                                         47
 
That Hanuman deciding that  “It is possible that  the king of Rakshasa may come to me to understand things,” tolerated peacefully the tying by the enemy soldiers and their bullying.                                                                                                                    48
 
That hero was only tied by the ropes and hides and freed by the arrow, because that arrow does not tolerate tying by any other object.                                                   49
 
At that time only the heroic Indrajit having understood that he was only tied by ropes and freed by the tie of Brahmasthra        thought as follows, “ He has been tied by some other material. Will Brahmasthra tolerate it? , Alas, my great effort became in vain. Rakshasas do not know the power of chants. If Brahmasthra becomes useless, then no other arrow will work against him and all of us should be afraid for our lives.”   50-51
 
But Hanuman did not allow any one to know that he is free from the control of Brahmasthra. Because of that he suffered the troubles of other ties and was dragged by the Rakshasas.                                                                                                             52
 
That monkey was dragged to the presence of the king of Rakshasas by the cruel Rakshasas who beat him with fists and logs of wood.                                           53   
 
Even though Indrajit understood well that he was free from the ties of Brahmasthra and was only tied by ropes allowed that very strong monkey warrior who was surrounded by his army took him in front of the king.                                                                       54
 
Those rakshasas tying him, who was the greatest among monkeys, like a ferocious elephant, presented him in front of the king of Rakshasas.                                         55
 
At that time the following conversations took place among the Rakshasas, “ Who is this? Whom does it belong? Wherefrom it has come? What job has it here? Who is helping him?”                                                                                                           56
 
The other Rakshasas who were very angry shouted among themselves, “We have to kill it. We have to burn it. We have to eat it.”                                                                        57
 
That great one, with contempt for them crossed the path and stood in front of the king of Rakshasas who was surrounded by people ready to serve him in any way that he wants and saw the palace decorated by various precious stones.                                            58
(Some commentators interpret “With contempt for them” as “being dragged forcefully” also the “Path” is interpreted as “In the month of Magha” by some of them. One version of Ramayana says that Hanuman crossed the sea in the month of Magha , on Ekadasi thithi and on a Sunday.)
 
That greatly glittering Ravana saw that great monkey being dragged hither and thither by those ugly looking Rakshasas, 59
 
The monkey chief, Hanuman also saw, the king of Rakshasas who was shining like the sun God, and who was resplendent and very strong.                                                    60
 
That ten headed one rolling his red eyes due to intense anger stared at the monkey, and ordered his important ministers who were sitting near him and who were elders known for their pedigree and good character, to question the monkey.                                  61
 
That monkey properly questioned by them about the reason why he came and also the cause of the reason, initially told. “ I am the emissary coming from the king of monkeys.”                                                                                                                     62
 
        Thus ends the forty eighth   chapter of Sundara Kanda which
        is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:07:23 PM
Forty ninth Chapter
 
                          Forty- ninth Chapter     
                                  Seeing the prowess of Ravana
(Here Hanuman’s reaction on seeing Ravana is described. He feels but for Ravana’s bad qualities he would have been a very great person.)
 
The greatly valorous Hanuman became wonderstruck by his action and stared at the king of Rakshasas with reddish eyes.                                                                        1
(Hanuman felt bad that Ravana asked his ministers to question him instead of directly questioning him.)
 
Then Hanuman looked and saw the Valorous king of Rakshasas who shone with the extremely lustrous golden crown which was decorated by pearl garlands, who appeared imperial by wearing several golden ornaments in which several diamonds were struck and other precious stones were used, who wore very costly silk dress, who anointed himself with several scented sandal potions, who had several pretty designs drawn all over his body with red sandal paste, who had very red broad eyes which were horrible to look at and which stood out, who had great teeth which wee sharp and shined, who was shining like the Mandhara mountain which was full of wild animals, with his ten heads and hanging lips, who had a body like the black Anjana mountain, who was like the cloud with storks  with his pearl necklace shining like full moon hanging over his chest, who was having hands which looked like the five headed serpent, on which he wore armlets, beautiful bangles and had applied sandal paste, who was sitting on majestic and pretty throne which was made of jade inlaid with several precious gems and on which was spread several broad pretty carpets, who was being assisted by several pretty lasses who were standing near him, who were well made up, and who were holding fans in their hands, who was surrounded by the four ministers Durdhara, Prahastha, Mahaparswa the rakshasa, and the very intelligent Nikumbha who all were very strong capable rakshasa counselors , who was served by other rakshasa ministers who knew the principle of holy chants, who were capable of showing him the right way  and who served him like devas served Indra and  who was full of royal looks like  the cloud which surrounded the Meru mountain                                                                                                               2-14
(Ravana appeared with his ten heads only during war. Possibly he appeared with ten heads in his court in order to scare Hanuman)
 
Though he was very much troubled by the greatly valorous Rakshasas , he was greatly wonderstruck and kept on looking at the king of Rakshasas.                          15
 
Hanuman after seeing that shining king of Rakshasas and being surprised by his power, thought as follows in his mind.                                                                         16
 
That intelligent Hanuman after observing the power of the very famous king of Rakshasas became thoughtful in various ways and thought, “ Ha, what a figure. ha, what a courage, ha, what a strength, ha what a dazzling power, it is very surprising that he is a combination of all these characteristics. If this strong god of Rakshasas has not been an unjust person, he would have been the protector of the world of devas including Indra. The entire world is afraid of him because of his cruel and fearless deeds, which are contradictory to the norms of the world. If he becomes angry, he would create a deluge and sink the world.”                                                                                         17-20
 
 
 
        Thus ends the forty ninth   chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 23, 2008, 12:07:44 PM
Fiftieth Chapter
 
                          Fiftieth Chapter     
                     The questioning of Hanuman by Prahastha
(Ravana orders his minister Prahastha to question Hanuman. Hanuman replies to him that he is the emissary of Raghava.)
 
The long armed Ravana who was habituated to make the whole world cry stared at the yellow-eyed monkey standing in front of him and became immeasurably angry.      1
 
Seeing the enthusiastic chief of monkeys he became thoughtful out of fear and thought as follows, “ What? The God Nandi must have personally come here.”                      2
 
“He must be the same one who cursed me, when I shook Kailasa mountain long ago  and who has taken the form of a monkey or is he Banasura? “                                    3
(See note under Sloka number 52 in chapter no. 3.Banasura is a thousand handed Rakshasa who was the son of Mahabali.)
 
That king with red eyes due to anger addressing Prahastha who was his minister in chief told the following words which were very timely and meaningful.                                4
 
“This bad person may be questioned as to where from he has come? What was his purpose? And what did he get by scaring the Rakshasis and destroying the garden?”                                                                                                                        5
 
“ This bad character may be asked, as to what benefit did he get in entering my town which cannot be entered by any one and what was the purpose of killing the Rakshasas? “ 6
 
Hearing the words of Ravana, Prahastha spoke as follows,” Hey monkey, there is no reason for you to be scared. You would be safe.”                                                     7
 
“Hey, monkey, if you have been sent by Indra to the house of Ravana, please tell the truth. You would not face any problem and you would be released.”                        8
 
“Did you come to our city assuming the form of spy for the sake of Yama or Kubhera or Varuna or where you sent by Vishnu who is desirous of victory?”                           9
 
“Hey, monkey, I think you have assumed the form of monkey, for when we think of your valour, we do not feel that you are a monkey. Tell the truth and you would be immediately released.”                                                                                              10
 
 
 
“If you tell a lie, it would be  very difficult for you to continue to live. So what is the reason for your coming to the city of Ravana?”                                                      11
 
Then the monkey who has been questioned thus addressing the chief of Rakshasa group replied as follows.” I do not belong either to Indra, Yama or Varuna.”                        12
 
“I do not have acquaintance with Kubhera. Vishnu has not sent me. I who have come here is really a monkey only. This is my caste.”                                                13
 
“Since I could not personally get an interview with the king of Rakshasas this garden was destroyed by me for seeing him.”                                                                        14
 
“Then those strong Rakshasas who were desirous of war came before me and I fought with them for protecting myself.”                                                                                15
 
“I cannot be tied by either the devas or asuras with their arrows. I also got this boon from Lord Brahma.”                                                                                                                16
 
“Because I was desirous of seeing the king I obeyed the Brahmasthra and as soon as I was troubled by the Rakshasa, I was free of Brahmasthra.”                                          17
 
“I have come before you for the purpose of another king.”                                          18
 
“Be pleased to know that I am the emissary of Raghava who is immeasurably strong.” 19
 
“Besides, Oh, king, be pleased to hear my words which would bring good to you.”     20
 
        Thus ends the fiftieth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 06:18:54 AM
Fifty-first Chapter
                          Fifty- first Chapter     
                                     The advice of Hanuman
(Hanuman points out to Ravana, the prowess of Rama, Lakshmana, Sugreeva and other monkeys and advices him to give back Sita to Rama to avoid destruction of Lanka and death to him and his near and dear. Then Ravana sentences Hanuman to death.)
 
That valorous Hanuman stared at the greatly valorous ten headed one and without fear told the following meaningful words.                                                                          1
 
“Hey, king of Rakshasas, I have come here to your place because of the orders of Sugreeva. The king of monkeys told me to inform you of his welfare.”                      2
(Since Bali and Ravana had signed a treaty of friendship, Sugreeva becomes like a brother to Ravana)
 
“Be pleased to hear the words of the great Sugreeva who is your brother, which would be useful to you in this and the other world.”                                                                     3
 
“There was a king called Dasaratha who was equal to Indra, who had a an army with chariots, horses and elephants and who was related to the world like a father.”          4
 
“Rama, his greatly resplendent son, who had great arms, who did good to all people and who was a lord ordered by his father, chose the path of justice and entered the Dandakaranya forest along with his brother Lakshmana and his wife Sita.”              5-6
 
“His wife Sita who never left the company of her husband and who was the daughter of Janaka the great king of Videha was lost in the forest.”                                                7
 
“That prince along with his brother searching for that lady reached Rishya mooka and became a friend of Sugreeva.”                                                                                      8
 
“That Sugreeva promised him to search and find out Sita and Rama promised him the kingdom of monkeys.”                                                                                                 9
 
“Because of that that prince killed Bali and Sugreeva was appointed as the king of all the monkeys and bears.”                                                                                                   10
 
“You know about Bali for a long time. That monkey was killed by just one arrow by Rama in war.”                                                                                                             11
(When once Ravana went to war with Bali, he caught hold of him and hung in the cradle of his baby Angada as a plaything. Brahma interceded and got him free. Ravana from that time was exceedingly afraid of Bali. It should be also noted that Rama did not kill Bali in war but sent an arrow from hiding.)                                                                                                                                           
 
‘The monkey king Sugreeva who is steadfast on his words, carefully sent monkeys to all directions to search for Sita.”                                                                                   12
 
“Tens, thousands and millions of monkeys are searching in all directions, top and bottom as well as the sky for her.”                                                                                          13
 
“Some of them who are powerful are equal in prowess to Garuda and some like wind can travel to even nooks and corners with great speed.”                                            14
 
“I am the son of wind god and am known as Hanuman. For the sake of Sita and to see her I crossed with speed this ocean, which is one hundred yojanas long and have come here. I searched for her hither and thither and found her in your home.”           15-16
 
:”Hey, very intelligent king, you know well the path of justice, and you have achieved great heights by penance     and so you do not merit to steal other peoples wives and keep them under custody.”                                                                                             17
 
“Intelligent people like you would not stick on to actions which are against justice, which would lead to several dangers and which would destroy one completely.                 18
 
“Who is there among Devas or Asuras who can stand before arrows sent by Lakshmana and those arrows sent by Rama in anger?”                                                               19
 
“ Hey king, once a bad deed is done to Raghava, where can you live with pleasure and I feel nowhere in the three worlds.”                                                                             20
 
“So please understand what I say,  as the one which leads to good in past, present and future, one which is according to the path of justice and one which leads to good luck. Let Janaki be returned to the God of the world.”                                                            21
 
“This holy lady has been seen by me. Whatever was extremely difficult has been achieved and whatever remaining in this is to be done by Raghava himself.”          22
 
“This Sita has been found by me with indescribable sorrow. You are not understanding that she is a five headed serpent in your house.”                                                            23
 
“Like the rice which is laced with poison and which was eaten in plenty cannot be digested, Asuras and even devas cannot digest her with their valour .”                       24                                                                                               
 
“It is not proper for you to waste away, this lucky life earned by you, by control of senses and by doing just deeds.”                                                                                                25
 
“You are thinking with courage that you will not attain death from devas and asuras because of the strength of your penance. But this is not sufficient enough reason.”         26 
 
“This Sugreeva is neither a deva nor a rakshasa nor a Danava nor Gandharwa nor Yaksha nor Pannaga for Sugreeva is but a monkey king. And that Raghava is but a human being.”                27
(Ravana asked Brahma for a boon of deathlessness which he refused. Then he requested for deathlessness from all known type of people except monkeys and men. Hanuman is pointing out to him that the people who are opposing him are monkey and men.)                 
 
“So king how are you going to save your life. The result of just action will not save you from the sins of unjust action for just action would only give its result.”                     28
(What he means that by doing some good things, the result of sinful action cannot be washed way.)
             
“You have already enjoyed your life which is the result of just action and you are going to immediately suffer for your misdeeds.”                                                                    29
(If you want to wash away the sin of stealing Sita, you have to do the just deed of returning her. No other just action is going to help you.)
 
  “Please remember the war of Janasthana, the killing of Bali and the treaty between Rama and Sugreeva and decide what is good for you.”                                           30                                           
(In Janasthana Rama alone killed a huge army of Rakshasas stationed there by Ravana.)
 
“I alone could have destroyed the city of Lanka with its horses, chariots and elephants. But this is not his wish.”                                                                                        31
 
“It has been sworn before the assembly of monkeys and bears that the complete destruction of those people who were the reason for abduction of Sita would be done by Rama alone.”                                                                                                                 32
 
“Even if bad is done to Rama by real Devendra himself or any one else, he would not be able to live happily. Then what about a person like you?”                                          33
 
“Understand that she whom you are the impression as Sita and who is under your custody as the intense dark night who is going to destroy the entire Lanka.”                            34
 
“So please stop the impending destruction by Sita who is like the rope of God of death which you have put as garland round your neck. And think of what is proper for your welfare.”                                                                                                                        35
 
“Think in your mind immediately that this city which is full of palaces, towers and spires as already destroyed by the power of Sita and is burning because of the anger of Rama.”                                                                                                                            36
 
“Please do not allow the destruction of the city of Lanka as well as your friends, ministers, forefathers, brothers, sons, dears, pleasures and wives.”                              37
 
“Hey Rakshasa king, understand clearly that this advice as coming from me who is a monkey and a servant of Rama who has come as an emissary as based only on just action and follow it.”                                                                                                                    38
(He calls himself as” servant” because he knows the power of Rama, “emissary “ because he is relating a message and ”monkey” because he is neither a rakshasa nor a man and can be impartial)
 
“Rama is capable of destroying very easily the entire world with its beings, with its movable and immovable assets and create them again and he is famous beyond the speed of the mind.”                                                                                                                      39
 
“There is none among devas, asuras, kings, yakshas, rakshasas, vidhyadaras, Gandharwas, Uragas, Sidhas, Kinnaras, birds, and not only that but among all beings, in  all worlds, in everything, in all directions and for all time, who can oppose and wage a war against Rama who is equal to Lord Vishnu.”                                                    40-41
 
 
“After doing this bad act to Rama who is the king of all worlds and who is the lion among kings, for you it is impossible to keep your soul in tact any longer.”       42
 
“Hey king of Rakshasa, even if all the devas, asuras, Gandharwas, Vidhyadaras, Nagas and Yakshas joined together they will not able to withstand the war with Rama.”       43
 
“Even the four headed Brahma who created himself, the three eyed Rudra who burnt the three cities, Indra who is the king of Devas and who killed Vrthrasura cannot save one whom  Rama has decided to kill.”                                                                     44
(Commentators believe that because Hanuman did not include Vishnu, he must be knowing that Rama is Vishnu himself. But this is contradictory to his calling Rama equal to Vishnu in sloka 40-41)
   
That incomparable Rakshasa with ten heads and with rolling red eyes due to intense anger, finding that the cleverest words delivered with fearlessness by the monkey not suiting to his taste, sentenced the monkey chief with death.                                        45
 
.        Thus ends the fifty first chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 06:19:28 AM
Fifty second Chapter
 
                          Fifty second Chapter     
                               Avoiding of death of an emissary
(Vibishana with soft words of logic and justice advises Ravana that Hanuman should not be killed but can be punished in other ways)
 
Vibishana thought it is wrong to sentence an emissary who has brought the message of someone else to death by the bad soul Ravana.                                                              1
(During ancient times, it was thought that an emissary who is only delivering the message of some one else should not be punished. This theme occurs in several Puranas.)
 
He who always takes action when it should be done, seeing that his brother  was very angry and bent upon on carrying out his words, thought as to what he should do.        2     
 
Then he who was capable of serious thought, he who had an expert in his language and he who had decided as to what he should do, addressed his elder brother by good humble words and told him that which was good for him.                                                3
 
“He king of Rakshasas, leave out this anger, become pleased and hear my words. Great kings who know the tradition do not sentence an emissary to death”.                             4
 
“Hey valorous one, death sentence to this monkey is against law, against hoary traditions of the world and not proper.”                                                                            5         
 
“You, yourself are an expert in the  knowledge of justice, who observes tradition, an expert on kingly justice, an expert on tradition, and one who knows the secrets of this world.”  6
 
“Suppose even wise people like you are caught  in the grips of anger, then getting knowledge of science of life is an useless effort.”                                                7
 
“Hey chief of Rakshasas who cannot be opposed by any one and who can kill his enemies, therefore leave out this anger and calm down, Let the emissary be punished after deciding as to what is proper and what is improper.”                                    8-9
 
Ravana, the king of Rakshasas hearing the words of Vibhishana became very angry and told him the following reply.                                                                                     10
 
“Hey, killer of his enemies, there is no injustice in giving sentence of death to sinners. I am going to get this monkey who took sinful actions killed.”                               11
 
That Vibhishana who was the foremost of intelligent ones, hearing these words which were the root of injustice, which had many flaws and which was suitable to unjust people, again told words which were the essence of just action.                                12
 
“Hey king of Lanka, please calm down and be pleased to hear wise words of justice, Hey king, learned and just people think  that emissaries do not merit punishment of death no where and at no time.”                                                                                             13
 
“There is no doubt this is a very great enemy. This has done several unpleasant things. It is seen that emissaries are given several type of punishments but nowhere it is told that emissaries can be put to death.”                                                                                      14
 
“:It is told that emissary can be punished by disfiguring him or giving lashes by a whip or by shaving off his head or by marking his organs in an untraceable manner. But it is never heard that emissary has been put to death.”                                                         15
 
“How can you, who is very wise and just, who is an expert on good and bad of traditional wisdom, come under the control of anger. People who do not swerve from Dharma(just action) do avoid anger.”                                                                                          16
 
“Hey valorous one, there is none equal to you in the knowledge of Dharma(just action) nor in worldly duties and nor in deep knowledge of the science of life. You are the greatest among all devas and asuras.”                                                               17
 
“Not only that, I do not find any merit in killing this monkey for this punishment should be given to them who sent this monkey.”                                                                   18
 
“This may be a just one or unjust but is an emissary who is in the control of others who has been sent by them and is telling what is told by them. And so it does not merit punishment by death.”                                                                                                  19
 
“Hey king who conquers the forts of other cities, if this is killed who can come again to this place which is far-far away from the ocean. I do not see any one else who is capable of traveling in the sky and so please do not try to kill him. It is necessary for you to show this type of wisdom to your enemies including Indra.”                                             20-21
 
“Hey, King who likes war, suppose this dies, I do not find any other emissary who can send those two sons of a king of men, who are both bad people and who are far away.”    22
 
“ If this chieftain of monkeys is killed, good people will tell lot of bad things about us. I do not see them saying good words and words of fame about us All the world will only find fault with us.”                                                                                                    23
 
“Not only that, hey king who travels in darkness, we should try fast to take action for the destruction and death of those people, who are bad natured, who are very proud of themselves, who are not intelligent and who have sent this monkey.”                        24
 
“Hey enemy of Devendra, immediately take efforts to enforce justice among Devas who include Indra and Daithyas which include Dhanavas. “                                                 25
 
:”Hey, king of Rakshasas, approve by your mind my words, take firm action with utmost care, get killed those two princes and make victory thine.”                                           26
 
“Hey king who creates happiness in the mind of Rakshasas, it is not proper for you, who has qualities like valour, courage and enthusiasm and who cannot be won over by even devas and Rakshasas, to stop the forthcoming war.”                                                     27
 
“Under you control you have crores of heroes who do good to you, who are great warriors, who desire only your  good, who have won in several good events, who are enthusiastic, who are the greatest among those who carry weapons and who are good servants.”                                                                                                                   28
 
“So let few people along with a part of your army start now itself to fulfill your orders, to kill these two princes and to prove your power against your enemies.”                29
 
That very strong king of Rakshasas, who was the chief among Rakshasa kings and who was the enemy of the world of devas, hearing the good words of his younger brother Vibhishana understood them and decided that they should be agreed upon.             30
 
That king of Rakshasas thought in various ways like, “ There is no doubt that this definitely is the power of Vishnu which has taken the shape of a monkey to destroy me. This warrior monkey is the essence of the power of Vishnu who is deva among devas which is the very greatest, and very intolerable power, which is the root of everything. Or is this the Para Brahma (the ultimate essence of god) “ and again became very angry.   31-32
 
But the king of Rakshasas who is a great soul, controlling the anger in his mind which was raging like fire, recognizing Vibhishana who was the greatest among those who carry weapons and respecting the words of Vibhishana told as follows.                            33
 
          Thus ends the fifty second  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 06:20:06 AM
Fifty-third Chapter
 
                          Fifty- third Chapter     
                             Setting fire to the tail of Hanuman
(Ravana convinced by the advice of Vibhishana orders that Hanuman’s tail be burnt and he be dragged round the city. Hanuman thinks that this is a good opportunity to see round the city during daytime and submits to this punishment. Informed about this Sita prays the God of fire not to harm Hanuman. Hanuman does not feel any pain and after seeing the city loosens himself from the bonds.)
 
The ten headed one understanding that the words of Vibhishana are according to laws of land , told the following to the great one who is his brother.                                    1
 
“What you have told is right. To kill an emissary is condemned by all. But for this we have to give some other punishment other than death.”                                                    2
 
“Monkeys consider their tail as their favorite ornament. Let its tail which is its ornament be burnt. Let it return back with its burnt tail.                                                                     3
 
“Let its friends, relations, its favorite ones and its relatives see it being in the sad state of   having been with an ugly limb.”                                                                                      4
 
That king of Rakshasas ordered, “Let him be dragged with his burning tail all through the several road junctions all over the city.”                                                            5
 
Those Rakshasas whose anger had increased a lot, hearing the orders of Ravana, tied around Hanuman’s tail torn cloths made of cotton thread.                                        6
 
When they were tying cloths on his tail, that great monkey increased in size as fast as the forest fire. At that time they poured oil over the cloth and set fire to it.                     7
 
At that time many Rakshasas among whom were ladies old people and children, came there with a wish to see the burning tail of Hanuman.                                                 8
 
That Hanuman who was like the infant sun became extremely angry and beat the rakshasas with his burning tail and made them fall.                                                    9
 
That monkey chief who was a great warrior was further imprisoned by the cruel Rakshasas who came in hoards and started thinking as to what is to be done.       10
 
 “I can break these ropes and jump up and kill all of them for even though I am imprisoned, these Rakshasas are not equal to me. There is no doubt about it.”        11
 
“If I do like this, I who am supposed to take beneficial action to my lord, would not be doing so. Is it not true, that these cruel people have tied me who am supposed to run about because of their king’s order.”                                                                       12
 
“I am sufficient to oppose in war all these Rakshasas together but I am tolerating all this because this would be according to the wish of Rama.”                                                 13
 
“I have not seen the entire city of Lanka in the night properly. It is thus necessary for me to see the city in the daytime so that I know the secrets of its forts. Therefore it has become necessary for me to the  city once again.”                                                  14
 
“Let the Rakshasas give me ,who has been tied and whose tail has been set afire more trouble as they please..”                                                                                              15
 
Because of this those Rakshasas who did not  understand his mind dragged the monkey who is great and who is the chief among monkeys with happiness and came out of the palace.                                                                                                                    16
 
Those Rakshasas who were wont to do cruel deeds made lot of sound by their own action as well as by the sound of drums and conches and walked all over the town dragging Hanuman.                                                                                                                  17
 
Hanuman who exterminated his enemies walked of his own  accord followed by the rakshasas and understood well the great city of the Rakshasas.                          18
 
Then that monkey chief saw peculiar palaces, places encircled by tall walls and well divided royal junctions.                                                                                                  19
 
That monkey who was the son of wind god, saw streets filed with houses, places which provided way to all directions, as also big avenues, small streets, places in between these small streets and big buildings which were like clouds.                                                20
 
In the junctions of roads, in the inns and in royal avenues, all the Rakshasas announced loudly “Spy,  spy”                                                                                                         21
 
Ladies, children and old people came out here and there with a wish to see that Hanuman whose tail was set afire with glee.                                                                                    22
 
Once the end of the tail of that Hanuman caught fire those Rakshasis with ugly eyes ran from there and informed the holy lady about this unpalatable news.                               23
 
“Hey Sita, That monkey with a red face who was talking to you is being dragged hither and thither with his tail being set afire.”                                                                         24
 
Hearing the news, which acted as if it was stealing her soul, that Vaidehi, who was caught by sorrow, thought of the god of fire in her mind.                                       25
 
That broad eyed lady started praying for the welfare of the monkey chief and at that time with great devotion saluted the God of fire and prayed.                                            26
 
“Supposed I had looked after my husband properly, suppose I had observed the rules of penance properly and if I had thought in my mind of husband only, then be cool to Hanuman.”                                                                                                                    27
 
“If that great one has little pity on me and not only that if I have at least a bit of luck, then be cool to Hanuman.”                                                                                          28
 
“Suppose you know me as one as virtuous and only praying always to reach the company of whom who is the soul of justice, then be cool to Hanuman.”                                  29
 
“If the long armed, truthful and gentleman Sugreeva will help me to cross this danger, then be cool to Hanuman.”                                                                                            30
 
That God of fire who had powerful flames, because of that (prayer of Sita) burnt peacefully and softly so that not to harm Hanuman and as if he was informing the doe eyed Sita.                                                                                                                       31
 
The God of wind who was the father of Hanuman even though Hanuman’s tail was set afire starting slowly blowing like snow so that the holy lady is satisfied.                   32
 
When fire was raging on his tail that monkey thought, “ why is it that this fire which is burning well, not consuming my entire body?”                                                          33
 
“This appears to burn with big flames but is not creating any pain to me and it appears to me that they are bathing the end of my tail with snow.”                                               34
 
“There is no doubt and it is very clear, it is as wonderful an incident like my seeing a mountain in the middle of the sea when I was crossing it because of the grace of Rama.” 35
 
“Even when the God of the sea and the Mainaka Mountain has so much interest in the welfare of Rama, how can the god of fire not help at this stage.”                            36
 
“The God of fire is not burning me because of the kindness of Sita, the power of Raghava and because of his friendship to my father. “. That monkey chief further thought in his mind the future course of action for some more time                                                    37
 
Immediately with great speed that monkey jumped up and roared.                              38
 
Then the very famous monkey chief climbed the top of a tower, which was very tall and was without Rakshasas.                                                                                                    39
 
That very intelligent one grew as big as a mountain and immediately assumed a very tiny form and unloosened himself.                                                                                            40
 
That very famous monkey thus got himself from the bonds. Then seeing the huge beam on the top of the main entrance grew as big as a mountain.                                             41
 
That strong-armed son of wind god, loosening the beam with iron rings, killed all the guards with it.                                                                                                                   42
 
That Hanuman who was a great expert in war was killing faced the city of Lanka and the flames in his tail burning like garlands shone like the Sun with great many rays.           43
 
     Thus ends the fifty third  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:11:28 PM
Fifty-fourth Chapter
 
                          Fifty- fourth Chapter     
                                    Burning of the city of Lanka
 
(Hanuman decided to inflict more misery to the city of Lanka by setting fire to it. He systematically set fire to all the houses, places and forests. He was praised by all Gods for such a great achievement. He put out the fire of his tail by dipping it in to the sea.)
 
That monkey having succeeded in his mind’s wish, facing Lanka with lot of enthusiasm thought as to what has to be done.                                                                                    1
 
“What is remaining undone in this place to me? What action of mine would increase the sorrow of these Rakshasas?”                                                                                            2
 
“Asoka forest has been destroyed. Several strong Rakshasas have been killed. A part of their army has been broken asunder. Now only destruction of their fort remains.”           3
 
“If I can destroy the fort with very little effort, my action would be well done and the result would be proper to the effort done.”                                                                      4
 
“This fire burns with cold on my tail and so it would be proper if these great houses are given to it and it be satisfied.”                                                                                          5
 
Then that great monkey with his burning tail, which was like the cloud with lightning traveled above the tops of the buildings.                                                                           6
 
Fearlessly that monkey traveled from one house to another, staring at the Rakshasas and traveled catching hold of  gardens and houses.                                                             7
 
That valorous and very strong Hanuman, with enthusiasm similar to the wind God, jumped into the house of Prahastha and set fire to it. From there he jumped and set fire to the house of Mahaparswa similar to the fire during deluge.                            8-9
 
That monkey chief and resplendent great monkey similarly, jumped entered, set fire and destroyed the palaces of Vajra Damshtra, Shuka, the intelligent Sarana and Indrajit 10
Afterwards he burnt the houses of Jambumali and Sumali.                                       11
 
That greatly resplendent monkey chief then one by one set fire to the houses of Rasmi Kethu, Surya Sathru, Hruswa karna, Damshtra, the Rakshasa called Romesa, Yudhonmatha, Matha, the Rakshasa called Dwajagreeva, the horrible Vidyujihwa, Hasthimukkha, Karaala, Pisacha, Sonithaksha, Kumbhakarna, Makaraksha, Yagna Shatru, Brhma Shatru, the very bad Nikumbha, Naranthaka and Kumbha but did not set fire to the house of Vibhishana.                                                                          12-16
 
That very famous monkey chief destroyed all the wealth contained in respective houses  palaces suitable for the rich .                                                                           17
 
That very courageous warrior after destroying everybody’s houses reached the house of Ravana who was the king of Rakshasas.                                                                  18
 
That valorous Hanuman after placing the fire which was on the tip of his tail which was burning wildly on that house which was similar to the Meru and Mandhara mountains, which was full of all good materials, which was decorated by several type of gems and which was the best among all the houses, roared like the clouds at the time of deluge.
 19-20
 
That fire burnt like the fire at the time of deluge joined with the wind and increased strongly and  many fold.                                                                    21
 
Because the wind spread that fire and mixed with air, the fire burnt wildly..     22
 
Those houses, which had spires, made of gold, which were inlaid with pearls and gems and which were full of costly luxurious materials broke in to pieces.                         23
 
Those broken palaces fell to the ground similar to  the houses of saintly people which fell back to earth once the effect of their good deeds were over.                                      24
(It was believed in Hinduism that till the effect of good deeds last, people will be in heaven and fall down to earth once the effect is over.)
 
That time huge sound of lament arose from the Rakshasas who were running to protect their own houses and those who have lost their courage and wealth, “ Ahoy, this is the real fire God and it has come taking the shape of a monkey.“                                  2.
 
Some ladies carrying their babies terribly scared and with disheveled hair jumped out of those houses  were completely upset.                                                                          26
 
They, who were falling from the sky, appeared as if they were streaks of lightning falling from the clouds.                                                                                                             27
 
That Hanuman saw those great houses made of diamond, coral, topaz, pearls and silver as if they were melted minerals.                                                                                     28
 
The fire was not satisfied by the grasses and pieces of wood. And similarly Hanuman was not at all satisfied by killing of Rakshasas.                                                                     29
 
And the earth also did not appear to be satisfied by the Rakshasas whom Hanuman has killed.                                                                                                                             30
 
The flames burnt in some places like the red flowers of Palasa trees, in some places like the flowers of silk cotton trees and is some places like that of Saffron.                       31
 
That great Hanuman who was extremely capable turned the entire city of Lanka in to ash similar to Lord Rudra who burnt the three cities.                                                    32
 
That fire placed by the very capable Hanuman, spread horribly, burnt further and by spreading its flames arose from the top of the mountain on which the city of Lanka was built.                                                                                                                              33
 
That fire fanned by wind after spreading from the houses, seemed to burn without smoke and applied with the Ghee of the bodies of rakshasas spread further like the fire at the time of deluge and seemed to touch the sky.                                                              34
 
That fire which had spread throughout the city of Lanka, which shined like crores of suns, shined greatly and appeared with great sounds to break the planet earth itself.    35
 
That time that greatly spread fire shined with horrible light and appeared as if it was flowers of the Palasa tree and the smoke emanating from the fire which was about to be put off looked like the bluish thick clouds of the sky.                                                    36
 
Various crowds of Rakshasas and the many animal groups of the city seeing that the houses and trees were burning, conversed together as follows,” Is it the Devendra with his Vajrayudha? Is he Varuna? Is he the God of Wind? Is he the Sun God? Is he the God of fire? Is he Kubhera, the God of wealth? Is he the moon God? Is he the God of death in person? Is it the anger of the four-faced Brahma who is the creator of all beings and who is the grand father of all taking the shape of a monkey? Or is it the Power of Vishnu, which is immeasurable, which is invisible, which is beyond thought and the greatest among all which has come for the destruction of rakshasas taking the shape of a monkey using its power of illusion which has come here?”                                                    37-40
 
Then at that time the entire city of Lanka where Rakshasas, horses, chariots, elephants, crowds of birds, animals and trees were burning and getting destroyed, cried loudly with open mouth and arousing great pity.                                                                 41
 
“Hey father, hey son, hey lover, hey friend, how much sorrow and what a well grown, pleasure filled life has been destroyed”, Thus shouted the crowd of  Rakshasas  horribly making  great sound .                                                                                               42
 
That city of Lanka which became the target of the anger of Hanuman was completely engulfed by fire and with its heroes destroyed as also  full of warriors torn in to pieces became like a city under curse.                                                                              43
 
That great hearted Hanuman saw Lanka which was full of Rakshasas who were running here and there out of nervousness, which was marked by the flames of raging fire and appeared as if it was earth which was destroyed by the curse of God.                  44
 
After destroying the city which had forests full of valuable trees and which had several such forests which were like a garland and after killing warriors who were very great in war that Hanuman who was the son of wind God rested happily for some time.       45
 
That monkey warrior chief standing firmly on the top of Trikoota Mountain with raging flame in his tail shone like the Sun with its bevy of rays.                                           46
 
That great Hanuman after destroying the forest which was full of many trees, after killing those huge Rakshasas and after setting fire to many houses of Rakshasas meditated on Rama for a moment.                                                                              47
 
At that time all the crowds of Devas praised that son of wind God who was very strong, who had similar speed as the  wind God, who was very intelligent and who was chief among monkey warriors.                                                                                           48
 
That great monkey after destroying the forest, after killing several rakshasas in war and after burning the very pretty city of Lanka appeared greatly resplendent.                 49
 
That very strong monkey chief after setting fire to the whole city of Lanka dipped his tail and put out the fire on it.                                                                                             50
 
All beings seeing the great monkey who was the chief among monkeys trembled thinking him as the fire of hell.                                                                                   51
 
All devas, great sages, Gandarwas, Vidhyadaras, Yakshas and all great beings became endlessly happy.                                                                                                          52
     Thus ends the fifty fourth  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:11:57 PM
Fifty-fifth Chapter
                              Fifty- fifth Chapter
                                              Fear of the monkey
(After seeing the entire city burning, suddenly Hanuman feels that Sita also might have been destroyed. He curses himself for causing such an eventuality because of his anger .Rethinking about the several immortal happenings and overhearing Charanas who told that Sita was alive, he decides to return after seeing Sita once more.)
 
That monkey Hanuman after burning to ashes the entire city of Lanka and seeing it with full of Rakshasas who were running because of fear , became thoughtful                          1
 
Hanuman became very dejected and thought, “Why did I do this action of burning the city of Lanka,” and started hating himself.                                                                          2
 
“He who can put off, the ebbing anger intelligently similar to a raging fire being put off by pouring water is indeed blessed. They are very great beings.”                               3
 
“Which of those who are controlled by anger does not commit sins? When you are angry you even kill respectful teachers. The male who is controlled by anger would insult good people by disrespectful words.”                                                                     4
 
“Man who is angry cannot distinguish between words which can be told and words which should not be told. There is nothing, which should not be done by one who is angry. In that state there is nothing which should not be told.”                                                     5
 
“He is only called a “Man”, who can remove anger by patience like serpent removes its coat.”                                                                                                                                 6
 
“I who have burnt without thought the great Sita should be despised as a fool, one without shame, first among sinners and traitor to the master.”                                       7
 
‘It is definite that like the city of Lanka being burnt, that lady Sita would have also been burnt and so my masters job was spoiled by my ignorant self.”                                     8
 
“The purpose for which this effort has been made, has been completely destroyed for while burning Lanka, I did not take care to save Sita.”                                                 9
 
“This great accomplishment ended in to a very insignificant one. There is no doubt that because of my anger I destroyed the root of this job.”                                                 10
 
“This entire city has turned in to ash and I do not see any place in the city not affected by fire. So most probably Janaki might have died.”                                                          11
 
“I feel that if that job has been destroyed due to my ignorance, then the only option for me is to commit suicide here and now.”                                                                      12
 
“Shall I fall in this fire which has burnt the city now? Or shall I make my body as food to the beings living in the sea?”                                                                                        13
 
“Is it  proper for me, who has spoiled all the job, to be seen alive by Sugreeva the king of monkeys and those two who are the greatest among males.”                           14
 
“The instability of monkeys which is famous in all the three worlds and which is an inborn nature for them, was shown by me personally because of my bad nature of being angry.”   15
 
“The proud nature which is not under the control of intellect and which does not allow one to have stability in natural instinct is to be despised. For even I, who am capable of great attainment, was not allowed to protect Sita because of my anger.”                    16
 
“If Sita dies, those two people also will die. On the death of those two people, Sugreeva and his relatives will also die.”                                                                                       17
 
“How will Bharatha ,who loves his brother and who is the storehouse of good qualities along with his brother Shatrugna, after hearing this news ,agree to live further.”         18
 
“Once the Ikshuvaku clan which is based on just action is destroyed, there is no doubt that all their citizens would come in to the clutches of the fire of sorrow.”                  19
 
“Therefore there is no doubt that I am one who is sick with anger, unlucky, one in whom the effect of just action is destroyed and one who destroys the world.”                       20
 
Hanuman who was thinking thus suddenly thought that there is a necessity to think of some good effects that happened to him and started thinking once again in detail.       21
 
“Possibly she who is very pretty and she who does only good for others, has escaped because of her immortal powers and would not have been destroyed. After all fire cannot destroy fire.”                                                                                                                      22
 
“She who is the wife of the resplendent personification of just action would have been saved by her virtue only and  that lady cannot even be touched by fire.”                      23
 
“Perhaps because of that, that fire whose nature is normally to burn due to the  power of Rama and virtue of Vaidehi is not burning me now.”                                    24
 
“How can she who is the wife of Rama who has stolen his mind, who is like God to the three Bharatha brothers, be ever destroyed.”                                                                25
 
“How is it that this fire, which has never proved ineffective, which is very powerful, which is personification of burning, did not even burn my tail? How can it then burn the lady Sita?”   26
 
Apart from this , Hanuman thought of the Mainaka Mountain rising up from the middle of the sea and then suddenly, was filled with wonder about one happening.                27
 
“That holy lady by her virtue, truth, and unmatchable love towards her husband can even burn fire itself. How can fire touch such a person like her?”                                        28
 
When Hanuman was thus thinking about the greatness of the holy lady, he heard the words Of Charanas who are the singers of praise in heaven.                                       29
 
“What to say, a very great valorous deed has been performed by Hanuman by horribly setting fire to the residences of Rakshasas.”                                                                30
 
“This city of Lanka sounded as if its palaces, walls and towers along with the caves inside the mountains were shouting and it is also filled with wail of running Rakshasis, children and old people and also the tumultuous sound of its citizens is booming. It has been completely burnt but the wonderful thing to us is that Janaki is spotless and has not been burnt.”                                                                                                              31-32
 
That Hanuman because of the various thoughts (proofs) in his mind, the good effects he was seeing and words of Charanas became very happy.                                           33
 
Then the monkey though he knew that the princess was out of danger, wanted to see her once more and decided to return after the wishes of his mind are satisfied.             34
 
 
        Thus ends the fifty fifth  chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:12:30 PM
Fifty-sixth Chapter
 
                          Fifty- sixth Chapter   
                                  Crossing of sea from Lanka
(Hanuman took leave of Janaki and climbed to the top of Lamba Mountain, preparing himself to cross the ocean. He assumed his very big form and rose from the mountain to the north)
 
Hanuman saluted Janaki who was sitting below the Simshuba tree unperturbed and told her, “I am happy to see that you are safe. And I am able to see you again by the grace of God.”                                                                                                                                 1
 
Then Sita seeing him, who has come again near her, told again some words which exhibited her love towards her husband.                                                                            2
 
“Hey destroyer of enemies, you are the only suitable one,  to get good results for this job as per your desire. Your strength is bound to be praised.”                                              3
 
“For that Kakustha prince Rama who can destroy all enemies, the only thing proper is for him to turn the city of Lanka upside down by his arrows and take me with him.”  4
 
“So you have to tell such words to him so that   that great warrior wins his enemies in war and  also such that the words are suited to a great soul like him.”                                     5
 
Hanuman after hearing her words, which were meaningful, which were logical and which were full of love , replied her in one sentence.                                                     6
 
“That Kakustha who is going to win over his enemies and who is going to wipe away your sorrow is soon going to come here surrounded by armies of monkeys and bears.”     7
 
After consoling Vaidehi thus, Hanuman prepared for the return and  bid farewell to Vaidehi.                                                                                                                      8
 
Afterwards, that monkey chief who is the killer of  his enemies,  with great enthusiasm to see his lord climbed the great Arishta Mountain.                                                        9
 
Hanuman the son of wind God climbed with happiness on that mountain, which had dense forests having tall Padmaka trees, which had clouds engulfed in between its peaks, which appeared as if has just woken up by the rays of Sun and appeared as if it was wearing the Dhothi and Uthariya (shoulder cloth), which appeared as if it was staring because of the several protruding minerals because they appeared as their eyes, which appeared as if it was a mountain chanting Vedas because of the sweet sounds resembling the shruthi of music made by the several spring waters of the mountain, Which appeared as if, it was a sage blessing the viewer because of the tall dense Devadaru trees, Which was echoing the great sounds of waterfalls , which appeared as if it was shaking because of the black autumn clouds, which appeared as if it was whistling because of the shaking flute like bamboos, which appeared it as if it was hissing due to jealousy because of  the great snakes in it, which appeared it as it was very many sages in trance because of the snow filled caves(all their organs are closed) , which had several small hills surrounding resembling pieces of clouds because of which it appeared if steps are taken to conquer, which had series of peaks which made it look like yawning and staring at the sky,  which was shining because of its several caves and several peaks arranged differently, which was surrounded by trees like coconut, Palmyra, Maruth and bamboo, which was decorated by several flowering ornamental climbers spread everywhere, which was filled with various types of animals, which was decorated by the springs of several minerals, which had large number of springs, which was populated by sages, Gandarwas,  Yakshas, Kinnaras and Nagas, which had many uprooted climbers and trees, which had many caves in which lions lived, which was populated by tigers and which had many trees with tasty fruits and tubers.                                                                                            10-21
 
In the pretty mountain valleys those rocks on which Hanuman stepped with firmness broke in to pieces and fell making lot of sound.                                                       22
 
That great monkey after climbing the great mountain deciding to go from the south to north started growing up in size.                                                                              23
 
The valorous son of wind, after climbing to the top of the mountain, saw the ocean filled with fishes and snakes.                                                                                             24
 
That monkey warrior who was the son of Wind god started from the south to north like the wind traveling in the sky.                                                                                   25
 
Then that great mountain trampled heavily by the monkey ,made huge sounds because of its Bhoothas, shaking peaks and breaking trees and also suddenly was pushed down inside the earth.                                                                                                          26
 
The trees with flowers broken by the speed of the thighs of Hanuman broke in to pieces and fell on to the earth like they were cut by the holy wheel (Chakra).                    27
(Lord Vishnu used the holy wheel as a weapon)
 
The roar of those greatly strong lions, which were suffering and came out of the caves, was heard breaking the sky.                                                                                    28
 
The Vidhyadara ladies with loosened dresses and shuffled ornaments suddenly came out of the mountain.                                                                                                   29
 
Those very thick and strong great snakes with their heads and necks were crushed and fell trampled spiting poison.                                                                         30
 
Then the Kinnaras, Nagas, Gandarwas, Yakshas and Vidhyadaras left the great mountain and went and stood in the sky.                                                                                    31
 
That very pretty mountain being attacked by the monkey sunk to the world below along with its tall trees and peaks.                                                                                          32
 
That mountain which was ten yojanas broad and thirty yojanas tall became equal to the ground level.                                                                                                               33
 
Making up his mind to cross the horrible salt sea along with shores being touched by waves that monkey effortlessly rose on to the sky.                                                     34
 
 
       Thus ends the fifty- sixth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:13:14 PM

                          Fifty- seventh Chapter   
                            Reaching the northern shore of the sea,
(Hanuman crossed the ocean and was received by the monkeys with happiness. He informed them that he has seen Sita. He also told them about the pitiable but virtuous condition she was in.)
 
Hanuman like a great ship crossing though the shore less ocean of the sky, which was having the moon as its flower, the worshipful sun as its water fowl, the stars Poosam (pushyam) and Thiruvonam (sravanam) as its swimming water birds, the clouds as its floating plants, the star Punarpoosam (Punarvasu) as its sharks, the planet mars as its crocodile, the rainbow as its great island, the star Swathi as the swan playing here and there, the movement of the cyclone as its waves, the rays of the moon as its cold water, the Nagas, Gandarwas and Yakshas as its fully opened lotus and lily flowers, swam effortlessly with the speed of the wind.      1-4
 
That great monkey who was the son of wind god and who had the blessings of Goddess Lakshmi moving in the sky appeared as if he was the moon who was going to swallow the sky, as if he was rubbing the sky, as if he was robbing the sky of its solar system and stars and as if he was dragging the crowd of clouds.                                                 5-6
 
Those great clouds were seen as white, red, blue, yellow mixed with red and green mixed with red.                                                                                                              7
 
Hanuman appeared similar to the moon by becoming invisible while entering the sky and shining when he came out of it.                                                                                      8
 
Then the warrior Hanuman clothed in white, hiding and coming out of various types of clouds, and  thus being visible and invisible at times appeared as if he was the moon.       9
 
Breaking out of the crowds of clouds, that son of wind god appeared as if he was an eagle in the sky.                                                                                                              10
 
That greatly resplendent Hanuman, after killing several great Rakshasas, after exterminating a horrible army, after spoiling the great city, after creating fear in Ravana, after talking with Vaidehi and after spreading his name everywhere ,flew above the sky for a second time making booming reverberating sound.                                         11-12
 
That valorous Hanuman after patting the great mountain Mainaka traveled with great speed like the arrow shot out of a bow.                                                                    13
 
That great monkey when he neared and saw the Mahendra Mountain, which resembled a cloud roared.                                                                                                            14
 
That monkey roared like the thunder and all the ten directions reverberated by his sound                                                                                                                            15
 
Anxious to see his close friends, that Hanuman when he neared the other shore, roared loudly and also shook his tail.                                                                              16
 
Because of the roar of Hanuman who was traveling in path of the sky, which is usually frequented by birds, that entire sky with its solar system ,appeared as if it was breaking.                                                  17
 
When it was like this, the very strong monkey  heroes anxious to see Hanuman were waiting in the northern shore of the ocean with great anxiety. They at that time listened to the great Hanuman’s roar, which was like the cloud’s thunder and also  the vibration made by his thighs.     18-19
 
All those monkeys, who normally live in forests,  heard the thunderous great roar of that monkey with a mind filled with anxiety                                                                  20
 
All those monkeys hearing the sound of Hanuman, which was echoing in all the four directions, waited to see their friend in person.                                                            21
 
Jambhavan, who was liked by all the monkey chiefs ,with a very happy frame of mind due to love, asked the monkeys to come near him and told them  as follows.            22
 
“This Hanuman has completed his task completely and there is no doubt about it because if he had not completed the job, his roar will not be like this.”                                  23-24
 
Hearing the roar of the great soul and the sound of vibrations of his hand and thighs, those monkeys jumped with joy, here and there.                                                       25
 
They with extreme desire to see Hanuman, with great enthusiasm jumped  from  the tip of one tree to another and from top of one tree  to another and .joined together to form a crowd.                                                                                                                        26
 
Then those enthusiastic monkeys broke the small flowering branches of the trees and  holding them in their hand waved them as if they were waving costly cloth banners. 27
 
The son of wind God and the very strong Hanuman roared making sounds like the wind entering the mountain cave.                                                                                              28
 
Those monkeys stood with folded hands to welcome that great monkey who was rushing towards them like a huge black cloud.                                                                              29
 
Then that monkey, who was as strong as a mountain, got down in one of the thickly wooded peaks of Mahendra Mountain.                                                                          30
 
That Hanuman fully overjoyed jumped on to the mountain spring, from the sky like a featherless hill.                                                                                                    31
 
Pleased because of that, all those monkey chiefs surrounded Hanuman and came near him.     32
 
All of them surrounded Hanuman with great love. On seeing him safe they came near him with fully pleased faces, because of that.                                                           33
 
Those monkeys brought fruits and tubers and offered them to the monkey chief.         34
 
Then that Hanuman saluted Jambhavan, other teachers and elderly ones as well as Angadha, who was their crown prince.                                                               35
 
That Hanuman who was a great warrior and who was honourable was praised by those two (Jambhavan and Angadha), and worshipped by other monkeys and shortly informed them that”Sita was seen by me”                                                                                36
(Hanuman uses short message to inform all of them that the mission was accomplished).
 
Hanuman who was very happy, then interlinked arms with Angadha who was the son of Bali and went and sat in a very pretty spot in the forest and addressing all monkeys told them as follows.                                                                                                      37
 
“That daughter of Janaka who is young, who was occupying the Asoka forest, who was being guarded by cruel Rakshasis, who had one single dropping plait , whose hair was tufted, who was dirty, who does not have reason not to be famous, who is anxious to see Rama and who was tired and famished because of starvation was seen by me.    38-39
 
All those monkeys hearing the nectar like word, “ I have seen” which was also very meaningful, became extremely happy.                                                                      40
 
Some very strong ones started jumping, some others made sounds, some others roared and some others made sounds like”  Kil Kila” and others echoed it.                           41
 
Some other monkey warriors because of extreme happiness lifted up their tails and rotated their pretty thick tails over their head.                                                            42
 
Some incomparably strong monkeys came jumping from the top of the mountain and with great pleasure embraced Hanuman who was similar to an elephant.                 43
 
Addressing Hanuman who had comprehensively told the information to all monkey warriors, Angada ,told the following good words.                                                 44
 
“Because you have jumped and crossed the very broad sea and returned back, Hey monkey, there is none equal to you in strength and valour.”                                   45
 
“What a great devotion you have to our lord, what valour, what courage, that famous holy lady who is the wife of Rama has been seen by you because of God’s blessings.”   46
 
“It is very good, that Kakustha will forsake the sorrow due to parting of Sita.        47
 
Those monkeys surrounded the big rocks on which Hanuman, Angadha and Jambhavan were sitting   with great happiness in their mind.                                           48
 
All those monkey warriors stood still with folded hands interested in hearing about the crossing of the sea, about Lanka, about Sita and about Ravana and were seeing the face of Hanuman.                                                                                                                   49-50
 
At that time the lucky Angadha who  was looked up by several monkeys appeared similar to Devendra who was looked up by all devas.                                                              51
 
That very high and great mountain top which was being occupied  by Hanuman who was famous and the famous Angadha who wore armlets was resplendent because of its luck.                     
                                                                                                                                     52
 
      Thus ends the fifty seventh chapter of Sundara Kanda which
       is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:16:04 PM
Fifty-eighth Chapter
 
                          Fifty- eighth Chapter   
                                Telling the happenings of Lanka
(In this chapter Hanuman informs his monkey friends all that happened after he took off and till he returned. This chapter is the summary of all the previous 57 chapters of Sundara Kanda.)
 
Hanuman and other very strong monkeys sitting in the top of Mahendra Mountain attained incomparable mental peace at that time.                                               1
 
After taking their seat ,Jambhavan and other dear, very happy and great monkeys enquired about the events that happened till then  from Hanuman, who was the son of wind god, and who was extremely peaceful.                                                                  2
 
“How did you happen to see the holy lady? How is she? How does the ten headed one who does cruel deeds behave with her? We would like to know.”                         3
 
“Hey great monkey. Please tell all this in detail to us, as it happened. After understanding the happenings we would all decide our future course of action.”                              4
 
“What news should we, who have gone there and returned back tell? What aspect of the events should not be told? You who are very intelligent should tell about this to us in detail.                                                                                                                         5
 
(Our Smrithis tell that the  truth, which hurts, should not be told. In fact later Hanuman does not tell anything about his exploits and anything about the burning of Lanka to Rama feeling that he may think that he is boasting.)
 
Thus ordered by Jambhavan, that Hanuman became pleased with extreme happiness and saluted Sita by bowing his head and replied.                                                              6
 
“Did I not rise from the top of Mahendra Mountain, which was standing before you, fixing my mind firmly with a wish to reach the southern shore of the ocean.”           7
 
“Then a golden, divine , pretty  and horror  filling peaks of  one mountain  lay  in front of me as if it is intended to prohibit my journey. Then I thought as follows.”                 8
 
“Since it was in lying in my way. I thought that the mountain was trying to stop me.”     9
 
I neared the divine and golden mountain and decided in my mind that, “This mountain  is fit to be broken,”                                                                                                              10
 
“The peak of that very big mountain which was almost touching the sun, was hit by my swinging tail and was broken in to thousand pieces.”                                                     11
 
“What a surprise, that great mountain understanding well my intentions, called me with great love., “ dear son” and  making that word sound as if to melt my mind.”            12
 
“Please understand that I am well known as Mainaka and I live in the great ocean. Please also understand that I am a close relation of Wind God and thus your close relative from the father’s side.”                                                                                                       13
 
“Child , once upon a time , the great mountains used to have wings and were traveling all over the world giving trouble to people.”                                                                      14
 
“The God Indra who had killed the Asura called Paka , seeing this bad aspect of the mountain , started cutting in to pieces these wings of these mountains.”                         15
 
“Hey dear, I only was saved from Indra by your father by being swept away and  lodged deeply in to the sea.”                                                                                                    16
 
“Hey, killer of the enemies, I should behave in a way which is of help to Lord Rama, as he is similar to Indra in his valour  and is the greatest among those who are charitable “  17
 
“After I heard the words of the great Mainaka , I made him understand what needs to be done and my mind got prepared for completing my job.”                                              18
 
“Though Mainaka  is a great mountain, it took the shape of a human being and permitted me to go and that great mountain  stayed in the middle of the ocean in the form of a mountain itself.”                                                                                                             19
(The word ‘Andharhita’ used in this sloka does not mean that he disappeared as  in the 57th chapter, Hanuman has been seen as patting the mountain on his way back and in Yudha Kanda, Rama shows Mainaka Mountain on his way back from Lanka,)
 
“Then I thought of the remaining long distance which remained  to be covered  and became very fast  and sped with vigour for a lot of time.”                                        20
 
“Then I saw the divine lady Surasa who was the mother of Nagas. That holy lady stood in the middle of the ocean and told me, :”Hey monkey chief, devas have decided that you are going to be my food and I have got you after a very long long time. So I am going to eat you.”                                                                                                                       21=22
 
“I felt dejected after what Surasa told me   and with humble salutation, I told her as follows.”                                                                                                                     23
 
“Rama who was the son of Dasaratha  along with his brother Lakshmana  and wife Sita  entered the Dandaka forest and was living there.”                                                         24
 
“:His wife Sita was abducted by the bad hearted Ravana. I am going because of the order of Rama as his emissary. You who are living in the kingdom of Rama should render necessary help to me.”                                                                                                     25
 
“Otherwise after rendering necessary help to Mythili and seeing Rama , I myself will enter your mouth. I am telling this as an oath to you.”                                                  26
 
:”That Surasa who could assume any form that she chose, after being told by me like that, :told, “Nobody should cross and go beyond me, this is my boon.” “                              27
 
“After being told like this by Surasa , within a second I assumed a form of ten Yojanas long and 5 yojanas thick.”                                                                                              28
 
“At that time she was also able to open her mouth suitable to my size. Seeing her wide open mouth I made my body small.”                                                                            29
(It is told that he assumed a form of hundred yojanas wide step by step in Chapter 1, slokas 171-181)
 
 “Within a very short  time, I became as small as a thumb  and I went inside her mouth  and within a minute came out.”                                                                                       30
 
“That deva lady Surasa  assumed her normal form  and addressing me told,” Hey great one, I have become pleased with you. Hey calm one, go as you wish so that you can complete your job. , Hey monkey chief, bring Vaidehi with the great Raghava together . Hey monkey, go further, pleased with yourself.””                                    31-32
 
“Then I was appreciated by all beings as “Good, very good.”  And I effortlessly went in to the broad sky like an eagle.”                                                                                   33
 
“When it was like this I found that only my shadow was being stopped and I could not see anything anywhere.”                                                                                    34
 
 
“Because my speed was taken away, I searched in all the ten directions and I could not find that which was preventing my speed.”                                                                  35
 
“I could not see an shape any where. In spite of that a problem has arisen like this in the clear sky. :A thought as to ’why is this?” arose in my mind.                                         36
 
“Thoughtful as I was , my sight did not spread down. After that I saw a horrible Rakshasi who was lying inside the water.”                                                                                     37
 
“She with terrible form told me the following words with enthusiasm which reflected truly her mind, which never gave any room for doubt, which were not causing good and which were like a roar.”                                                                                            38
 
 
“Hey, fat one, where are you going? You appear to be proper food for me who is very hungry. Satisfy  my body ,which has been starving for a long time.”                        39
 
“I agreed to her words  and increased the size of my body to a size bigger than her face.”    40
 
“Her mouth also grew big  and terrible for eating me. She did not know either my strength or my trick.”                                                                                       41
 
“So I reduced my very big size in to very small one within a second and removed her heart  and jumped back in to the sky.”                                                                        42
 
“She who lived in the saline sea and who was as fat as a mountain fell dead with outstretched hands  having lost her hands.”                                                                 43
 
“I also heard the words of holy people who were traveling in the sky along with Charanas  saying that, ”the terrible Rakshasi called Simhika has been killed with in a second by Hanuman.””                                                                                                                 44
 
“After killing her , thinking about that dangerous deed , I covered  a long distance and reached the place where the city of Lanka existed  and saw the southern ocean shore of that town decorated by mountains, I entered in to the city which was the residence of Rakshasas after the Sun has set  in a manner in which even the valorous Rakshasas could not see me..”                                                                                      45-46
 
“At the time of my entering some lady with an action  similar to the clouds of deluge roared  and came before me.”                                                                                          47
 
“Then at that time , I hit and defeated  her ,who came to kill me , who was horrible looking and  who had hairs like a raging fire ,  with a folded left fist and she with great fear told me “Hey, valorous one , I am the city of Lanka and I have been defeated  by your valour and because of that you have become capable of defeating the entire  Rakshasas.” And then I entered in side the city during Pradosha.(after setting of the sun and before night fell).”                                                                                 48-49
 
“After searching for the daughter of Janaka that entire night I entered the harem of  Ravana but I was not able to see  that pretty lady.”                                                50
 
“I was not able to see her in the palace of Ravana also and because of that, being drowned in the sea of sorrow whose shores were not visible to me.”                            51
 
“I who was very sad, then saw a very great garden which was very peculiar and surrounded by golden walls.”                                                                           52
 
“I  jumped and crossed the wall and saw a garden with many trees. In the middle of that Asoka forest I saw a huge Simshuba tree. I climbed and sat on that  tree and saw a golden forest of Banana plants.”                                                                                  53-54
 
“I saw sitting on that Simshuba tree  at  a slight distance attractive coloured and lotus petal eyed Sita who was dark.,  who had a faded face due to starvation, who had dust coated hair, who was looking famished due to  sorrow, who was wearing the same cloth that we saw earlier, and who was only concentrating her mind in the good of her husband, surrounded by  Rakshasis who have horrible form , who eat flesh and blood  and who are cruel by nature and this sight was similar to  a deer being looked after by a group of tigers.” 55-57
 
“With lot of difficulty I reached the place where I could properly see Sita, who was bullied by the Rakshasis frequently, who was in a miserable state, who was doing the only work of concentrating her mind on her husband, who had made up her hair in a single lock, who was lying down on the floor, who was like a lotus flower in winter, who was dejected because she saw no way to escape from Ravana, who had decided to die immediately and who was doe eyed.”                                                             58-59
 
“Seeing the lady who was wife of Rama in that state  of not being subject to notoriety
, I continued on the Simshuba tree and observed her carefully.”                        60
 
“Then I heard the very loud sound  of “Hala hala:” of the anklets and waist belts emanating from the palace of Ravana.”                                                                                  61
 
“At that time being very sad  I made my form in to a very tiny one  and sat  without moving in between the leaves of the Simshuba tree like a bird.”                       62
 
:”Afterwards the wives of Ravana and the very strong Ravana came towards the place where Sita has been kept  .Sita with the pretty thighs  seeing the chief of Rakshasas coming towards her,  folded and drew her thighs towards her and hid her breasts by both her hands.”                                                                                                         63-64
(This stanza gives an indication of the dress which she was wearing. It appears to be the two piece dress worn by women of the olden times.)
 
“That base ten headed one , addressing  that Sita who was in great difficulty, who was trembling, who was seeing here and there, who was very sad because she saw no way out of her difficulties, who was depressed and who was praying God told, “Hey Sita, respect me. Hey proud one, you are not recognizing me because of  your pride. . So if you continue in this state for another two months, I will drink all your blood.””     65-67
 
“Hearing these words of Ravana who was a bad soul, Sita became very angry  and told the following great words.”                                                                             68
 
“Hey base Rakshasa, Why is it that your toungue does not get detached because of saying these bad words  addressing the daughter in law of Dasaratha  who belonged to the clan of Ikshu Vaku  and  the wife of the very powerful Rama.”                                            69
 
“Hey sinner who is ungentlemanly , your valour which consisted of stealing me in the absence of my husband and when he was not able to see me is definitely meager.”   70
 
“You are not at all equal to Rama and you would not be appointed as a servant of him for that Raghava is truthful , worshipful and great admirer of war.”                                   71
( The idea expressed in the last sloka that he was a deceit and poor in war is expressed in different words.)
 
“Hearing these words from Janaki which were demeaning  that ten headed one glittered in anger like the fire  of the funeral pyre.”                                                                     72
 
“He rolled his two blood red eyes  and with his right fist  started killing Sita and  his  ladies shouted “Ha, Ha” “                                                                                                73
 
“Mandodari , the wife of the ten headed one and who was a great lady, stood up from the middle of the ladies  and was stopped from carrying out his intention.”                 74
( In the 40th sloka of 22nd chapter it is mentioned that he was prevented by Dhanya Mala. Scholars are of the opinion that Dhanya Mala was a different name of Mandodari She is the daughter of Maya the Asura architect and given as a gift to him by Goddess Parvathy..)
 
“She told him who was in great passion using sweet words ,” Hey Ravana who is equal to Indra, What is the use of Sita to you?”                                                          75
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:17:01 PM
“Hey Lord, be happy by taking pleasure from  the deva, Gandharwa and Yaksha maidens  who are here. What are you going to do with Sita?”                                                    76
 
“Then that very strong Rakshasa was pacified by the ladies who were with him and was taken back to his palace.”                                                                                                77
 
“After the departure of the ten headed one  those horrible faced Rakshasis  without mercy and using cruel words terrorized Sita.”                                                                           78
 
“Sita considered their words as cheap and as mere grass and the tumult created by them became in vain before Sita.”                                                                                           79
 
“Calmed down after their  useless shouting those flesh eating Rakshasis  informed Ravana that “The decision of Sita is indeed firm.””                                                   80
 
“Then all of them after being dejected  and depressed  joined together surrounded her on all four sides and started sleeping.”                                                                                 81
 
“After all of them were asleep, Sita who was always only thinking of her husbands interests becoming extremely sad because of her dangerous state , wept.”                   82
 
“Then Trijata rose from their midst and spoke the following words.”                       83
 
“You can eat me just now. This lady who is the daughter in law of Dasaratha and the daughter of Janaka will not be destroyed.”                                                                    84
(This is again contradictory o earlier narration .Trijata told about her dream to the Rakshasis while they were terrorizing Sita)
 
“Just now I truly , saw a dream which is  terrible, making my hairs all  over my body  stand out .It was about the destruction of all Rakshasas and the victory of her Lord.”        85
 
  “Let us all beg this Vaidehi , for being  protected without any condition from  Raghava. I think this is the only proper thing to do.”                                                                86
 
“Such a sad person  about whom this dream was seen  is going to be devoid of all sorrows soon  and is going to attain incomparable happiness in several ways.”            87
 
“Mythili who is the daughter of Janaka would become pleased the moment you salute her.”   88
 
“Then that lady became shy  and became happy thinking of the victory of her husband  and told , ”If this is true I would definitely be a  support to all of you.”        89
(These words of Sita are not there in the earlier narration.)
 
“Seeing her in  that miserable state , I patiently thought of her in my mind but my mind did not rest in peace.”                                                                                                        90
 
“I thought of a method by which conversation can be initiated between me and Janaki. So I sang the praise of the Ikshuvaku dynasty itself.”                                                        91
 
“That holy lady hearing the praise of the kings of her dynasty , with tear stained  eyes saw me and questioned me as follows.”                                                                       92
 
“Hey monkey chief, who are you? For what reason and how did you come here? How did attachment develop between you and  Rama ? Please tell all this in detail to me.” ”Hearing her words  I answered her thus.”                                                               93-94
 
“Hey holy lady, your husband Rama  has gained the help from some one called Sugreeva. He is the king of monkeys, very strong, very valorous  and a great warrior.” 95
 
“Please know that I who have come here  is his minister Hanuman. Your husband Rama who does any job fully has send me here as his emissary.”                                  96
 
“Hey famous lady, that  son of Dasaratha who is a lion among men and also a great gentleman, has sent his signet ring to you  as a memento.”                                     97
 
“So lady, I am waiting for your orders. What should I do? I can take you to Rama and Lakshmana, What do you think about it?”                                                                      98
 
“Sita who is the daughter of Janaka after hearing this  and understanding perfectly my words, Replied” Let Raghava himself take me back after killing Ravana,””            99
 
“I bowed to the lady who was beyond any blemish with  my head and after saluting her begged her to give a memento which would make Rama happy.”                          100
 
“Then Sita addressing me told “Be  pleased take that great gem seeing which Rama the valorous would appreciate you a lot.”                                                                      101
 
“After saying thus that great lady gave me a wonderful gem. Alas! She became very sad and requested me to tell the news by only words.”                                                  102
 
“After that having finished my allotted job, I saluted the princess and went round her with an intention of returning back.”                                                                                 103
 
“She then thought every thing over within her mind and told”, Hey, Hanuman, please inform my story to Raghava..””                                                                             104
 
“Please take that action which would result in the immediate arrival of those valorous Rama and Lakshmana along with Sugreeva.”                                                      105
 
“My allotted time to be alive is only two more months. If this does not happen, I would die like an orphan and Kakustha (Rama) would not be able to see me.”           106
 
“ “Hearing those pitiable words, I became very angry and I also decided my future course of action.”                                                                                                             107
 
“Because of that my body grew like a mountain. At that time desiring for war I started destroying that forest.(Asoka Vana)”                                                                    108
 
“Those scary faced Rakshasis woke up at that time and saw  that forest which was full of  scared animals and birds., being destroyed .”                                                       109
 
“They assembled in groups here and there in the forest  neared and saw me and informed Ravana.”                                                                                                                 110
 
“Hey very powerful king, one  bad monkey , without the knowledge of your valour  has destroyed your forest which cannot be entered by anybody.”                                 111
 
“Hey king of kings, that monkey should certainly be destroyed. So please sentence that ignorant one which has done undesirable acts against you to death .”                  112
 
“Rakshasas called Kinkaras who are difficult to win over and who obey the mind of Ravana were sent by him on hearing this and reached there.”                              113
 
“In the corner of the forest I killed eighty thousand of them armed with spear  and thorned sticks with a steel pestle.”                                                               114
 
“Some among them who escaped death  went fast and informed Ravana about the destruction of the large army.”                                                                     115
 
“I got renewed vigour and wisdom and left the place where I was and neared the victory stage . I killed several Rakshasas who were there with a pillar removed from the stage and thus that stage which was an ornament to the city of  Lanka was destroyed.”      116
 
“After that Jambumali the son of Prahastha  along with horrible rakshasas of terrible form were ordered to fight with me.”                                                                                   117
 
“I killed that Rakshasa who was an expert in war  along with his  big army  and those who accompanied them with the same terrible iron pestle itself.”                           118
 
“Hearing this the great king Ravana  sent the very powerful sons of ministers along with a big army which consisted of  also foot soldiers , I sent all of them to the city of Yama using the same iron pestle.”                                                                              119-120
 
“Having heard that the valorous sons of ministers were killed in war, Ravana sent five valorous army commanders and I killed all of them along with their army. 121-122
 
“After that the ten headed Ravana send Aksha who was his son, as well as a great hero along with several Rakshasas.”                                                                                      123
 
“I caught hold of the prince , who was an expert in war, who was the son of Mandodari, , who rose to the sky and who was wearing steel armour  by his two legs, rotated him in the sky and killed him.”                                                                                         124
 
“Having heard the death of Aksha that ten headed Ravana, became very angry and send secondly Indrajit who was very angry, who was very strong, and an expert in war.”     
                                                                                                                                  125
“I became greatly pleased by making him who was a hero among Rakshasas and other Rakshasas very weak and dejected.”                                                                        126
 
“Having been sent with great hope by Ravana and having been accompanied by very many valorous Rakshasas , that hero seeing that his army though valorous was being destroyed  and unable to correctly estimate my strength, became jittery at that time and made me a prisoner by Brahmasthra itself.”                                                        127-128
 
“Then those Rakshasas who were there, tied me with ordinary rope and dragged and took me to the presence of Ravana.”                                                                                129
 
“I being there within his sight, was conversed to by that bad soul Ravana and was asked about my coming to Lanka and about the killing of Rakshasas.”                          130
 
“”I told that,  all that were done for the sake of Sita.”                                             131
 
“I am the adopted son of the wind God and am a monkey called Hanuman. Wanting to see you in person I was waiting to be brought near you from the place in front of Sita.”          132
 
“Please know that I am an emissary of Rama and a minister of Sugreeva and I have come to you along with the message of Rama.”                                                                 133
 
“That greatly resplendent king Sugreeva sent the news of his well being. He also told these words which are essence of Dharma(justice), Kama(desire) and Moksha(salvation) , which are very suitable to this occasion, and which are good for you.”                   134
 
“The great Hero Rama promised his friendship to me who was living in the dense forests of Rishya Mooka.”                                                                                                     135
 
“He told me as follows,” King, my wife has been abducted by a Rakshasa and you have to help me to the best of your capacity willingly.””                                                 136
 
“Then these words were told by me,” Please also undertake to help in killing Bali for my sake.””                                                                                                                          137
 
“That great Lord Raghava who was accompanied by Lakshmana signed a treaty,  with fire as a witness,  with Sugreeva whose kingdom was stolen by Bali.”                        138
 
“After killing Bali by one arrow in war by Rama , I who was the lord among monkeys was appointed as their king.”                                                                               139
 
“It is our duty do help him as much as possible in this case. It is by him according to laws of justice that an emissary has been sent to you.”                                                       140
 
“Let Sita be returned forthwith and be presented to Raghava. If this is done monkey warriors will not destroy your valour.”                                                                        141
 
“Who does not know the prowess of the monkeys who are being invited in to the presence of even the devas.”                                                                                           142
 
“I told him that, ”The monkey king told me to tell all these.” And he stared at me with ire filled  eyes as if to burn me.”                                                                                     143
 
“Without realizing  my strength that sinful cruel Rakshasa named Ravana ordered that I should be killed.”                                                                                                          144
 
“There , his brother Vibishana  who was a wise one, begged him as follows for my sake.”
                                                                                                                                     145
 
“Hey , Chief of Rakshasas, do not do like this. This opinion has to be rejected because you should take action according to the laws of kings.”                                             146
 
“Hey, king of Rakshasas, in the laws of kings no where the killing of an emissary is prescribed. It is necessary to understate the real state of affairs from an emissary who tells the good of his side.”                                                                                                   147
 
“Hey, greatly valorous one, even though a very great crime is committed, killing of an emissary is never done but he can be disfigured.”                                                        148
 
“Thus requested by Vibishana, Ravana ordered the rakshasas, “This only has to be done.
Let its tail be burnt.”                                                                                                       149
 
“According to his orders my entire tail was covered with torn cotton cloths and ropes made of jute.”                                                                                                                150
 
“Then those very valorous Rakshasas beat me with whatever firewood they got as well as their fists  and set fire to my tail.”                                                                                  151
 
“Though I was caught by the Rakshasas and tied by several ropes ,  I had the intention of the seeing the town in broad day light, I never even felt slightly tired.”                  152
 
“Because it was like that, those Rakshasa warriors brought me to the entrance of the city and in the main avenue shouted at me who was imprisoned  and whose tail  burning by fire.” 153
 
“From there I made my very big body to a very small one, got loosened from the ties and again assumed the original big form.”                                                                      154
 
“I killed all those Rakshasas with a steel pestle  and with a jump climbed on the top  of the door of their town.”                                                                                              155
 
“Similar to the fire of deluge burning all people, I without hesitation  burnt the entire town  along with its houses and towers  using my burning tail.”                              156
 
“Then I started thinking with sadness as follows,” The entire city has been made in to ash. There is no place in Lanka, which is not burnt. And so definitely Janaki would not be alive .There is no doubt about it that ,  I who was trying to burn Lanka also burnt Sita also. Thus the great job of Rama was made useless by me.”  “                         157-158
 
“Then I heard the sweet news from the Charanas who were talking of strange news who told that, “Janaki alone has not been burnt and did not suffer any sorrow.””             159
 
“Hearing the wonderful news that Sita did not suffer any sorrow and from the reasons told hereafter I felt consoled.”                                                                        160
 
“Even when my tail was burning, I did not feel any heat and the wind was blowing cold and also my mind was happy.”                                                                            161
 
“I became happy because of  the thought in my mind of  those real happenings . various acts, which resulted in good and the predictions, made as well as the words of the sages. Even when it was like that I met Vaidehi once again  and was bidden farewell by her.”       
162
 
“From there I reached the top of mountain called Arishta  and with a deep desire to see all of you started my return jump.”                                                                                   163
 
“After that traveling in the path in the sky frequented by Wind, Moon, Sun, Sidhas, Gandarwas, and others I have just seen you all.”                                                         164
 
“By the power Of Raghava  and your shining mien , I was able to complete the job of Sugreeva .”                                                                                                                  165
 
“I have told all that has happened in this case in a summary manner. Let it be decided as to what is to be done in future based on this.”                                                            166
 
       Thus ends the fifty eighth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:17:37 PM
Fifty-ninth Chapter
 
                          Fifty- ninth Chapter   
                                Thinking about the future action
 
(Hanuman then narrates the problems of Sita in Lanka in a graphical manner. He tells the other monkeys that as a virtuous woman she herself could kill Ravana but is not doing so,  because it would bring bad fame to her husband,)
 
After telling all these in detail, Hanuman told the important matter that needed to be told and ended his speech.                                                                                              1
 
“My mind has been set at calm after seeing the virtuousness of Sita personally. The work of Rama has born fruits. Similarly the zest of Sugreeva also has borne fruits.”         2
(Work of Rama is searching for Sita)
 
“Ravana who is the chief of Rakshasas  and one who is great for doing penances is certainly capable of protecting all the world. If he becomes angry he can also destroy the world. His body has not been destroyed after touching her because of the power of his penance.”                                                                                                               3
(Translators like Kamban and Thulasi das could not bear, Sita to be touched by Ravana and so they have changed this aspect in their translation  .While Kamban says that Ravana uprooted her house along with her, Thulasi das assumes that she whom he took to Lanka is only an image.)
 
“Whatever action taken when blackened by anger by  that virtuous lady who is the daughter of Janaka , cannot even be done by the flames of fire that are touched by hand.” 4
 
“That lady who is the epitome of justice is steeped in the ocean of sorrow below a Simshuba tree in the middle of Asoka forest owned by that bad soul , Ravana.”        5             
 
“Like the crescent of moon hidden by series of clouds, she is surrounded by Rakshasis and has wilted due to sorrow and lives a life without luster.”                                           6
 
“That daughter of Janaka has been imprisoned, but that virtuous pretty lady does not bother about the very strong Ravana.”                                                                             7
 
“That Vaidehi who is virtuous considered from any aspect, without any other thought, always thinks with love of Rama like the Indrani does about Indra.”                                8
 
“Sita is still dressed in the cloth she was dressed when abducted, she is coated with dust , faded because of sorrow , is very lean and always thinks about the good of her husband.”     
9
 
“I saw her in the garden of the harem surrounded by ugly looking Rakshasis, who were terrorizing her  often.”                                                                                                    10
 
“I wish that she, who is doe eyed, who always thinks of her husband, who had made up her hair in a single bundle, who is sleeping on the floor, who is like the lotus flower in winter, who had decided to commit suicide because she was not able to see any way to escape from Ravana and who is in a miserable situation, gains confidence with lot of effort.”                                                                                                                      11-12
 
“After that I conversed with her. She was informed of everything. She became happy on hearing the treaty between Rama and Sugreeva.”                                                        13
 
“That Rama who is of firm conviction, who follows all good principles and who is great would become only an instrument in case of killing of Ravana. It is only because of her devotion to her husband that she is not killing Ravana.”                                               14
(Hanuman clears the doubt of other monkeys who feel that as a virtuous woman she herself could have killed Ravana. He tells them that she is not doing so because of her devotion to her husband.)
 
“By nature she is lean, Because of her being taken away from her husband’s company she has further become lean similar to the one who learns without understanding.”  15   
 
 
“That Sita who is great is thus drowned in sorrow. Let us now do what all should be done in this case.”                                                                                                         16-17
 
       Thus ends the fifty ninth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
       is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:18:04 PM
Sixtieth Chapter
 
                            Sixtieth Chapter
                                       Words of Angadha 
  (Angadha who is the crown prince and leader of the team tells his opinion as to what needs to be done. He feels that they should wage a war, destroy the Rakshasas  and take Sita along with them. The wise Jambhavan diplomatically points out  that they should do according to the wish of Rama)
 
Hearing these words ,Angadha the son of Bali told as follows.                           1
(Many available texts of Sundra Kandam ascribe these words also to Hanuman. But this version appears more natural and truthful.)
“Because of the information given to you all now, let us all convince  the great nobles like Jambhavan, to see those two princes  along with Vaidehi.”                                    2
 
“I myself alone am sufficient to kill all the Rakshasas, the city of Lanka and the very strong Ravana by my strength.”                                                                               3
 
“Should I add further when all of you monkeys who are heroes, strong ones, courageous ones, and those ones who know the science of archery are surrounding me?”            4
(The monkeys including Angadha and Sugreeva do not use archery in war but fight with trees and hills)
 
“By myself  fighting the war alone , I will be able to kill Ravana, his army , people who accompany him and his brothers.”                                                                                 5
 
“I can destroy Brahmasthra, Indrasthra, Rudrasthra, Vayvasthra, Varunasthra and also those which are not known to us in war but sent by Indrajit. I can kill all Rakshasas. Once I get your permission, my prowess would subdue him.”                                              6-7
 
“The incomparable rain of stones which I am capable of sending without rest is capable of even killing devas. Is it necessary for me to mention Rakshasas?”                          8
 
“Even the ocean can cover all its shore and even the Mandhara Mountain can be shaken but the army of our enemies cannot shake Jambhavan.”                                               9
 
“The destruction of All those people standing in front of Rakshasa armies can singly be done by the son of wind God himself.”                                                                      10
 
“By the speed of the thighs of Panasa and Neela even the Mandhara Mountain could be destroyed and so what of the Rakshasa soldiers?”                                                           11
 
“Please tell one single individual among Devas, Asuras, Yakshas, Gandharwas, Nagas and birds who are capable of facing Mainda and Dwividha in war.”                            12
 
“They both are very lucky monkey chiefs who are the sons of Aswini Devas. I do not know any one who can fight with them in the battle field.”                                             13
 
“Both of them have got their strength from the boon of Brahma  and have great prowess. They have drunk nectar and are the best among all the  monkeys.”                               14
 
“Don’t you know that in the ancient times Lord Brahma who is the grand father of the entire world for the sake of respecting Aswini Devas has given those a very incomparable stature to them and also non destruction by others as a boon.”                                  15
 
“Those two great monkey warriors because of the power conferred to them by the boon, beat the great army of Devas and escaping from them and also drank nectar.”            16
 
“There is no need for other monkeys but these two powerful ones alone are capable of destroying the city of Lanka with its army consisting of horses and chariots.”           17
 
“Hey, monkeys, it is not proper at this time for us who are knowing everything for going in front of Raghava without Sita.”                                                                                 18
 
“I think that it is not proper for you who are famous and endowed with valour to go there and say that, we saw the holy lady but we did not bring her.””                                    19
 
“Hey, monkey chiefs, in this world which consists of Devas and Asuras, there is no one who can be compared with us in the matter of jumping and valour.”                            20
 
“What else is there in this matter but to take Sita along with us from that place where large number of Rakshasas have been killed by Hanuman? “                                          21
 
“The very able Jambhavan who was the chief among monkeys being pleased told the following very meaningful words to Angadha after hearing his opinion.”                     22
 
“Hey, prince , what you intend to do is not something impossible for us now. But please see that what should be done should be based on the intelligent thought of Rama. “    23
 
 
         Thus ends the sixtieth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:18:45 PM
Sixty-first Chapter
 
                          Sixty -first  Chapter 
                                  Destruction of Honey forest
(The monkeys start their return journey and reached the honey forest of Sugreeva. Being given permission to drink the honey, they destroy the forest , insult and hurt Dadhimuka who was the uncle of Sugreeva and in charge of the security of the forest.)
 
The great monkey Hanuman and other monkey warriors including Angadha agreed to the suggestion of Jambhavan.                                                                                                 
All those monkeys who were as big as Meru and Mandhara mountains, who were like elephants who were aroused ,who were very strong, who were having huge sized bodies, who had thought properly of methods to complete the work of Raghava which would bring them great fame  and had achieved their objectives and who were enthusiastic because of that , who were in a hurry to tell the good news and who were anxious to fight the war became determined to show their gratitude to Rama and followed Hanuman who was  praised by all beings, who was very strong, who was very clever, and who was very wise, as if they were carrying him with their eyes, and left Mahendra mountains and rushed together as if to hide the sky.                                                                2-6
 
Those monkeys who had jumped towards the sky and who were rushing fast within a short time reached a forest which was full of plants and climbers and which was similar to a garden.                                                                                                              7
 
That forest which could not be entered by any animal , which was stealing the minds of all beings and which was being  looked after properly was the “Honey forest”  of Sugreeva.                                                                                                                    8
(“Madhu “could be translated as honey or Alcoholic drink also)
 
This forest was being protected by Dadhimuka who was a monkey chief and also a Very great hero, uncle of Sugreeva and a great soul.                                                            9 
 
Those monkeys reaching that forest which was very dear to the monkey king became very much enthusiastic.                                                                                          10
 
Then those monkeys who were brown like honey, seeing ,that honey forest, became very happy and requested for honey.                                                                                11
 
That crown prince after making the elderly monkeys agree for the proposal gave them permission to drink the honey.                                                                                  12 
 
Those monkeys who were even earlier happy after getting the permission became even happier and some of them started dancing.                                                       13
 
Some of them were singing, some falling down, some dancing, some laughing, some jumping and falling down, some running here and there, some jumping and running, and some prattling.                                                                                                            14
 
Some of them embraced each other, some started pushing  each other, some shouting at each other and some playing with each other.                                                               15
 
Some of them jumped from one tree to another, some jumping to the ground from the edge of the tree and some caught hold of the edges of trees crown by jumping and running.                                                                                                                         16
 
One laughing monkey approached a singing one, one with a weeping face approached a laughing one, another approached the crying one dancing all the way and another approached the dancing one, shouting all the way.                                                       17
 
That monkey army because of drinking of honey lost their senses and became disorderly. There was none among them who was not delirious and there was none among them who was not satisfied.                                                                                          18
 
The monkey called Dadhivakthra seeing that the trees were bereft of leaves and flowers and also seeing that the forest was being destroyed fully became very angry and prevented them.                                                                                                              19
(Please note that this monkey is different from Dadhimukha who was the uncle of Sugreeva)
 
He who was the security in chief of the forest, who was the oldest among the monkey chiefs, who was very heroic, after being insulted in several ways by those who have lost their senses, thought of the methods by which he can save the forest.                          20
 
He shouted very bad words addressing some monkeys , kicked several times with his feet some, quarreled with some entering their midst and requesting with good words some of them. 21
 
They who were prevented by those commanding words and they who were not realizing that they were doing mistake joined together and surrounded him, fell on him and dragged him round.                                                                                                     22
 
All those monkeys being out of their senses scarred him with their nails, bit him by their teeth, and destroyed the forest fully with their hands and legs.                                  23
 
 
       Thus ends the sixty first chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:19:15 PM
Sixty second Chapter
 
                          Sixty second Chapter               
                          Hurting of the security staff of the forest
 
(The guard of the garden, Dadhimuka who was the uncle of Sugreeva tried his best to stop the destruction of the honey forest. Angadha became very angry and hit him. Then Dadhimukha reached the presence of Sugreeva along with his followers.)                         
 
Hanuman who was the greatest among all monkeys and who was their leader told them, “Hey, monkeys, without any worry, please drink the honey. I would drive away your enemies.”                                                                                                                   1-2
 
Hearing the words of Hanuman, Angadha who was the leader of monkeys told with a very clear mind,” Let the monkeys drink the honey. Even if Hanuman’s words are not  proper, I have to definitely obey them. But if they are like this, need it be questioned?”    3-4
 
 
Those monkeys who were chiefs among monkeys, hearing the words from Angadha’s face, became very happy and worshipped him saying, “great. great.”              5
 
All the monkeys praising the monkey chief Angadha went speedily like an overflowing river to the places where more honey was there.                                                     6
 
Because they were able to see Mythili and knew about her and because they got permission to do as they please in case of the matter of honey, also because of their power, they disregarded the security personnel, and drank the honey and also ate lot of fruits.7
 
The security staffs who were interested in the welfare of the garden and who came there quickly were beaten by the other monkeys by jumping and in several different ways by the other monkeys.                                                                                                      8
 
They all joined together plucked the big rock like beehives and started drinking from them. Some of them dropped and broke these hives.                                                        9
 
Some of them who were of the colour of honey after drinking the honey wasted the remaining honey by pouring them.                                                                                 10
                     
Some of them who became tipsy managed to stand erect holding the branches of the tree. Some of them spread the leaves of the tree below it and lay down on them. 11
 
Then some of those monkeys affected by the honey were not able to stand firmly and started rolling and some of them who were almost mad started pushing each other because of their enthusiasm.                                                                         12
 
Some of those monkeys who became affected by the honey slept on the earth itself. Some of them started jumping and some of them with enthusiasm made bird like sounds.     13
 
Some of them did some other things and some of them did something else and started laughing. Some did some thing and started shouting. Some others got up after the effects were worn out.                                                                                                             14
 
Then those servants of Dadhimuka and the security personnel who were still there being driven out by the very powerful monkeys ran to different corners.                            15
 
Being dragged by their knees and being shown their asshole by those monkeys they became terribly worried and approached Dadhimuka and told as follows.                           16
(Showing their asshole towards those whom they are angry is a well-known habit of monkeys)
 
“Because Hanuman gave permission, the forest of honey has been destroyed by force. We were also dragged by our knees and shown their assholes.”                         17
 
The forest protector and monkey Dadhimuka hearing that the honey forest has been destroyed became angry and  consoled those monkeys thus.                            18
 
“Come along. We would drive away those  drunk monkeys who have lost their strength  by our strength..”                                                                                                        19
 
Those brave monkey chiefs hearing the orders of Dadhimuka returned along with him speedily to the honey forest.                                                                                       20
 
Dadhimuka uprooted a tree on his way and ran fast. Those monkeys also ran along with him.                                                                                                                              21
 
Those monkeys who were angry picked up rocks, trees and mountains in their hand and ran towards the place where those monkey chiefs were assembled.                              22
 
Hence those heroic watchmen attacked those monkeys who have lost their strength
  and who were sitting on the tree and the floor.                                                     23
                         
Those courageous ones having in their hands Sala tree, palm trees and stones rushed to the place in order to obey their leader.                                                                              24
 
While things were like this, Monkey chiefs like Hanuman seeing that Dadhimuka was angry came running there speedily.                                                                                   25
 
That time Angadha became angry and beat Dadhimukha who was very intelligent, who was very strong, who was a gentleman, who was running there with a tree in his hand ,by both his hands.                                                                                                                 26
 
He who was blind with extreme happiness did not bother to think that” This man should be respected by me” and pushed him on the ground and kicked him suddenly.             27
 
That heroic monkey chief (Dadhimukha) with wounds in shoulder, thighs and hands and being covered all over with blood ,lay on the floor unconscious for some time.            28
 
He who was the uncle of King Sugreeva gained consciousness speedily , became much more angry than before and prevented the honey drunk monkeys with a staff.             29
 
That monkey chief being disregarded by those monkeys reached a solitary place along with his servants.                                                                                                           30
 
“Let these people not be bothered about. Let us go to the place where our broad necked chief Sugreeva is there ,along with Rama.”                                                                  31
 
“We will inform our king that all the faults are with Angadha and as soon as he hears this , he will become angry and kill all these monkeys.”                                                        32
 
“Because this pretty honey forest which cannot be even neared by devas , was inherited by him from his ancestor who is a great soul.”                                               33
 
“That Sugreeva would kill all these monkeys with short life span and who are after honey along with their friends by beating them with a stick.”                                                  34
 
“These who have disregarded the order of the king deserve to be killed. and our anger by which we are not able to control will definitely bear fruit.”.                                         35
 
That very strong Dadhimuka thus telling to his gardeners, along with those gardeners jumped and started on his journey.                                                                                  36
 
That monkey reached the place where Sugreeva , the son of Sun God  was staying within a second.                                                                                                                           37
 
After seeing Rama, Lakshmana and Sugreeva he got down from the sky on the plain ground.                                                                                                                               38
 
That monkey Dadhimuka who was the chief of the security people, surrounded by the security staff went near Sugreeva with a faded face and with folded hands kept over his head and saluted him by prostrating at his feet by his head.                          39
 
      Thus ends the sixty second chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:19:40 PM
Sixty-third Chapter
 
                          Sixty -third  Chapter             
                       Informing about destruction of the honey forest
 
(Dadhimuka along with his other security staff is not able to succeed and are ill treated by Angadha and other monkeys. So he reaches Sugreeva’s presence and complaints to him about the behavior of the monkeys. Sugreeva becomes happy concluding that Sita has been found out and informs Rama and Lakshmana. He requests Dadhimuka to go back and request all the monkeys to come to his presence immediately.)
 
Seeing the monkey who bowed and saluted by his head,  the king of the monkeys holding his chest, immediately spoke the following words.                                                     1
 
“Hey, hero, get up and get up immediately. Why did you fall  at  my feet. Please tell me everything without leaving any particulars. You would get safety “                                2
 
The very intelligent Dadhimuka thus consoled by the great soul Sugreeva got up and told the following.                                                                                                           3
 
“Hey king, that honey forest has not been made a place, where others to enter by Riksha Yajas nor Bali and nor by your worshipful self. In spite of this it has been destroyed by the monkeys.”                                                                                                               4
 
“In spite of their being prevented by the security staff of the forest and without bothering about them, all the monkeys drank all the honey and are still drinking it.”                     5
 
“Some of them poured whatever was remaining there itself. All of them were destroying honey like that. Some of them who were prevented bent their eye brows and showed it to us.”                                                                                                                                  6
 
“Not only that, these security  people who went to prevent them were also driven away and beaten by those monkey chiefs.”                                                                             7
 
“Hey, chief of monkeys, at that stage these monkeys were terrorized by the numerous monkey heroes with angry red eyes.”                                                                              8
 
“Some of them were beaten by hand and some knocked by knees. Not only that some of them were dragged and shown their assholes.”                                                           9
 
“When you yourself were the :Lord , these heroes were troubled like this and the entire honey forest was destroyed as they pleased.”                                                                   10
 
Killer of enemies and a very knowledgeable one Lakshmana asked Sugreeva who was being requested like this as follows regarding Dadhimuka.                                           11
 
“Hey, king, why did this monkey who is a forest guard come here? About what is he telling you with so much sorrow?”                                                                                  12
 
The master of the words Sugreeva, who was thus asked by the great soul Lakshmana, told the following to him.                                                                                                          13
 
“Gentleman Lakshmana, This monkey hero Dadhimuka is telling me about the destruction of honey forest by Angadha and other monkeys.”                                     14
 
“They have come to the honey forest. So the work has been successfully completed by them.”                                                                                                                             15
 
“Hanuman himself has found the holy lady and there is no doubt about it. Nothing else seems to be possible. No others except Hanuman can be the causal agent for completing this job.”                                                                                                                        16
 
“Only, in that great monkey, the  will to complete the job, the needed intelligence, determination, valour and wisdom are there.”                                                              17
 
“Not only that, In any mission where Angadha is the head, Jambhavan is the leader and Hanuman is there to decide what aspect has to be done by whom and when it is to be done, the result cannot be other than expected.”                                                        18
 
“Angadha and other heroes who have returned after searching the southern side have destroyed the honey forest feeling that it will not be a crime.”                                  19
 
“The honey forest has been destroyed by them ,who have returned back and such criminal act would not have been attempted by them, if they have not succeeded. Not only that they have enjoyed and the entire forest has been destroyed.”                      20
 
“Not only that, they have broken the knees of those who went united to prevent them .”  21
 
This great and famous monkey hero who is known as Dadhimuka has come here to tell us this good news.”                                                                                                         22
 
“Hey Valorous hero and the son of Sumithra, think about it. The monkeys have returned back and have started drinking honey and so Sita has been located.”                            23
 
“Hey great one, those monkeys who are very knowledgeable would not dare to destroy this forest which has been got as a boon without locating Vaidehi.”                              24
 
When the very famous Lakshmana was hearing this news which was giving pleasure to the ears, Rama became happier thinking that good period has arrived.”                 25
 
That Sugreeva hearing the words of Dadhimuka became very happy and instructed him as to what is to be done immediately.                                                                             26
 
“The products of the forest have been eaten by them who have succeeded. Because of that I have become very happy. This act which has been done by them who have succeeded has my approval also.”                                                                                27
 
“I along with Rama and Lakshmana am very anxious to see them, who are as valorous as lion and have as their leader Hanuman and hear from them all the news regarding rescuing Sita.”                                                                                                                 28
 
He, who was the king of monkeys seeing that those two princes were happy at the completion of the job and also seeing them with eyes blooming because of happiness and also thinking that job taken up has positive result, became extremely happy with scintilating limbs.                                                                                                               29
 
      Thus ends the sixty third chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:20:09 PM
Sixty-fourth Chapter
 
                          Sixty- fourth Chapter             
                          Return of Hanuman and other monkeys
 
(Hanuman and other monkeys return back to Kishkinda and inform the good news of having found Sita and her being virtuous.)
 
Thus told by Sugreeva, at that time the well pleased Dadhimuka saluted Raghava,
 Lakshmana and Sugreeva.                                                                                    1
 
After saluting the very strong Raghava and Sugreeva, he rose up in the sky along with his valorous monkeys.                                                                                                   2   
 
He returned by the path by which he came and went with the same speed, jumped from the sky and entered the forest.                                                                                     3
 
After reaching the honey forest  he saw that all the monkeys have got rid of the effect of honey and saw them urinating the honey and water  drunk by them.                           4
(Tthis is typical about the effects of alcohol but interpreters say that the effect of honey also is similar)
 
That hero went near  them. He then addressed Angadha with folded hands and with clear mind and told the following willing words.                                                                 5
.             
“Hey peaceful master, you were prevented by the watchmen due to their ignorance. Please do not get angry that they did not give you respect befitting your status.        6
 
“Hey very strong one, being the crown prince you are the owner of this forest. The crime in not recognizing this was committed because of ignorance. Please pardon this.”      7
 
“Hey blameless one, I ran and have informed your father’s brother about the arrival of you along with all these monkeys..”                                                                 8
 
“He became extremely pleased to know about your safe arrival along with the monkeys.Even after hearing that the forest was destroyed, he did not become angry.” 9
 
“Sugreeva who is the king of all monkeys and also your father’s brother ordered me,”Send all of them immediately to this place.””                                           10
 
Angadha the monkey chief who was great among those who have great control  over words, hearing these sweet words of Dadhimuka told thus to the other monkey chiefs.   11
 
“Hey, Chiefs of monkeys, I understand that the above news has come from Rama. So hey, monkeys who always win over their enemies, we should not waste our time in unnecessary work here and cause delay.”                                                      12
 
“Hey monkeys, Have you not drunk sufficient honey and taken rest. Let us all go to the place where my father Sugreeva is there. What else can be done now ?”                            13
(Can also be translated as “What else is remaining except going to Sugreeva’s presence”)
 
“Hey monkey chiefs, since I am to obey your wishes, all of you please decide and tell me , what has to be done so that I will do accordingly.”                                                         14
 
“Since you have completed the job entrusted to you, it is not proper for me to command you. So even though I am the crown prince, I do not think that I posses the power to command you.”                                                                                                                  15
 
Hearing these blemish less words of Angadha the monkeys became very happy and replied thus.                                                                                                                       16
 
“Hey king of monkeys, which boss will tell us thus? Because people intoxicated with wealth would consider that they are everything.””                                                    17
 
“These words are well suited to a great one like you. It cannot come from any one else. These herald the great positions which you are going to occupy.”                        18
 
“We, who are waiting for commands from you to go to the place where Sugreeva who is the king of all monkeys and who is capable of right action, have all become ready.”    19
 
“Unless you give leave none of the monkeys can take even step to go anywhere. Hey, monkey chief, we are telling this truthfully.”                                                           20
 
When they told like this Angadha told, “Yes, let us go.” Hearing this,  those very strong monkeys jumped and rose in to the sky.                                                                           21
 
All those monkey warriors darkened the entire sky and went one after the other like the stones thrown in to the sky by catapults.                                                                           22
 
Those very fast monkeys traveling swiftly  in the sky made sounds like the clouds hit by wind.                                                                                                                     23
 
When Angadha was nearing the place , the monkey king Sugreeva  told thus and consoled Rama who was sad and had lotus like eyes.                                                24
 
“Good news to you. There is no doubt that the holy lady has been found out for they all dare not come back here after the stipulated date .”                                                     25
 
“Without completing the job, Angadha who is greatest among monkeys, who is a great hero and who is the crown prince will definitely not return.”                                       26
 
“Suppose they have not completed the job entrusted they would be afraid and come with a faded face.”                                                                                                                 27
 
“Suppose the monkey chief Angadha is not enthusiastic he will never dare to destroy the forest founded by my father and grand father and protected by my elders.”                28
(Riksha Yajas was the son of Brahma and when he took a dip pond in Brahma Loka he became a female monkey. Bali and Sugreeva were born to him as a result of love with Indra and Sun God. He later became male and brought up Bali and Sugreeva. The honey forest was given to him by his father Brahma .So the above can be translated as “the forest given by my grand father to my father.”)
 
“So Rama , who is the darling son of Kausalya (Son who was born to Kausalya because of her luck) and who has observed all suitable penances, console yourself. There is no doubt that Hanuman and nobody else has found out the holy lady.                        29
(There is an interpretation that Kausalya is indeed lucky that Sita has been found out for otherwise Rama would not live Please also note that this phrase has been borrowed and put in the Venkatesa Suprabhatham.)
 
“Hey very knowledgeable one , there is none except Hanuman who can complete this job for only in Hanuman, the necessary efficiency, wisdom, determination and valour permanently exist similar to the brilliance which exists with the Sun God.”                   30
 
“Not only that, In any mission where Angadha is the head, Jambhavan is the leader and Hanuman is there to decide what aspect has to be done by whom and when it is to be done, the result cannot be other than expected. So, Hey great hero, do not be immersed in sorrow.”                                                                                                                       31-32
(Please note that stanza 31 occurs in many places without much change.)                                                       
 
Then talking to each other as if they were proud of Hanuman’s success and are coming to inform the success of their mission, the monkeys neared Kishkinda  and the sound of their prattling (Kilu kila sound) was heard in the sky.                                               33
 
Hearing the sound of the monkeys that great monkey chieftain straightened his curved tail and became very happy.                                                                                          34
 
Those monkeys who were desirous of seeing Rama arrived   pushing Hanuman to their front.                                                                                                                              35
 
Angadha and other warriors who were full of joy and had a smiling face got down near the monkey king and Raghava.                                                                                     36
 
Then the great hero Hanuman saluted Raghava with a bent head and informed in short the news of the virtue of Sita being pure without even an atom like blemish.                     37
 
Rama along with Lakshmana hearing the nectar like words, that”Sita has been found” from the mouth of Hanuman became very happy.                                                      38
 
Because of that Sugreeva became very happy at the determined efficiency of Hanuman and Lakshmana examined him with love mingled with respect.                                 39
 
Then Raghava who was the killer of his enemies became happy and also saw him with respectful affection                                                                                                         40
 
 
     Thus ends the sixty fourth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:20:34 PM
Sixty-fifth Chapter
                          Sixty -fifth Chapter             
                 Telling of the memento news and giving of the hair brooch
 
(Hanuman then tells about the state of Sita and the messages sent by her and gave the hair brooch which was the memento given by her)
 
They reached the Prsravana Mountains with its very peculiar forests and again saluted with bowed head the very strong Rama, Lakshmana and Sugreeva and keeping their crown prince Angadha in front and waited for permission to tell about the current state of Sita in detail.                                                                                                              1-2
 
All those monkeys told in front of Rama the fact that Sita was imprisoned in the harem of Ravana, her being terrorized by the Rakshasis, her special love towards Rama and also the fact that time period has been set for her life.                                                        3
 
Hearing that no harm has come to the virtue of Sita Rama afterwards spoke,”Hey monkeys, where is Sita now? What is her attitude towards me? Please tell me in detail all news about Vaidehi.”                                                                                                      4
 
Hearing the words of Rama, the monkeys requested Hanuman, who only knew about all details about Sita in person, to go in front of Rama.                                                       5
 
Then hearing their request, Hanuman who had mastery over words, bowed and saluted Sita looking in the direction she was and told the following in detail about the news of his seeing Sita.                                                                                                                          6
(In the Tamil Kambha Ramayana, even at the first meeting Hanuman salutes Sita turning the southern direction and tells, I have seen Sita.” This is supposed to give the good news quickly and also indicate to Rama that Sita is still virtuous.) 
 
“I,  with a desire to see Sita who is the daughter of Janaka searched for her and crossed the ocean which was one hundred yojanas broad.”                                                          7
 
“There in the southern shore of the southern ocean, the bad soul Ravana has a city called Lanka.”                                                                                                                               8
 
 
“Hey, Rama, I saw Sita who is virtuous and the store house all that is good in the harem of Ravana. She is just managing to keep her soul intact because of her love towards you.”
                                                                                                                                            9                         
 
“She was in front of my eyes in the garden of the harem, in between the Rakshasis, being terrorized often by those horrible Rakshasis, shaking with fear and was under their custody.”                                                                                                       10
 
“That virtuous lady who did not merit sorrow was undergoing sorrow thus.”  11
 
 “I found out with difficulty that the  holy lady, who had made her hair singly, sleeping on the bare floor was being  prevented from entering Ravana’s harem and well guarded by those Rakshasis, resembled the lotus of winter, was  completely depressed, not able to see any way to escape from Ravana, having decided to give up her life and  living in a pitiable state but in spite of all that having given her entire mind to you and always thinking about you.”                                                                                           12-13
 
“Hey innocent lion among men, having heard me praising the fame of the Ikshuvaku clan, confidence in me developed in her.”                                                           14
 
“After that I conversed with the great lady. All information was told to her. She became pleased to hear about the treaty between Sugreeva and Rama Lakshmanas.      15
 
“Since she is devoted to you,  the only aim of that lady was protecting her virtue.”    16
 
“Hey great man, I saw the daughter of Janaka who is great forever having devotion and thought about you.”                                                                                                       17
 
“Hey, very knowledgeable one, She entrusted me to remind you  the story of crow near you in Chithrakoota which you know already.”                                                          18
 
“Janaki told me, “Hey son of wind god, You have to tell  Rama  the lion among men,  all what I said  without leaving any thing about this matter.””                                            19
 
“This hair brooch which would bring pleasure to  my mind was carefully preserved by me. This should be carefully preserved by you,  without the knowledge of others and has to be given carefully to Rama  in presence of Sugreeva and he has to be told”. This born out of water and capable of creating happiness has been sent by me to you. Please remember the tilaka(dot) drawn by red stone on my forehead.” “                      20-22
(The story of Tilaka is a private story and should not be narrated in front of every one but should only be indicated.)
 
Sita who was having doe like eyes which are awake, who was prevented from entering the harem of Ravana, who was having a lean body, also told me ,” Hey, Son of Dasaratha who is not subject to aging, when I was very sad, I used to take this and look at it and imagined that I was seeing you and console myself. I would keep my soul for one more month. After one month, I would get in to the custody of Rakshasas and would not be alive.”                                                                                                                  23-25
 
“Hey, Raghava, all these have been told by me as it is. It is necessary to order building one dam in the ocean.”                                                                                             26
(Note that Hanuman does not tell any news about his exploits while crossing the sea or in the city of Lanka  .because it is not proper to praise oneself before ones boss.)
 
The son of wind God seeing that those two princes were sufficiently consoled gave that memento  to them and told all the messages of the holy lady from beginning to end.    27
 
       Thus ends the sixty fifth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:20:58 PM
Sixty-sixth Chapter
 
                          Sixty -sixth Chapter 
                             Seeking clarifications of the message of Sita
( Rama is upset to know about Sita and asks Hanuman to tell in detail what has been told by her. The pearl brooch brings to him memories of her, his father and father in law.)
 
Rama , the son of Dasaratha who was with Lakshmana after being thus spoken by Hanuman embraced the pearl brooch tightly to his chest and shed copious tears.   1
 
After seeing that great ornament Raghava with tear filled eyes  and with a weeping heart addressed Sugreeva with the following words.                                                           2
 
“My heart melts on seeing this great ornament which is  similar to the shedding of milk by the cow  on seeing its calf.”                                                                       3
 
“This pearl ornament was given to Vaidehi by my father in law   and when worn by her during the wedding shined much more than now.”                                                    4
 
“This pearl which is born in water and considered very valuable by good people, was given to him by Indra during a fire sacrifice.”                                                          5
 
“Hey peaceful one, after seeing this great pearl ornament , my mind has attained the state of having the pleasure of seeing  my father and my father in law .”                              6
 
“This would shine in my darling’s hair prettily. By getting this I feel I have already got her.”                                                                                                                                7
 
“Hey peaceful one, what words, similar to the wetting of the throat of the thirsty one with water has been sent by  Sita ,who is the daughter of king of Videha.. Please tell me once more.”                                                                                                                    8
 
“Hey Lakshmana , what can be more sadder than the fact that I have parted from the company of Vaidehi and am looking at this gem?”                                                           9 
 
“Hey peaceful one, If Vaidehi lives for one month , she will be living for a long time. I would not now live for one more second without her.”                                              10
(What he means is that one-month is much more than sufficient to free Sita)
 
“Please take me to that place where my darling is there. Having understood the present circumstances, I cannot even waste one more minute.”                                                11
 
“To what extent , should  my virtuous wife who is pretty , suffer,  as she is  being terrorized by those horrible Rakshasis?”                                                                   12
 
“Her face surrounded by the rakshasas would be without glamour like the autumn moon surrounded, hid and released by clouds.”                                                                      13
 
“Hanuman, what did Sita tell? Tell everything in detail without leaving any thing. Like a patient keeping his life by medicines , only through these(words) can I continue to live.”     14
 
“What did my darling, who is very pretty, who is sweet, who tells honeyed words and who is away from me, tell you? Hanuman please tell  me in detail.”                            15
       
 
       Thus ends the sixty sixth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
      is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:21:24 PM
Sixty-seventh Chapter
                          Sixty -seventh Chapter 
                                    Informing the message of Sita.
 
(Hanuman again details the pitiable state of affairs of Sita. He also indicates the several doubts arising in her mind due to her not seeing any action from the part of Rama and Lakshmana.)
 
Having been told by Rama like this, Hanuman informed him the full message of Sita to Raghava the great Soul.                                                                                                1
 
“Hey great man, Janaki told me in detail the happenings in Chithra koota to rekindle your memory. “                                                                                                              2
 
“Once when she was in your company the well slept Janaki  woke up first. Then One crow came and cruelly wounded her on her breast.”                                                3
(There is another version which says that she was drying meat and the crow troubled her.)
 
“Hey, elder brother of Bharatha, then you slept on her lap and again that bird caused pain to the holy lady.”                                                                                                            4
 
“Again and again it fell on her and wounded her. Then you were made wet because of her flowing blood and due to that you were woken up.”                                                 5
 
“Hey, killer of the enemies, you who were in deep sleep were woken by repeated attacks of the bird on  the holy lady , which caused you discomfort.”                                      6
 
“Hey great warrior, seeing that she has been wounded on her breast , you became very angry, and hissed like a snake and asked the holy lady thus.”                                     7
 
“Hey lady who is afraid, who has caused wounds on your breast by his nails. Who dares to play with the angry five headed snake?”                                                                 8
 
“Then you searched  on  all the four sides  and saw the crow with blood coated nails in front of you.”                                                                                                                9
 
“That crow was the son of Indra. Among the birds he was equal in speed to the wind god and so he disappeared in to the earth immediately.”                                                    10
 
“Hey greatest among the wise, Hey great warrior, having decided to punish him you took a cruel decision in case of the crow because of the great anger .”                       11
 
“You took one grass from your grass(Durbha grass) seat and chanted the manthras of Brahmasthra and sent it at him. That which was meant for the bird burnt like the fire of hell.”                                                                                                                                 12
 
“You sent that burning and shining durbha against the crow .What to say, from that time that burning grass started chasing and following the crow.”                                           13
 
“It wandered all over the three worlds and was forsaken by sages, devas and even its father Indra and did not find any body to protect him.”                                                14
 
“Hey, Kakustha, Hey killer of enemies, the crow again came to your presence shivering with fear. You, who are very kind, saved the crow who beseeched for your mercy and fell at your feet though he deserved being killed.”                                                  15
 
“Hey Raghava, You who are like that,  understanding that the arrow cannot be sent in vain, destroyed the right eye of the crow.”                                                                      16
 
“Hey Rama, that crow after saluting you and the king Dasaratha and having been given leave went to his abode.”                                                                                                17
 
“ In spite of being the greatest of archers, being a great warrior, being a person of good conduct , why is he not sending those arrows in case of these Rakshasas.?”               18
 
“Neither the Nagas, nor the Gandharwas, nor Asuras, nor the Maruth Ganas, and nor even all of them joining together are capable of facing Rama in war.”                                19
 
“If he who is a warrior has an iota of love towards me, he should have killed Ravana with his sharp arrows.”                                                                                                20
 
“Why is it that Lakshmana who gives pain to his enemies, who has been born in the Raghu clan, not taking his brother’s permission and save me.”                                  21
 
“Why are they who are lion among men, having power similar to the wind and fire God, who have the strength and are capable of creating fear even among devas not bothering about me? “                                                                                                                    22
 
They who are capable, who are always victorious and always living together do not remember me. Because of this I feel that I should have done some very bad deed. There is no doubt about it.”                                                                                              23
 
“Hearing these pitiable words said with tearful eyes, I told her again the following consoling words.”                                                                                                   24
 
“Hey holy lady, I take a truthful oath. Rama because of the sorrow caused because of parting with you has forsaken everything. Because Rama is drowned in sorrow Lakshmana is also sad.”    25
 
“Hey great lady, you have been found out by the grace of God. This is not the time for sorrow. You would be seeing the end of your sorrow immediately.”                         26
 
“Those two princes who are blameless lion among men, with a desire to see you are going to turn Lanka in to ashes.”                                                                               27
 
“Hey lady who is the result of boons, it is very definite that Raghava is going to kill Ravana and his relations and going to take you to his city.”                                     28
 
“Rama has to understand the truth in this matter and so blameless one please give a memento which would increase his love.”                                                             29
 
“Hey very strong one , then that  a holy lady saw in all directions and took this ornament out of the hair , after untying it from her dress  and gave it to me.”                                 30
 
“Hey chief of Raghu clan, after getting this holy jewel for your sake, I saluted her and was in a hurry to return back.”                                                                                       31
 
“That daughter of Janaka who was in a pitiable state , seeing me increasing my size of the body with an intention to return became upset  and drowned in sorrow as also with flowing tears all over her face told thus with stuttering due to tears.”        32-33
 
“Hey Hanuman, tell my welfare to Rama and Lakshmana who are like lions and king Sugreeva along with his ministers and others.”                                                 34
 
“Raghava alone should help me to come out of  the misery of this bondage from this ocean of  sorrow and take suitable actions .”                                                   35
 
“Hey chief among monkeys, please tell Rama as soon as you see him about my great sorrow and my being terrorized by these Rakshasis. Let your path for going back be without any problems.”                                                                                        36
 
“Hey lion among kings, the lady Sita sends this message which I have told you and which indicates her great sorrow .Please do whatever is necessary having known her complete state of affairs.”                                                                                                         37
 
       
    Thus ends the sixty seventh chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.
 
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: adwaita on June 26, 2008, 12:21:59 PM
Sixty-eighth Chapter
 
                          Sixty -eighth Chapter 
                            Further news about consolation of Sita
(Hanuman further relates about the doubts in Sita’s mind and how he gave a pep talk and encouraged her.)
“Hey lion among men, I who was in a haste to return , because of the love and nearness that I had with you was praised by the holy lady and ordered thus about the future steps to be taken.  “                                                                                                                        1
 
“You have to tell Rama in several ways so that Rama, the son of Dasaratha would kill Ravana in war and speedily get me back.”                                                                2
 
“Hey warrior who is the killer of his enemies , possibly , if you like , take rest in a solitary place for one day and start back tomorrow.”                                            3
 
“Hey warrior, if you are near me , the present time  would be a time of solace, from the sorrow caused by  sin to  this unlucky me .”                                                              4
 
“Though you who are  heroic and  is going back to come again, during that time definitely danger would happen to my soul.”                                                            5
 
“For me  who is unlucky, who is undergoing sorrow upon sorrow  and drowned in sorrow, the sorrow caused by not seeing you ,would further increase my already existing sorrow.”                                                                                                                      6
 
“Hey monkey chief, Hey hero, there is one matter which is very important and which has to be first solved , which is causing doubt in me regarding your helpers who are all monkeys and bears.”                                                                                                 7
 
“How would that army of monkeys and bears cross the ocean which cannot be crossed? How would those two sons of the emperor do it?”                              8
 
“The strength to cross his ocean exists only to three of you who are equal viz, you, God of wind and Garuda.”                                                                                             9
 
“Hey hero who is greatest among those who achieve, what method are you going to find out to solve this aspect which is very difficult to solve? “                                       10
 
“Hey killer of enemies, you are the only one who can find solution to this problem and you would definitely get fame for doing that.”                                                         11
 
“Along with sufficient enemies if Rama kills Ravana in war  and victoriously takes me along to his city , that only would be proper.”                                                         12
 
“I was abducted by the Rakshasa  because of the fear that he had for Rama by using deceit. Suppose Raghava also does a similar thing , it would not be proper to that great warrior.”                                                                                                                   13
 
“That Kakustha who can win the enemy  should destroy Lanka along with its army  and take me along with him. This only would be suitable to him.”                                14
 
“So you please do the needful and do that in a fashion which  is suitable to prowess of  the great soul and great warrior .”                                                                             15
 
Hearing the words full of meaning, which were according to the tenets of Dharma(just action)  and which were logical, I told her whatever was remaining to be told.              16
 
“Hey holy lady, Sugreeva the lord of the army of monkeys and bears, who is  the greatest among monkeys and who has a very stable mind has taken an oath  to help in your case.”                                                                                                                 17
 
“The monkeys under him are very heroic, stable minded, very strong  and are capable carrying out their intentions.”                                                                                    18
 
“There is no question of their path being stopped either down or up or at an angle. Those very strong valorous ones will not fade in the toughest assignments.”                   19
 
“Those monkeys who travel in the path of the wind, who are proud of their strength and who are really great have traveled round the world several times.”                             20
 
“In the court of Sugreeva there are many who are equal or above me but there are none who are lower than me.”                                                                                                  21
 
“Ordinary people are sent as emissaries and the very best are never sent as emissaries. If  even I have reached here, is it necessary to tell about others who are greater than me.”     22
 
“So holy lady do not be sad. Let your sorrow move away. The monkey chieftains will reach here in one jump.”                                                                                            23
 
“Hey very lucky lady, those two who are like the sun and the moon will reach here climbing on my back.”                                                                                                 24
 
“You are going to see soon, Raghava who is the killer of enemies and who is similar to a lion along with his Kodanda at the gate of the city of Lanka along with Lakshmana.”  25
 
“You would soon see crowd of monkey heroes who use their nails and teeth as arms and who have valour similar to lions and tigers.”                                                             26
 
“You are going to soon hear the war cry of the war chieftains of monkeys who are similar to mountains and clouds in the mountains and valleys of Lanka.”                              27
 
“You are going to soon see that Raghava kills all his enemies , completes his stay in forest and along with you celebrate the crowning ceremony in Ayodhya.”               28
 
 That princess of Mithila who was suffering due to the sorrow for you,  hearing my words which were definitely believable and which were, that time about the future welfare  was consoled by me who was talking seriously  and became little peaceful.                    29
 
     Thus ends the sixty eighth chapter of Sundara Kanda which
     is in the Ramayana which is the first epic written  by Valmiki.

                                                                 JAI SAI RAM
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on June 11, 2012, 02:16:41 PM


(http://sunderkandsatsangsamuh.org/images/river%20meditation-2.jpg)


|| Benefits Of Sunderkand ||
 
 Meditation

The basic requirement of meditation is total concentration at one particular point where after you forget what is happening surrounding you. the net result is mental soothing. During Sunderkand recitation especially in group maintaining constant attention on the verses of the book is compulsory, simultaneously all communication lines are stopped. The net result is total concentration and at the end of recitation  a strange feeling takes place like fast running of blood or feel like crying or becoming oblivious to the surrounding. As a result of this one feels lightened and gets self motivation. This is the power of the verses of Sunderkand and this is in a way a meditation.


 

Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on June 12, 2012, 02:13:49 PM


(http://sunderkandsatsangsamuh.org/images/Chakra_00.jpg)

(http://sunderkandsatsangsamuh.org/images/seven_chakras_115.jpg)
Creates Positive VibrationAll sound creates vibration a sound which upsets your mind waves is a noise and a sound which is ear pleasing is supposed to have a positive vibration. Our thoughts are waves having certain frequency. It has been scientifically proved that when the frequency of the thought waves matches with the frequency of the sound waves than it produces positive vibrations as a result of this the thought waves merges with the sound waves and develop a further positive vibration. If you feed any sound into a sound measuring instrument an oscillscope, it releases a certain pattern. Depending upon the sounds vibration, measured by frequency and amplitude, the oscilloscope creates a certain form. Every sound has a certain form. Similarly every form has a sound. The relation between form and sound is referred to a mantra. During sunderkand recitation, which are mantras similar phenomena takes place. The verses are siddh by the ancient saints. Hence the thoughts which normally are negative gets destroyed under this power of mantra and a zero level of thought process is attained and we feel lightened.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on June 14, 2012, 02:54:44 PM
(http://sunderkandsatsangsamuh.org/images/aura%20red.JPG)
(http://sunderkandsatsangsamuh.org/images/meditation.jpg)
Aura can be defined as an energy emanating around the body of humanbeings.there are 6 such layers around our body viz (1) Physical body (2) Etheric body (3) Mental body (4) Body of science (5) Body of knowledge (6) Body of bliss. There are about 7 energy centers or chakras viz.
• Sahasrar chakra
 Ajna chakra
 Visudhhi chakra
 Hear chakra
Manipur chakra
 Swadhisthan chakra
 Muladhar chakra

 This auras can be seen through latest photo chromic camera. The powerful aura is visualized with clarity and non clear or blur layers represents weak aura. The auras can be improved by continuous meditation, right food habits etc. As we know sunderkand recitation produces vibration and which results in taking a form. This form surrounds our body and strikes with the energy level surrounding the body. The moment it strikes with the energy or the form of the vibration of sunderkand, it starts changing for positive hence there is a change in individual’s personality. Continious recitation affect the energy level surrounding the body positively and sharpens the aura level.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on June 15, 2012, 02:27:22 PM

(http://img1.exportersindia.com/product_images/bc-small/1510290/sunderkand-famous-chapter-from-ramcharitmanas-316333.jpeg)
Gives a healing effect
In most of the living beings to get cure from the physical damages of the body the nature has given an automatic recovery. This is known as healing. When a kid fells down, all the time we do not consult a doctor. The blood clots at the wound and wound does not spread. This is for the physical injury. Today’s people have lots of worldly problems which cannot be shared with any individual for solution. The person goes on feeling hurt or guilty and with times also from inferiority complex. This is the mental injury. For this either he has to consult a psychiatric or an astrologer for getting the wound healed. Sunderkand recitation does the work of psychiatric. Mental injury is the state of mind attained due to lot of negative thinking. Negative thinking is the generation of negative thought waves, which results in frustration. The moment one does sunderkand recitation continuously, the negative waves get crushed by the positive vibration of the verses of sunderkand upon which an individual feels lightened which is the sign of his mental injury getting healed.
Title: Re: SUNDERKAND
Post by: SS91 on January 29, 2013, 08:32:20 AM


Sloka 1

Santam sasvatamaprameyamanagham nirvanasantipradam
Brahmasambhuphanindrasevyamanisam vedantavedyamvibhum
Ramakhyam jagadisvaram suragurum mayamanusyam harim
Vande'ham karunakaram raghuvaram bhupalacudamanim || 1 ||


(http://4.bp.blogspot.com/_OCu_uIvUaLs/TGzOxgYLo4I/AAAAAAAACLg/Teeod92HvgE/s1600/narayan2.0.jpg)

I pray to the Lord of the Universe called Rama, chief of the Raghus, supreme amongst kings, a mine of loving tenderness, destroying all sins, visible in human form because of his maya (power of illusion), greatest of the deities, all pervading,worth knowing through Vedanta (the Upanishads) constantly served by Brahma, Shambhu and Sheshnag (the thousand-headed snake on which Vishnu sleeps), granting supreme bliss in the form of moksha or salvation, sinless, beyond mundane perception, eternal and calm.